FROM THE LIBRARY OF REV. LOUIS FITZGERALD BENSON, D. D BEQUEATHED BY HIM TO THE LIBRARY OF PRINCETON THEOLOGICAL SEMINARY Sectio* /0/5C - THE CHUKCH MEMORIAL. the , DEC 23 1931 ■■**/ CI RCI MEMORIAL: CONTAINING IMPORTANT HISTORICAL FACTS AND REMINISCENCES CONNECTED WITH THE ASSOCIATE AND ASSOCIATE REFORMED CHURCHES PREVIOUS TO THEIR UNION AS THE UNITED PRESBYTERIAN CHURCH NORTH AMERICA, BY ^|/ REV. R. D. HARPER, PASTOR OF THE FIRST UNITED PRESBYTERIAN CONGREGATION OF XENIA • !, ?* S ^ the Lord God : Beh °W, I will take the stick of Joseph, which is in the hand of Ephraim, and the tribes of Israel his fellows, and will put them with him, eyen with the stick of Judah, and make them one stick, and they shall be one in my hand."— Ezek. xxxvii : 19. COLUMBUS, OHIO : FOLLETT, FOSTER AND COMPANY. XENIA, OHIO : FLEMING AND CRAWFORD. 1 8 T) 8 . Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1858, BY FLEMING & CRAWFORD, In the Clerk's office of the District Court of the United States for the Southern District of Ohio. ®[i[D)0©&Tfl®Ra TO THE MINISTERS, ELDERS, AND MEMBERS OF THE mtti f ns&stmim &\m\ of $ortfc %mtxm, THIS VOI-TJMIS I» RK8PKCTFUI.I.T XHSDIC^IMSrD, AS A MEMORIAL OF THE EAELY HISTOEY OF OUK BELOVED ZION. CONTENTS PAGE I. Introduction 9 II. History of the Associate Presbyterian Church — Rev. Thomas Beveridge, D.D 13 III. History of the Associate Reformed Presbyterian Church — Rev. J. B. Dales, D.D. 54 IV. History of the Conventions of Reformed Churches — Rev. John T. Pressly, D.D 80 V. Testimony of the United Presbyterian Church 88 VI. Action of the Associate and Associate Reformed Churches on Union, in 1857 134 VII. Joint action of the two Churches, in 1858 137 VIII. Remarks on Union, in the Associate Reformed Synod 138 IX. Remarks on Union, in the Associate Synod 172 X. Proceedings connected with the final consummation of the Union, May 26, 1858 198 XI. Proceedings of the Convention of Reformed Churches, at Xenia, March, 1858 222 XII. Proceedings of the Convention of Reformed Churches, in Allegheny City, May, 1858 271 XIII. Missions of the Associate Church— Rev. J. T. Cooper, D.D. 323 Trinidad. California. Northern India. XIV. Missions of the Associate Reformed Church — Rev. J. B. Dales, D.D 329 Damascus. Cairo. Alexandria. Oregon. yiii CONTENTS. PAGE XV. Theological Seminaries 334 Xewburgh. Allegheny. Xenia. Oxford. XVI. Synods and Presbyteries 367 Associate. New York. First of the "West. Second of the West. Illinois. XVII. Colleges 388 Franklin. Muskingum. Madison. Westminster. Monmouth. Washington. XVIII. Periodicals 400 Evangelical Repository. • United Presbyterian. Christian Instructor. United Presbyterian of the West. Westminster Herald. The Presbyterian Witness. XIX. General Summary of the United Presbyterian Church 403 X X. Conclusion 404 INTRODUCTION " What thou seest write in a book." The design of this command, given to the Exile of Patmos, was to pre- serve the Apocalyptic visions which had passed before him. If they had not been thus written in a book and graven with an iron pen, these glorious revelations of the future which sweetened his solitude and made him a blessing to the Church in all ages, w T ould soon have perished forever. With regard to the present volume, we claim no such di- rect command. The object, however, is the same. It is to save from oblivion many important historical facts and remi- niscences connected with the two Churches which have re- cently been so happily united. Both t iese Churches date their origin in the past century. Many of the prominent- actors in these different branches of the Church have already gone, as we hope, to the Church of the first born in Heaven. Much of our knowledge of the early history of these Churches is obtained by tradition, and consequently is becoming more and more uncertain as time advances. Even now it is almost impossible for a young man to obtain any certain information respecting the early history of the Church with which he stands connected. And certainly this difficulty will be greatly increased when olden Synods and Presbyteries, and 2 X INTRODUCTION. congregations and ecclesiastical names have passed away, and these Churches become thoroughly blended together. Nor do we desire to bury all of the past. We love the Churches in which many of us have not only been born, but born again. They have been faithful Churches of the living God. They have contended earnestly for the truth of God. They have done good service in the cause of our dear Re- deemer. And although they are now organically one, and Ave rejoice that it is so, yet our hearts are full of sacred memories, and we turn with mingled emotions of joy and sorrow to the past. We remember our old ecclesiastical associations with tenderest emotion, and with the captives of old we are ready to say, " If I forget thee, 0, Jerusalem, let my right hand forget her cunning." One prominent object in the preparation of this work was to preserve the leading facts connected with the union of these Churches. In a few years the fathers of the Church who took an active part in these proceedings will be no more. Others will be called to carry out the principles upon which this union was formed. Various opinions may arise as to the meaning of different acts and the design of their framers. Such we know has been the case hereto- fore both in Church and State. Even the constitution of the United States is now differently interpreted ; and its true meaning can be certainly determined only by the recorded sentiments of its framers. For this purpose, therefore, we have collected together the action of these Churches and the remarks on the subject of union in the different Synods, that in after years they may speak for themselves. We have also inserted the proceedings of the two religious conventions recently held in Xenia, and Allegheny, deeming them worthy of preservation. The recollection of these INTRODUCTION. XI happy meetings, where brethren of different denominations " met and sung and prayed and wept together," until their hearts were warmed with heavenly influences and knit together in holy love, will not soon be forgotten by those who were present. Such scenes are not often witnessed on earth. They have already yielded fruit to the glory of God. They are worthy to be had in everlasting remembrance. For the proceedings of the conventions, and the remarks on the union of the Churches, before the different Synods, we are largely indebted to the United Presbyterian. Many of the reported speeches would have appeared to a much better advantage if all the speakers had furnished us corrected cop- ies as we requested. We have presented them as favorably as we could. And in this connexion we take pleasure in acknowledging the kind assistance furnished us in the prep- aration of this work, not only by those whose names are appended to the different parts of it, but also by others whose names do not appear : Rev. Drs. McDill, Bullions, Forsythe, Kerr, and Clark ; Presidents Waddle and Wallace ; Profs. Vincent, Buchanan, and Doig ; Rev. Messrs. James Prest- ley, R. A. Browne, J. B. and J. Y. Scouller, J. L. Craig, G. W. Gowdy, and R. H. Pollock. The task of gathering up these ecclesiastical fragments, undertaken in compliance with the solicitation of many breth- ren, we found more difficult than we at first anticipated. It has proved no sinecure business. It has cost much labor. But the work is done. And the very difficulty that has at- tended its preparation has demonstrated most clearly its necessity. In a few years more these facts gathered from olden memories and musty libraries w r ould have been lost forever. If this work shall preserve, in any degree, the past his- X1 1 INTRODUCTION. tory of the Churches now united ; or serve as a memorial of God's great goodness toward us in years that are gone ; or stimulate us with increased love and zeal for the future ; or transmit to coming generations the faith for which we are earnestly contending — then will our desire be accomplished, and we shall deem ourselves amply repaid for our unworthy labors. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. I. — History of the Associate Presbyterian Church of North America. The Associate Presbyterian Church originated in a secession from the Established Church of Scotland, in the year 1733. The grounds of this secession were corruptions in the doctrines of the Church, and tyranny in the administration of her government. At what was called the revolution settlement in 1688, when the last of the Stuarts was driven from the throne of England, and Presbyterianism restored in Scotland after nearly thirty years of bitter persecution, hundreds of the Epis- copal incumbents who had been thrust upon the people were re- tained in their charges. They were ignorant, unsound, and worthless men. Bishop Burnet, who cannot be suspected of any groundless prejudice against them, says : " They were the worst preachers I ever heard ; they were ignorant to a re- proach, and many of them were clearly vicious. They were a disgrace to their orders, and were indeed the dregs and the refuse of the northern parts. Those of them that rose above contempt and scandal were men of such violent tempers, that they were as much hated as the others were despised." Yet such was the anxiety of the Church for peace, that a reluctant consent was yielded to the wishes of the government, and these men were allowed to retain their places on the condition of su'b- 14 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. mission to that Presbyterian system which they had been unit- ing with the persecutors to overthrow. In this way the leaven of corruption was introduced, and spread itself through the Church till many of the people and a majority of the ministers were leavened. The evangelical system of doctrine taught in the Westminster Confession was abandoned, and a kind of hea- then morality or virtue was substituted in the room of the gos- pel, the doctrine which is according to godliness. People were taught to forsake their sins in order to their coming to Christ, and the contrary doctrine was condemned as unsound and dan- gerous. Mr. Simson, professor of divinity in the University of Glasgow, was convicted, in 1717, of teaching that the light of nature is sufficient to guide men in the way of salvation; that no covenant of works was made with Adam as the representative of his posterity ; that the souls of children are as pure and holy as the soul of Adam was in his original condition. He was also convicted of teaching other kindred doctrines embracing some of the worst errors of Pelagianism ; yet no censure was inflicted. The Assembly thought it sufficient to declare that " Some of his opinions were not evidently founded on the word of God, or necessary to be taught in divinity; that he had used some ex- pressions which bear, and are used by adversaries in, a bad and unsound sense ; and for answering the objections of adversaries, had employed some hypotheses that tend to attribute too much to natural reason and the power of corrupt nature ; which ex- pressions and hypotheses they prohibited him from using in fu- ture." It was not at all strange that this lenity encouraged the Professor to persevere in teaching the same doctrines, and to improve upon his system till he openly denied the necessary ex- istance and Supreme Deity of the Son of God. Yet even when convicted of such gross heresy in the Assembly of 1726, he was merely suspended from office, and the case remitted to the infe- rior judicatories to obtain their opinion in time for the next As- sembly. But though a majority of presbyteries gave it as their THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 15 judgment that he should be deposed, he was merely continued under suspension from office, and allowed to enjoy its emolu- ments and the communion of the Church. A similar lenity was afterwards shown to Mr. Campbell, professor of ecclesiastical history, whose errors were in several respects the same with Professor Simson's, and who ridiculed as enthusiasm such ideas as those of close walking with God, and consulting him in all our ways. His theology verged on the lowest rationalism, and his moral principles bore much more resemblance to those of Seneca and Epictetus than to those of the living oracles of truth. This man, though well known to be infected with these heresies, was not only tolerated, but highly honored in the Church, and when at last the popular clamor was so great that the Assembly was constrained to take some notice of his doctrines, he was al- lowed, as is too commonly the case, to varnish over his errors with vague and unsatisfactory explanations, and then dismissed from the bar of the Assembly without censure or condemnation. These well authenticated facts may serve to show the state of religious doctrine in the Church of Scotland at the time of the secession. That Church being established by law, the settlement of min- isters was not by election of the people, but by patronage. In other words, the right of presenting a minister to a vacant con- gregation was in the possession of the crown or some of the no- bility, and there was no necessity of consulting the wishes of the people on the subject. Yet so long as there was any degree of faithfulness in the Church, her authority over her own minis- ters enabled her in a great measure to counteract this evil, and few settlements took place where the people were known to be opposed to the presentee. But, as the corrupt party of the Church increased in number and power, instead of striving to shield the people from this oppression, they sought to bind this yoke upon them. In cases where the patron neglected to pre- sent a minister to a congregation after six months' vacancy, ac- 16 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. cording to what was called the jus devolutum, the right of pre- sentation came into the hands of the Presbytery, which could yield the choice to the people. But the General Assembly of the Church in 1731, ordained that where patrons might neglect or decline to exercise their right of presentation, the minister should be chosen by a majority of the heritors (land-holders) and elders, if Protestants. These heritors might be non-resi- dents, Episcopalians — anything but Romanists. By this act they deprived the great majority of the members of the Church of any right to choose their own pastors. The leading party which sustained these measures, agreeably to a fancy, not uncommon, to choose a name as opposite as pos- sible to some cherished vice, or some hated virtue, called them- selves the Moderates ; those who advocated evangelical doc- trines and the rights of the people, they called High-flyers. These two parties were the same whose contentions lately caused a disruption in the Church of Scotland, and gave rise to another and larger secession under the name of The Free Pres- byterian Church. Previous to the first secession, which took the name of the Associate Presbytery, the Moderates, being then in the majority, carried their measures in the most arbi- trary manner. They refused to regard the opposition of the people to the worthless ministers who were intruded upon them, and when Presbyteries were unwilling to take part in the sacrilegious act of introducing them to their charges, they ap- pointed a commission of other ministers whose consciences were more pliant, to induct the presentee. They enjoined upon the reluctant Presbyteries, under the pain of severe censure, to en- roll these hirelings among their members, and treat them as the Lord's servants. They refused to neighboring ministers the right to grant the privileges of the Church to such of the people .is fled to them for refuge from these hirelings, without first ob- taining their consent. Things had proceeded to such a length that in cases of great obstinacy on the part of the people, minis- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. IT ters were inducted into their charges by the aid of bands of sol- diers. The Presbytery and presentee were sometimes escorted to the place of worship on the Sabbath by a troop of dragoons preceded by military music, flourishing their swords, and strik- ing with them at the women and others who had come to gaze on these booted evangelists guarding the apostles of the estab- lishment. Dissents against these and other high handed measures were refused a place upon the records of the Church. Remonstrants were frequently refused a hearing, or if heard, were treated as offenders. This last was the case particularly in a long contro- versy which arose about certain doctrines taught, or supposed to be taught, in a book called The Marrow of Modern Divinity. This work, by Edward Fisher of England, was written to defend the true gospel from the extremes of legalism and antinomian- ism. The evangelical ministers of Scotland regarding it as pe- culiarly seasonable to check the tendency to legal doctrines so prevalent in the Church, had it republished ; and its circulation was attended with much advantage to the cause of truth. This aroused the indignation of the opposite party, and they succeeded in obtaining from the Assembly of 1720, in conformity with the report of their committee for purity of doctrine, a condemnation of a number of propositions represented to have been collected from " The Marrow." By this act the Assembly was regarded as either directly or virtually condemning the following doc- trines : That in the gospel, strictly understood, there are no pre- cepts ; That there is in the gospel a free and full gift of Christ to sinners as such ; That all who hear the gospel are warranted and bound forthwith to accept of Christ without waiting for any qualifications or fulfilling any conditions ; That believers are de- livered from the law as a covenant of works ; and, That holi- liness is not a federal means or condition of our salvation. Against this act twelve of the most eminent ministers of the Church prepared a representation characterized by much faith- 18 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. fulness and ability, and at the same time respectful and tem- perate in its language. These men were Messrs. James Hog, Thomas Boston, John Bonar, John Williamson, James Kid, Gabriel Wilson, Ebeneezer Erskine, Ralph Erskine, James Wardlaw, Henry Davidson, John Bathgate, and Wm. Hunter, men whose names deserve to be held in everlasting remem- brance. Their representation was presented to the Assembly of 1721, but no action was taken upon it at this meeting. At the meeting of the ensuing commission in November, instead of any attempt to redress the grievance complained of by the representers, they were treated as culprits. In ludi- crous allusion to the number of the men, twelve queries were proposed to them with a view to elicit something which might be the ground of a charge against them. The representers justly complained of this treatment, but regarding the interests of truth as having superior claims to the point of honor, they gave a clear and convincing answer to these queries, which was not without its effect in moderating the tone of their adversa- ries Notwithstanding, the next Assembly, (1722,) after a con- sideration of the case, condemned, though in a somewhat modi- fied form, the aforesaid doctrines of the Marrow ; and in words at least recalling to mind the Index Expurgatorius, they u strictly prohibited and discharged all the ministers of the Church to use by writing, printing, preaching, catechising, or otherwise teaching, either publicly or privately, the positions condemned, or what may be equivalent to them or of like ten- dency, under pain of the censures of the Church conformed to the merit of their offense." They also appointed their modera- tor id their name to rebuke and admonish the representers, which was done accordingly. Whilst such severity was em- ployed against the friends of evangelical truth, it was deservedly noticed a< in singular contrast that those who were charged with the most grievous errors, as lias been already stated, were treat- ed with the utmost lenity. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 19 Attempts having been made to prevent a faithful testimony against prevailing corruptions by refusing to record dissents and protests, by disregarding petitions and remonstrances, and even by prohibiting the circulating or recommending of evangelical books, the friends of truth were the more ready to lift up a warning voice in the pulpit where freedom had hitherto been allowed. But attempts began to be made to drive freedom even from this her last refuge. After some previous attempts of the same kind, process was commenced against the Rev. Ebenezer Erskine, minister of Stirling, for a sermon preached by him as moderator, at the meeting of the Synod of Perth and Stirling, October 18, 1732. His text was Psalm cxviii : 22: "The stone which the builders refused is become the head-stone of the corner." In this discourse he treated of the Church as a build- ing, of Christ as the foundation of the building, of the builders, of their error in refusing Christ, and of the glory to which Christ will be exalted as the Head-stone in spite of all the attempts of these builders to thrust him out of his place. In the course of his remarks he took some notice of the Jewish builders, which appeared not very complimentary to some of the builders before him, and which caused not a little hard feeling towards the preacher. He was called to an account for what were regarded as the injurious reflections contained in his ser- mon, and after a warm discussion of three days' continuance, he was appointed by a majority of six votes to be rebuked. It has sometimes been alleged that the process was for the manner in which he had expressed himself, and not for the liberty he had used in testifying against the prevailing corruptions of the times, but the whole history of the process clearly disproves this apol- ogy for those that prosecuted and condemned him. It is indeed a very lame apology to allege that such vigorous proceedings were followed up even to the deposition of an eminently godly and able minister of the gospel, and to the rending of the Church merely on the ground of something exceptionable in his man- 20 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. ner, while there was nothing faulty in the matter of his sermon. From the sentence of rebuke, Mr. Erskine appealed to the General Assembly, and was joined in this appeal by his son-in- law, the Rev. James Fisher. Fourteen others dissented, and protested, amongst whom were the Rev. Alexander Moncrieff, and the Rev. Wm. Wilson, who appeared with Mr. Erskine at the bar of the Assembly which met the ensuing May, 1733. When the cause came before the Assembly, Messrs. Moncrieff and "Wilson were denied a hearing in behalf of their dissents, and Mr. Fisher in behalf of his protest. Mr. Eivkine alone was heard in a brief, but triumphant defense of his appeal. But the leading party, both in the Synod and Assembly, ap- peared to be actuated by the same spirit — a determination to crush out the spirit of liberty by the stern exercise of ecclesias- tical authority. Indeed, they had succeeded so far, that of all who had taken part with Mr. Erskine, the three above named were the only ones who ventured to stand up with him before a frowning Assembly, ready to encounter in the cause of Christ the worst that their wrath could inflict. The Assembly, by a ma- jority of votes, sustained the decision of the Synod, and appoint- ed .Mr. Erskine to be rebuked at their own bar in order to terminate the process. He submitted to this rebuke, but imme- diately produced a paper in which he protested against the cen- sure which had been inflicted, as importing that he had in his doctrine at the opening of the Synod at Perth, departed from the Word of God and the standard of the Church. He also claimed that he should "be at liberty to preach the same truths of God, and to testify against the same or like defections of this Church upon all proper occasions." In this protest he was joined by Messrs. Wilson, Moncrieff and Fisher. This protest was laid upon the table, but refused a hearing to* It having fallen from the table, was picked up by a member of tie' COUrt, who having read it called upon the Assembly to stop their proceedings and take notice of the insufferable insult which THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 21 had been offered by presenting this paper. The paper being now publicly read, " the whole Assembly was in an uproar. A paper containing high treason against the sovereign, or blasphe- my against the majesty of Heaven, could not have called forth a greater burst of indignation." [M'Kerrow.] The officer of the Assembly was directed to summon the four brethren to ap- pear before the Assembly the next forenoon to answer for such audacious conduct. When they appeared, they were dealt with by a committee to withdraw their paper, but as they refused to do so, they were directed to appear before the commission in August next, "and then show their sorrow for their conduct and misbehavior in offering to protest, and in giving in to the Assem- bly the paper by them subscribed, and that they then retract the same." In the event of their refusal to do so, the commission was empowered and appointed to suspend them from the exer- cise of their ministry, and at a future meeting, if they still proved refractory, to proceed to a higher censure. Accordingly, as they refused to retract their protest, the commission, August, 1733, " suspended them from the exercise of the ministerial functions and all the parts thereof." In the succeeding Novem- ber it was found by the commission that the four brethren had continued to exercise their ministry, and tie order of the As- sembly was to proceed to a higher censure. The tyrannical proceedings of the ecclesiastical courts, and the undaunted ap- pearance of these brethren for the truth, excited an interest in their cause so great and extensive that there is good reason to suppose the leading party would now have willingly retreated from the inevitable consequences of their rash acts ; but it was too late without those humiliating concessions which men of their spirit are most reluctant to make. Seven Synods sent up com- munications to the commission in favor of the suspended breth- ren. Petitions of a like character were sent by some Presbyte- ries ; and a considerable number of the members of the commis- sion were in favor of delay. A motion for delay was only lost -- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. by the. - _ te of the moderator. A committee was ap- ith the brerhr any further steps were - tiled in their efforts to persuade them to withdraw their protest. The commission then agreed by a large major- se the relation of the said four ministers to their _ s, :e them no longer ministers of this Church, and to prohibit all ministers of this Church to employ them in any ministerial function." Seven ministers of the com- mission - jainst this sentence, and that it should be law- ful for them to hold ministerial communion with these their dear 3 if no such sentence had been passed against them. When the sentence was intimated to the four brethren, they handed in a paper declaring themselves under the necessity of m the Church. Thus, as the most candid men of othe: - 3 will now generally admit, the Church, by her high handed measures, I »mmunion four of the « in ir. These men soon afterwards met as a Presby- lished what has generally been distinguished as .-judicial Testimony. In this they defend their seees- n the ground of any one of the evils of which they complain, but of all these evils collectively, especially taken in connection with the fact that they were thrust out because of their _ _ st tl se evils. They declined to act judi- cially at three years their secession, still hoping that such meas - old be adopted that they could consist- ently return to the Church which had cast them out. But though something was done towards healing the breach, espe- 1734. it appeared in the end to be more the re-uit r : dig -;;ion to do justice either to them or to the cause of truth. It was soon found that the i reg | with favor by the better class of ry convenient refuge for those stem of patronage. "When all mea- .position to ministers intruded upon congregations THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 23 against their will proved inert' . . - on learned to i r o peaceably to work to build a Church of their own. and call a Seceder minister. The alarm canned by such proceedings is sufficient to account for some conciliatory measures. After the four brethren had waited three year- in suspense, and found prospect of reunion to the mother Church, they proceeded to judicial acts, and near the close of the year 1736, publisl what has been called their Judicial Testimony. They appointed one of their number. Mr. Wil-on. Pi : Theology. At his decease. Mr. Monerieff filled the chair. And after the breach occasioned by the Borgess oath, Mr. E. Erskine was efc professor by the Burgher Synod, and at his dece -uc- ceeded by Mr. Fisher, so that all first S lers eu- pied this post. They were suffered to occupy their Chur- - till the year 1 74< '. A libel was framed against them by the commission of the Assembly and laid before the Assembly it- \ May. 1739. The charges contained in it were in substance their secession, for which their accusers were responsible, and their acting as an independent court : C 1st, which was ren- dered necessary by their position. The S 5,1 _ : in number, being summoned, appeared as a constituted P: - at the bar of the Assembly, and formally declined their author- ity. The next year the Assembly passed an act of deposition against all the eight, and in consequence of this they v. lently thrust out of their places of worship. These men were much endeared to their people, and the sufferings endured them drew the bonds of affection still me: sely. H attending their exclusion, and the exclusion oft'.. _ _ - tions, from the places where they and their fathers before I had worshiped have been graphically described by different writers, and are full of thrilling in: 5t; but it would o<. too much space to give an account of them. As it is not our purp - give a history of the Associate Church at large, but chiefly of that branch of it which has had an 24 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. existence for more than a century in the United States, we shall pass over the subsequent events pertaining to her history in Scotland, only noticing, briefly, one or two things necessary for the understanding of that part of her history of which we treat. The brethren of the Associate Presbytery had soon increased so much in number, that they found it necessary to constitute themselves into a Synod, to consist of three Presbyteries. This was in 1744. The whole number of settled ministers, at this time, was twenty-six. It was not long after this that a question came before them in relation to the lawfulness of swearinsr cer- tain Burgess oaths, containing in them this clause : " Here I protest before God and your Lordships, that I profess, and allow with my heart, the true religion presently professed within this realm, and authorized by the laws thereof: I shall abide thereat, and defend the same to my life's end ; renouncing the Roman religion called papistry." The Synod was nearly equally di- vided in respect to the lawfulness of their members swearing this oath; and after about two years sharp contention, a breach took place in 1747, and two distinct Synods was the result: the one known most commonly by the name of the General Asso- ciate, or Antibnrgher Synod; the other, not being divided into provincial Synods, was called simply the Associate or Burgher Synod. These two branches of the secession, after a separation of more than seventy years, were again reunited, Sept. 8, 1820. Although the question of the propriety of the civil establish- ment of religion had not engaged the attention of the Secedes, and they had urged, not the establishment itself, but the corrup- tion- of it, in justification of their secession, yet at an early period some began to entertain doubts on this subject. Some of the young men, when receiving license to preach, expressed a difficulty about assenting to certain parts of the Westminster Confession relating to the magistrates' power in religious things. The General or Antiburgher Synod appears to have encoun- tered the first and mosl extensive difficulties of this character. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 25 The American Testimony was written by one of those who en- tertained these scruples about the magistrates' power, and who was ordained with an allowed reservation on this subject. The doctrine introduced into this Testimony was in conformity with the writer's views, and it being republished in Scotland, strength- ened the hands of those who opposed civil establishments, and have of late years been called Voluntaries. Attempts were soon made to bring the Testimony of the General Synod into a conformity with the American Testimony. These efforts began in the year 1791, and resulted in the preparation of a new Tes- timony instead of a mere enlargement or modification of the old one. The preparation, discussion and enactment of this work, was not completed till 1804. The adoption of it was the means of separating from the Church four of her most eminent minis- ters, Dr. Thomas McCrie, the historian, Mr. Archibald Brace, Profes.-or of Theology, Mr. James Aitkin, and Mr. James Hog. These brethren not being able to give their assent to the new Testimony, formed themselves into what they called the Con- stitutional Presbytery. After the union of the Burgher and Antiburgher Synods, they united with nine of the brethren of the Antiburgher Synod who had protested, and were distin- guished by the name of Original Seceders. A majority of this body lately united with the Free Presbyterian Church. A missionary spirit characterized the Associate brethren from the first; and one of the fields of their missionary labors, to which very particu'ar attention was paid, was the United States. In the year 173G, — the first year when they began to act as a distinct branch of the Church, — besides other applications to them for supply of preaching, Dr. McKerrow mentions " that a letter was received from Londonderry, Chester, State of Penn- sylvania," containing an urgent request that they would send over either an ordained minister or a probationer to labor amongst the inhabitants of that district ; and a promise was 3 26 THE CHUKCH MEMORIAL. given that all the necessary charges of the mission would be defrayed. The demands, however, made upon the Presbytery for supplying the necessitous districts in their own immediate neighborhood, were so numerous and so urgent, that they had it not yet in their power to send any of their preachers across the Atlantic. They returned a friendly reply to the American letter, but deferred for a season sending a laborer to that part of the vineyard. Fourteen years afterwards (1750) petitions were again sent, addressed to the Antiburgher Synod, from some of the inhab- itants of the eastern counties of Pennsylvania, for supply of preaching. The petitioners were chiefly emigrants from Scot- land and Ireland, who, though not finding all the same causes of separation from the Presbyterian Church of America as from the Established Church of Scotland, yet found some of the same, and had also other objections to a union with them. At a meet- ing of the Synod, 1751, an urgent application was again made to them from Mr. Alexander Craighead, minister at Middle Octo- rara, in Pennsylvania, and from a number of other persons in that province, earnestly beseeching the Synod to appoint some ministers to labor in that part of America. The Synod accord- ingly appointed Mr. .lames Hume, a licentiate, and Mr. John Jamieson, student, after being licensed, to be ordained and sent as missionaries to Pennsylvania. The design of the Synod was frustrated, by both these young men being called and settled in congregations. The Synod was much dissatisfied with their conduct, but finally released them from their appointment. So intent were they upon complying with the repeated calls from America for missionaries, that in August, 1752, they directed Presbyteries to require of young men, previous to giving them license, an engagement to submit to any missionary appointment which might be given them by the church courts, unless they had such objections to offer as should be found relevant; and those young men who showed an aversion to submit, were no THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 27 longer to be acknowledged in the capacity of students. Soon after passing this act, Messrs. Alexander Gellatly and Andrew Bunyan were ordered to be licensed without delay, that they might be set apart to this important work. Mr. Bunyan, after being licensed, was unwilling to proceed. His case came ulti- mately before the Synod, and his excuse being found not satis- factory, the license which had been given him on the condition of his submission was recalled, though afterwards, suitable ac- knowledgments having been made, and an admonition given him, it was restored. Mr. Gellatly complied with the appointment given him, and has the honor of being the first missionary of the Associate Church to this country, and is entitled to the name of the Father of the Secession in the United States. Mr. Andrew Arnot, minister at Midholm, was sent with him, with liberty to remain or return at the end of a year. These breth- ren set sail in the beginning of the summer of 1753, and arrived before the close of that year, and not in 1754, as has been often incorrectly stated. Mr. Gellatly, the best authority in the case, says, in one of his published works, that he arrived in 1753. As Mr. Arnot returned at the end of the year, Mr. James Proudfoot, (or Proudfit, as the name is now generally spelled,) was sent to supply his place, and set sail August, 1754. To defray the expense of these missions, about five hundred dollars were raised by collections in the congregations belonging to the Synod, — a liberal sum, considering the smallness of their num- ber, their limited means, and the large demands made upon them for other purposes. When Messrs. Gellatly and Arnot arrived in America, they found an extensive field of labor, and many more demands were made on them, and also on those who came after them, than it was possible to comply with. Indeed, during the whole period of the existence of the Associate Church as a separate body in the United States, her cause has been much impeded from the want of a sufficient supply of ministers. In the early period of 28 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. her history, there were no suitable means for educating young men for the ministry, and the supply from abroad was altogether unequal to the demand. There was an extreme unwillingness on the part of brethren in Scotland to accept of a missionary appointment to America. The ideas of separation from home and friends, and of a life spent among interminable forests, filled with snakes and savage Indians, appeared to present themselves to the minds of young men in such horrible aspects, that they would sooner submit to the highest ecclesiastical censures than agree to go on a mission to America. As a frequent impediment in the way of young men was a call to some congregation at home, the Synod, to prevent this, determined that no young man under appointment as a missionary to America should be a candidate for settlement. They not only, as has been stated, sometimes recalled license where a missionary appointment was declined, but, in the case of ordained ministers, threatened deposition, — and in one case at least were about to proceed to this length, had not their course been arrested by the timely submission of the culprit. Notwithstanding these rigorous measures, very few exhibited that hardy and adventurous spirit in the cause of the gospel, which multitudes of emigrants from many lands, flocking to these shores, were exhibiting for the attainment of merely secular advantages. The chief field of labor occupied by the missionaries to America, for some years, was Lancaster, Chester, and York counties, Pennsylvania. Soon after the arrival of Messrs. Gel- latly and Arnot, agreeably to their instructions they constituted themselves into a Presbytery under the name of the Associate Presbytery of Pennsylvania, subordinate to the Associate Anti- burgher Synod ; and after a division of the Synod into General and Provincial Synods, subordinate to the Associate Synod of Edinburgh. Opposition was soon made to them by some breth- ren who had been occupying the field of their labors before them. The Presbytery of Newcastle, subordinate to the Synod THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 29 of New York and Philadelphia, now the General Assembly of the Presbyterian Church of the United States, issued a warning against them, denouncing them as schismatics and separatists, and as heretical on the subject of the gospel offer, the nature of faith, and the obligation of the religious covenant engagements of our reforming forefathers. They first invited the Associate ministers to unite with them, and when they declined a union, they published this warning, to preserve their people from the dangerous infection of the unsound principles and schismatical practices with which they charged the Seceders. They also, at the same time, republished, at Lancaster, Pennsylvania, a book written by one Mr. Delap, in Ireland, in which he attacks the religious covenant bond of the Associate Synod. These publi- cations were answered by the Seceders in a little more than a year after their arrival. Their answer was published at Lan- caster, and is entitled, " A Detection of Injurious Reasonings and Unjust Representations." It consists of two parts. The first part is by Mr. Gellatly, "wherein," according to the title, " the injury done to truth, and the unjust representation of, and reflections upon, the conduct of the Associate Presbytery, by the Rev. Mr. Delap, in his remarks upon some of the articles mentioned in their confession of sins, and on the act of Presby- tery concerning their terms of communion, are discovered." The second part was begun by Mr. Arnot before his return to Scot- land, and finished by Mr. Gellatly. It contains, according to its title, "A discovery of further injury done to the truth by the Presbytery of Newcastle, in their judicial Warning and ap- pendix, and of their unjust representation of the principles and practices of the Seceders." This part treats of the gospel offer, the nature of faith, religious covenants, restricted communion, and what are called non-essentials in religion. The whole work extends to 240 pages, and though somewhat antiquated in style, is ably written. An answer to this work soon appeared, by Messrs. S. Finley and R. Smith, under the title of u The De- 30 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. tection Detected." To this a reply was made in 1758, by Mr. Gellatly, under the following title : " Some Observations upon a late piece entitled, ' The Detection Detected, or a Vindica- tion, etc.,' containing a discovery of the manner how the Rev. Mess. S. Finley and R. Smith, the authors of said piece, handle the obligation of the National and Solemn League, the nature of Faith, the Gospel Offer, and some other points : and showing that the Detection is not detected in the manner they pretend." This work extends to 203 pages. There is occasionally some degree of sharpness on the part of Mr. Gellatly, as well as of his opponents ; yet his writings indicate not only a good degree of learning and ability, but sound views of the gospel, and a spirit of conformity to it. It has even been said that one of his opponents, in the course of the controversy, became a convert to Mr. Gellatly's views of faith, and afterward published a ser- mon vindicating the doctrines which he had formerly opposed. This controversy, which originated with the brethren of the Presbyterian Church, was not unfavorable to the cause of the Seceders, as it brought their principles more into notice. Mr. Gellatly was settled in Octorara, of Lancaster, and Oxford, of Chester county, Pennsylvania. Here he labored till March 12, 1761, when he entered into his rest, in the forty-second year of his age and the eighth after his arrival in America. Previous to his decease, (1758,) Mr. Matthew Henderson arrived as a mis- sionary from Scotland, and was settled at Oxford and Pencader, in Chester county. Soon after the decease of Mr. G., Mr. John Mason, father of the more celebrated Dr. John Mason of New York, arrived. lie was sent for by a congregation in New York, over which he was settled, and continued their pastor un- til his death. At the time of his arrival, (1761,) the Associate Presbytery of Pennsylvana consisted of only three ministerial members, Mr. Jas. Proudfit of Pequa, Mr. Henderson of Oxford and Pencader, and Mr. Mason of New York. Two probationers, Mr. Robert Annan, and Mr. John Smart were sent out in com- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 81 pany with Mr. Mason. Of these, Mr. Smart returned without having become a member of the Presbytery, and Mr. Annan did not become a member till four years afterwards. Petitions for supply of preaching began to multiply on the hands of the Presbytery not only from their neighborhood in the eastern counties of Pennsylvania, but from the Provinces of New York, Virginia, the Carolinas, and the western parts of Pennsylvania. Strenuous efforts were made to meet these de- mands by applications to the Associate Synod, and by the Syn- od's appointments of missionaries. As a specimen of the suc- cess attending these efforts, it may be mentioned that at two different meetings of the Synod in 1762, no less than five were appointed missionaries to America. Of these Mr. Wm. Mar- shall was the only one who complied. lie was originally set- tled at Deeprun and Neshaminy, in the Forks of the Delaware, but afterwards removed to Philadelphia, of the Associate con- gregation of which he continued the pastor till his decease in 1802. In 17 Go, three others were appointed, but they all de- clined. Hitherto all the missionaries sent had been connected with the Antiburghcr Synod, but in 17G-1, the Rev. Thomas Clark (from his medical skill generally known by the name of Dr. Clark) arrived in America. He had been a soldier in the army which fought against the Pretender in 1745-G. Having after- wards (1748) entered the ministry in connection with the Bur- gher Synod, he w r as settled in the congregation of Ballibay, Ire- land. He was somewhat eccentric, and many laughable anec- dotes respecting him have been handed down by tradition, yet he was a man eminent for piety and usefulness, and had suffered persecution, even to bonds and imprisonment, for the cause of Jesus Christ. Mr. Clark was ordained July 23, 1751, over a congregation of about 200 families who, not finding themselves edified by their former teachers, or able to believe some things taught them, had applied to the Associate Synod in Scotland 6Z THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. who had sent Mr. Clark to preach to them. His settlement, which took place soon afterwards, appears to have aroused the wrath of the ministers who had been deserted, and of their ad- herents. As they knew that he had scruples about swearing the abjuration oath on account of some things in it, and the manner of swearing by kissing the Book, they took advantage of this circumstance, and having procured a warrant, arrested him during public worship, and carried him about fourteen miles under a strong guard of horse and foot to Monaghan jail, where he remained a prisoner from January 23, 1754, till the 8th of the following April. Some time after his release, he and the most of his congregation emigrated to America. When they arrived at New York, a part of the people went to Long Cane in South Carolina ; the rest, in company with their minister, after a short sojourn at Stillwater, settled at Salem, New r York, a place then known by the name of New Perth. The next year after his arrival he made application to the Associate Presby- tery of Pennsylvania, and certain articles being drawn up to which he gave his assent, he was received as a member. As the two Synods in Scotland adhered to the same Testimony which had been adopted before the breach, and as the only ground of controversy between them was about the lawfulness of a certain oath peculiar to a few burghs in that country, there seemed no great difficulty in the way of the union of these breth- ren in America. The chief difficulty was in relation to their subordination to the respective Synods with which they had been connected. There was less trouble in the cas-3 of Mr. Clark than in that of two others who soon followed him. There were Messrs. Telfar and Kinloch, both from the Burgher Synod, who made application for admission into the Presbytery in 17G9. They agreed to subscribe the same articles with Mr. Clark, but with some alterations. The conditions of this union were, That neither party should justify the swearing of the Burgess oath, nor the censures passed upon those who held the lawfulness of THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 33 it : And neither party was required to break off their connec- tion with the Synod to which they had belonged in Scotland. There was a manifest inconsistency in the latter part of this agreement, that the different members of the same Presbytery should be in subordination to two distinct supreme courts ; and this feature of the union gave offense to the Antiburgher Synod, not, however, to such an extent as to prevent her from contin- uing her missions. In 1770 she appointed Messrs. John Proud- fit, John Roger, and James Ramsey to go to America. Mr. Roger alone complied with this appointment ; however, Mr. John Smith of Stirling, went with him. These missionaries were directed to require the Presbytery to annul the union with the Burgher brethren, and obliterate their minute respecting it. If the Presbytery refused to do so, they were empowered, to- gether with any others who entertained similar views with them, to constitute themselves into a new Presbytery. The instruc- tions given to these brethren were laid before the Presbytery at a meeting held at Pequa, June 5, 1771, and were substantially complied with. The Presbytery agreed that the union with the Burgher brethren should be dissolved, as not consistent with their subordination to the Synod, and that they would have no further ministerial communion with them until the Synod should give them instructions. They declined erasing the minute re- lating to the union, judging the act of dissolving it sufficient. Messrs. Roger and Smith considering the Synod's demand as materially complied with, took seats in the Presbytery, and the Synod appears to have been satisfied. In 17 GO commenced another attempt to unite the different branches of the Presbyterian Church in America. At the re- quest of several Seceding ministers, Dr. Wither^ oon moved in the Synod of New York and Philadelphia, shortly before they constituted themselves into a General Assembly, that a commit- tee be appointed to converse with these ministers with a view to bring about a union between them and the Synod. A peti- 34 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. tion was presented at the same time from several inhabitants about Marsh creek, praying that the Synod would use their en- deavors to form a union with the Seceders. A committee, of which Dr. Witherspoon was chairman, was accordingly appoint- ed for this purpose. They however failed to meet. In 1771, it appears that they had a meeting. Certain questions were submitted to the Associate Presbytery answers to which were reported to the Synod in 1772, which were referred to Dr. Whitherspoon and others. The Associate Presbytery not hav- ing made any answer to the proposal of the committee at Synod made the year before, the negotiation was dropped, and not re- sumed till 1785, when efforts were made, and with some suc- cess for a time, to establish a convention composed of some of the members of the different Presbyterian bodies, to meet bien- nially. The design of this convention appears, not to have been to effect any organic union, but to promote sound doctrine, the faithful exercise of discipline, and a mutual good understanding among these Churches. The plan was one which, if faithfully carried out, might have been of advantage, but it appears to have been dropped about as soon as it was matured. See a more full account of it in " The Constitutional History of the Presbyterian Church in the United States, by Dr. Hodge," part ii, pp. 361-8. The hands of the Associate Presbytery had been so far strengthened by the missionaries sent from Scotland, that in 177G they agreed to divide themselves into two Presbyteries. One of these, still called by the original name, the Presbytery of Pennsylvania, consisted of ten ministers, viz : Messrs. James Proudfit, Matthew Henderson, William Marshall, John Roger, John Smith, James Clarkson, William Logan, John Murray, James Martin, and Andrew Patton. The new Presbytery was called the Presbytery of New York, and consisted of three min- isters : Messrs. John Mason, Thomas Clark, and Robert Annan. These Presbyteries were coordinate, and not subject to any THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 6b common court in this country, but both were subordinate to the Synod of Edinburgh, of which they were regarded as constitu- ent parts. This division into two Presbyteries, it will be seen, took place at the commencement of the war of the revolution ; and it is not strange, as the brethren were warm advocates of the cause of the colonies against the mother country, that their subordi- nation to the mother Church lost much of its hold upon their consciences and affections. It was during this eventful period that measures were employed, without consulting the Synod in Scotland, to effect a union between the two Associate Pre.-by- teries on the one hand, and the Reformed Presbytery or Cove- nanters on the other. The Reformed Presbytery had been constituted in 1774, and consisted of three ministers: Messrs. John Cuthbcrtson, William Linn, and Alexander Dobbin, who all exercised their ministry chiefly in Pennsylvania. The cause of the colonies being espoused by these brethren as well as by the Seceders, their opinions about subjection to magistrates appear to have been somewhat modified. They had rejected the government of Great Britain as unscriptural, and testified against subjection to it as sinful, but they were ready to own the newly formed government of the United States ; and as a diversity of opinion on subjection to civil rulers had been the main point of difference between them and the Seceders, their approbation of this government appeared to remove the greatest difficulty in the w T ay of union. Mr. Robert Annan, of Wallkill, New York, was one of the foremost of the Associate Church in seeking to effect this union. In the summer of 1777, while the British had possession of Philadelphia, and their army was marching through Pennsyl- vania, Mr. Annan came to Pennsylvania, and succeeded in bringing together a few of the members of the. two bodies, for conference, at Donegal, Lancaster county. Little was done, except to appoint another meeting, which was held at Pequa, 36 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Pennsylvania, the ensuing March. But our limits will not ad- mit of a full account of the negotiations which were carried on for about six years. Conferences repeatedly met, propositions were framed, substitutes offered for them, and substitutes for substitutes. Sometimes clouds darkened the prospect, and some- times they appeared to be passing away. It will be sufficient here to state the final result. The propositions on which the union was finally consummated were laid before the Associate Presbytery at their meeting at Pequa, June 12, 1782. Various exceptions were taken to them by Messrs. Marshall and Clarkson. The union, however, was closed the next day, on the basis of these propositions, by the casting vote of the moderator. Messrs. Marshall and Clarkson, ministers, and Messrs. Robert Hunter, James Thompson, and Alexander Moor, ruling elders, protested, and appealed to the Associate Synod of Scotland. The protest was at first admit- ted, but on a review of it, as it contained an appeal, it was refused admittance. The protestors then withdrew, claiming to be the true Associate Presbytery of Pennsylvania. It has not been thought necessary to introduce the various propositions debated, and the changes made, or proposed to be made, upon them, as our limits would not admit of this, and the controversies to which they relate have mostly become obsolete, so far as they concern the Associate Church and the united body. On these proceedings it is not proposed to make any remarks which might revive the unpleasant feelings which such events too generally produce. This much, however, may be said : that it was much to be regretted that a union could not have been effected which would at the same time have met all the demands of truth, and secured the harmony of all the parties concerned. Without attempting to decide by whose fault it happened, yet the fact cannot be concealed, that the union was not harmonious. A part of both bodies refused to go into the union, and continued separate from each other, as well as from the United Church. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 37 The united body took to themselves the name of the Associate Reformed Church ; the protestors against the union retained their former name; and our further business is to trace their history down to the present time. As they still regarded them- selves as in subordination to the Synod of Scotland, and had appealed to that court, their appeal was considered and their conduct approved. And as they had been greatly weakened in numbers, missionaries were soon sent to their aid. The first sent after the consummation of the union, were Messrs. John Anderson and Thomas Beveridge. Not long afterwards, Messrs. Archibald White and David Goodwillie ; then again, Messrs. David Somerville and John Cree ; and towards the close of this century, Messrs. Robert Laing, John Banks, Robert Armstrong, Andrew Fulton, and probably some others, arrived in the United States. Messrs. Matthew Henderson and John Smith, who had gone into the union, became dissatisfied, and returned to the Presbytery. Upon the arrival of Messrs. Anderson and Beveridge, in the summer of 1784, the Presbytery considered it expedient to pre- pare a Testimony, suited to their circumstances in this country, and appointed these brethren to attend to that business. Accord- ingly, a Narrative and Testimony were prepared, and being enacted, were published that same year. It appears that the subordination of the Presbytery to the Synod was found in- convenient and disadvantageous. The Testimony was adopted without even consulting with the Synod ; and though some dis- satisfaction was expressed, and an act passed in 178G, claiming, indeed, but little more than what might be called the brotherly oversight which one Church might exercise over another, this subordination soon became a dead letter. In 1791, the Presbytery passed an act respecting public cov- enanting, afterwards incorporated in the Testimony; and the. next year they engaged in the duty of covenanting in connection with the Associate congregation of New York. In 17DG, they 38 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. also passed an act against occasional communion, which was published at the time, and the body of it has been republished in Mr. Miller's Sketches and Sermons. In 1794, finding the supply of ministers from abroad inade- quate, they established a theological seminary in Beaver county, Pensylvania, of which Dr. John Anderson continued to be the sole professor until 1819, when, owing to the infirmities of age, he resigned. The number of students was, however, very small. The average attendance was not more than four or five, and the highest number, which was shortly before his resignation, was nine. In 1800, the Presbytery agreed to constitute themselves into a Synod, consisting of the four Presbyteries of Philadelphia, Cambridge, Chartiers, and Kentucky, (now Miami.) The first meeting of the Synod was at Philadelphia, May 20, 1801. It was opened with a sermon by Mr. Marshall, who was chosen the first moderator. Mr. Francis Pringle, who had lately arrived from Ireland, was chosen clerk, which office he held till May, 1827, when, being far advanced in years, he resigned, and his place was filled by the election of the Rev. A. Heron, D.D., who again was succeeded, in 1843, by the lie v. T. Hanna, D.D., the clerk of Synod at the time of the late union. From the time of the constitution of the Synod till 1811, no- thing is known to the writer as having occurred requiring any special notice. Ministers continued to arrive from Scotland and Ireland, a few by appointment, but more at their own option. Among those arriving in the early part of this century may be mentioned the Rev. Drs. Alexander Bullions, Robert Bruce, Peter Bullions, W. C. Brownlee, Joseph Shaw, Andrew Stork, Messrs. Francis Pringle, Thomas Smith, Alexander Gordon, Peter Campbell, Alexander Wilson, Alexander Donan, John France, John Dickie, Andrew Isaac, T. Ketcher, and James Millar. The evil of slaveholding had engaged the attention of the THE CnURCII MEMORIAL. 39 Seceders in Scotland at least as early as 178S. Tins subject came before the General Synod at their meeting in May, and in the noble efforts employed at that time to break the shackles from the slave, they took a prominent part. They "expressed their hearty concurrence with their fellow-subjects throughout the kingdom, who have declared their abhorrence of that infa- mous system, so inconsistent with religion and humanity, and their earnest wishes that measures may be speedily adopted for the abolition of it," etc. One of the original Presbyteries of the Associate Church in the United States had its location in Ken- tucky, and as early as the year 1800 they sent up an address to the Presbytery of Pennsylvania, asking that a warning might be issued against the sin of slaveholding. With this request the Presbytery complied, and in their warning declare slaveholding to be a moral evil and unjustifiable. They also urge the instruction of the people in regard to this sin. so as to render their continu- ance in it more inexcusable, and a proceeding to Church cen- sure on that account more expedient. The efforts of the breth- ren in Kentucky not promising much for the arresting of this evil, they soon afterwards (1804) removed with their congrega- tions to the adjoining free States of Ohio and Indiana. As, how- ever, there were Associate congregations in the States of Vir- ginia, North Carolina, South Carolina, and Tennessee, and as members of the Church were beginning to involve themselves in this sin, some of these people in Greene county, Ohio, who had fled from the contamination, solicited the Synod at their meeting, May, 1808, to exclude slaveholders from the commun- ion of the Church. This led in the end to the adoption of an Act in 1811 by the Synod at Canonsburg, declaring it to be a moral evil to hold negroes in bondage, directing the members of the Church under their inspection to set them at liberty ; or if this were rendered impracticable, to treat them as if free in respect to food, clothing, instruction, and wages. They also de- clared those who refused compliance with the above directions, 40 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. unworthy of the fellowship of the Church. The provisions of this act not being complied with, the Synod, after having had the subject before them for a number of years, at another meet- ing at Canonsburg, May, 1831, passed a more stringent act by which all slaveholders were forthwith excluded from her com- munion. This act was regarded by a few members as rash and severe. They accordingly protested against it, but it was gen- erally understood that the most, if not all of them, were satisfied with the view taken of this act in a letter addressed by the Syn- od in May, 1840, to the people under their inspection in the Presbytery of the Carolinas. In this letter some allowance was made for those who might not be able to effect the emancipation of their slaves, provided they would agree to what was called a moral emancipation. This letter, however, was so far from conciliating the feelings of Southern slaveholders, that a mob of them visited with Lynch law the brother who was appointed to be the bearer of it, and that, too, while he was engaged with a congregation in the public worship of God. The effect of these proceedings of the Synod was to purge the Church of the sin of slaveholding, and at the same time entirely to extinguish the Associate Presbytery of the Carolinas. The Synod having had no very fixed and definite rules of discipline, had an overture prepared and handed down to the Presbyteries, which was enacted as a Book of Discipline in 1817. This contains an article on censurable offenses, such as the pro- faning of the Sabbath, the abuse of spirituous liquors, profaning the name of God in common conversation, the abuse of lots, the use of charms, the diversions of the stage, promiscuous dancing, etc., etc. This book was found in various respects defective, and a substitute for it was adopted by the Synod, in 1843. It was, however, stated by the committee, as their design, that the part on censurable offenses should be incorporated in the new book without alteratton, except in the articles on the publication of THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 41 the purpose of marriage, and on slaveholding, which had been changed by the enactments of the Synod. The Synod, also, in 1844, directed that this part of the old book should be printed in connection with the new one, which, however, probably through some oversight, was not done. At the meeting of the Associate Synod, at Huntington, Penn- sylvania, May, 1820, Dr. John Anderson having resigned his professorship in the Theological Seminary, it was agreed to es- tablish two seminaries : one at Philadelphia, of which Dr. Banks was chosen the professor ; and a second at Canonsburg, of which Dr. Ramsey was chosen professor, the ensuing year. At this time, a union of the two branches of the Secession in Scotland took place, and a subsequent union of the Protestors with the Constitutional Presbytery, which caused a good deal of discussion in the American Synod. This subject came before the Synod in 1822, and was not finally disposed of till 1835, thus occupying their attention, more or less, for thirteen years. After waiting one or two years for official information respecting the union of the Burgher and Antiburgher Synods, and after some debates respecting the terms of that union, the Synod, at Philadelphia, May, 1826, agreed to condemn "said union as a defection from a covenanted Reformation." This action of the Synod was strenuously opposed by a large minority, and was only carried by the casting vote of the moderator, Dr. Ramsey. The grounds of this condemnation were stated at the next meet- ing, and it was agreed that the Synod should continue in union with the Protestors. The Protestors and Constitutional Pres- bytery having united under a Testimony called the Testimony of the Original Seceders, the Synod, in 1832, Resolved, That we continue in union with said Synod of Original Seceders, as constituted under said Testimony. Against this decision there were several dissents; and in 1835 an explanatory act un- adopted, stating that, in the former act in relation to the Original Seceders, " it was not intended formally to approve of their 4 42 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Testimony respecting the magistrates' power circa sacra, and national covenanting; " and for this, and other reasons which are assigned, it is added, " that all ministers and members, emigrat- ing from that Synod into our bounds, should declare their ad- herence to our Testimony, in order to church fellowship with us." On the passage of this explanatory act, the most of the dissenters present agreed to withdraw their dissents. And thus this long controversy was terminated. At the aforementioned meeting of the Synod, at Huntingdon, 1820, information was given, by a letter from the Rev. Joseph Kerr, of the Associate Reformed Synod of the West, that they had appointed the Rev. Matthew Henderson, (son of the Rev. M. Henderson, before mentioned,) J. Riddel, and Joseph Kerr, to meet with such members of the Associate Synod as might be appointed to confer with them on the subject of a union between the two Synods. Messrs. James Ramsey, William Wilson, and Robert Bruce, were appointed a committee for the aforesaid purpose. At the next meeting of the Synod, at Pittsburgh, May, 1821, the committee reported six propositions which had been the subject of discussion. These had been proposed by the brethren of the Associate Reformed committee. To the 1st, 5th, and 6th, the Associate committee assented ; but not unanimously to the 2d, 3d, and 4th. The propositions were as follows : 1. We believe tbat the Scriptures of the Old and New Testaments are the word of God, and the perfect and only rule of Christian faith and practice. 2. We shall retain the Westminster Confession of Faith, Catechisms, larger and shorter, and Form of Presbyterian Church Government, as received by both Churches. 3. We shall exhibit an illustration and defense of the doctrines of the Confession of Faith, in which we shall expose and testily against error generally, but more particularly the errors of the present day. 4. We assert that public religious vowing or covenanting is a moral duty, to be practised when the circumstances of providence require it. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 43 But as the duty, from its nature, is occasional, not stated, and there is, and may be. a diversity of sentiment respecting the reasonableness of it, we agree, that while no obstruction is thrown in the way, every scrip- tural facility shall be afforded to those who have clearness to proceed in it ; while its observance shall not be required of any, in order to church communion. 5. We agree that the united Church shall prepare a formula. 6. We propose that the united Synod be called " The Associate Synod of the Presbyterian Church.'' The committee having reported, the Synod expressed their satisfaction with their fidelity and diligence, and their own en- couragement to use further endeavors to accomplish so desirable an object as the union which had been proposed. They also appointed Messrs. Allison, Murray, and Bruce, a committee of conference, to obtain a more explicit declaration of the brethren on the 2d, 3d, and 4th articles of the basis of union. When the Synod next met, at Philadelphia, May, 1822, a letter was received from Messrs. J. Riddel and Joseph Kerr, with an addition by Mr. R. Bruce. It appears from this com- munication, that none of the Associate committee had attended the conference, except Mr. Bruce. In this letter, the Associate Reformed committee propose — 1st. That the Associate Synod should receive the Constitution and Standards of the Associate Reformed Church, comprehending the West- minster Confession of Faith, Catechisms, larger and shorter, Form of Church Government, and Discipline, with the Directory for Worship ; and, 2d. That the Associate Reformed Church should receive the Testi- mony of the Associate Church, and make it a term of communion, so far as it may be understood : Provided, what relates to the purchase of the common benefits of life should be erased ; and also in part 1st, section 14th, the requirement of members to give their assent to certain testi- monies of former times, with which few have au opportunity of making themselves acquainted. It was proposed, also, that the testimony should be enlarged by testifying against Hopkinsian and other errors; and that the Associate Synod should have liberty to alter the phraseology used by the Associate Reformed Church in speaking of psalmody, by using 44 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. more unexceptionable language. A query was also proposed respecting religious covenants, and as to the authority of the Church to bind pos- terity to embrace her views, whether approved or not ; and whether the application of this principle to the perpetual obligation of the National Covenant of Scotland, and the League of the three kingdoms, must be a sine qua non of union. The Associate Synod, in her answer to this letter, expressed her gratified feelings, and her hope that the Lord was about to heal the breach which had so long separated them from their brethren. No objection was made to the acceptance of the Westminster Standards, as altered by the Associate Reformed Church, so far as relates to doctrine ; the Associate Church having already received them, with the exception of the same things which had been altered by these brethren. Still, the Synod expressed it as her preference, that these Standards should be retained without alteration. For this, some reasons were assigned, of which the chief one is, that it would be a tes- timony of our unity with other branches of the Church holding the same Standards. The Synod did not refuse to erase the ar- ticle on the purchase of common benefits, but proposed a substi- tute for the consideration of the two Synods. This substitute has since been published in the Testimony as a foot note. She expressed her willingness in regard to what had been proposed relating to former Testimonies of the Church, to leave to her brethren such a mode of recognizing the past exertions of the Church in the cause of Christ, as they might judge best. All the alteration proposed in the Article of the Constitution of the Associate Reformed Church on Psalmody, was the erasure of the word merely, so that it would read, " No human composures," etc. As to the query proposed, through some oversight, it was not clearly and fully expressed. To the most material part of it, the Synod answered, "That the covenant engagements of the Church in times past are binding on posterity, so far as these are agreeable to the word of God, and suited to their circum- stances, and no farther." THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 45 A reply was made to this letter by a committee of the Asso- ciate Reformed Synod, to which the writer of these pages can- not at present obtain access. In an answer to it, addressed to the Associate Reformed Synod, by a committee of the Asso- ciate Synod, after expressing their desire for union, and re- ferring to the hopes excited by the friendly and liberal communication of the Associate Reformed committee, made to the Synod at its last meeting, they go on to say: "We cannot but regret the unhappy effect which the reply of your committee to our communication has produced, wherever it has been read, which reply you have now sanctioned, and adopted as your own. The general style and manner of that reply, it is feared, is unfavorable to union." A respectable number of the Associate Reformed brethren, apprehending an unfavorable termination to the efforts for union, by their Synod's adoption of this letter, made vigorous opposition to it, but it was adopted by a majority. The Associate Synod unanimously voted the letter unsatisfactory ; and though in the letter of their committee above referred to, they defended themselves against the animad- versions made on their former communication, the correspond- ence had assumed such a character, that any further measures to effect a union at that time were dropped. The whole corres- pondence was published, and embraces much which would be interesting, but it extended to about 30 pages, and would be too voluminous to be embraced in a brief historical sketch. At this period (1822) the Presbyteries of the Associate Church were seven in number, viz : Philadelphia, Cambridge, Chartiers, Miami, the Carolinas, Ohio, and Allegheny. The number of ordained ministers was 4-1 ; licentiates, 8 ; congrega- tions, Gl ; families, 2,974; communicants, 7,378. There were 5 theological students in the Western, and 4 in the Eastern Seminary. Dr. Banks was called to his rest May 10th, 182G, and with his decease terminated the Eastern Seminary, or rather it was united with the Western, and Dr. Ramsey was soon 46 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. afterwards chosen to the professorship in the united Institution, which office he discharged alone until 1835, when a second pro- fessor was elected, and entered upon the duties of his office. In 1826, the number of students under Dr. Ramsey's instructions, was 12. They had increased to about an average of 20, at the time of the election of a second professor, and since then have fluctuated between 22, the lowest, and 39, the highest number in attendance. In 1825, the Synod, finding that Hopkinsian and Unitarian errors were prevailing extensively in New England, and spread- ing from thence through other parts of the country, published a Warning against these errors, particularly against the Hopkin- sian system, which was in its most prominent features a revival of the old and exploded system of Pelagius. This part of the Warning was written by Dr. Heron. It was able, seasonable, and, it is hoped, useful. The secession in the United States was for many years a missionary field, depending for ministers, and to some extent for pecuniary aid, upon the mother Church in Scotland ; but having acquired more strength, she began about this time to enter with earnestness upon the work of missions. At first, however, her limited means confined her efforts to the domestic field. At an early period missionaries had been sent to the Carolinas, who had been the means of forming a Presbytery in that region. In 1822, two were sent to Canada West, who labored for a short time in the region now occupied by the Presbytery of Stamford. In the year 1825, commenced a series of missions to Missouri and the far West, which were continued from year to year, until they have been the means of organizing six Presbyteries in these new States, and some of them among the largest in the Associate Church. These domestic missions have been sup- ported at an annual expense of about six or seven thousand dol- lars, chiefly raised by contributions. At the meeting of the Synod at Pittsburgh, May 27, 1829, THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 47 according to arrangements previously made, the members en- gaged in public solemn covenanting. Mr. (now Dr.) Heron preached from Psalms lxxvi, 2 : " Vow and pay unto the Lord your God." The bond was signed by twenty-nine ministers, all that were present except four, whose circumstances at the time prevented their uniting in this duty with their brethren. One or more of these engaged in this duty at a subsequent meeting. The bond was also signed by fifteen elders, five probationers, and two students of theology. As few of the eastern brethren were present, it was resolved that an opportunity should be afforded to them to engage in this duty at the next meeting at Philadelphia. Accordingly, at that meeting, after sermon by Dr. James Martin from Neh. ix, 38 : " And because of all this we make a sure covenant," those not present on the former occasion, en«-a<*ed in covenanting. At this time the bond was signed by DO ° ten ministers, ten elders, three probationers, and three students of theology. A few members of the congregation united in this duty with the Synod, and some, ministers and others, who had en^a^ed in it before, signified their concurrence. One design of the Synod was to encourage their congregations to follow their example. How far this design was successful, we have not the means of ascertaining, but we believe that at different times this ordinance has been observed in the greater part of the oldest and largest congregations of the Associate Church ; for exam- ple, in the congregations of Cambridge, Argyle, New York, Philadelphia, Chartiers, Service, Frankfort, North and South Buffalo, Mt. Pleasant, Unity, Massies, and many others. In the year 1842, the Synod made a commencement of mis- sionary effort in the foreign field. A single missionary was sent to explore a portion of South America, with a view to fix upon some suitable field of labor. The missionary, (Mr. Banks,) having visited the island of Trinadad, reported this as a suitable field, and he, together with the Rev. David Gordon, were accord- ingly appointed to occupy it. Mr. Gordon was accompanied by 48 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. his wife and Miss Beveridge. After the death of Mr. Gordon, Rev. John Scott was appointed, who soon returned. In 1848, the Rev. W. H. Andrew was sent, but remained only a short time. Mr. Andrew Thompson, and some other private mem- bers of the Church, were also sent ; but in consequence of the sickness and death of some of the missionaries, and the return of others to the United States, the Synod has not had for a year or two past any missionaries of their own communion at their stations upon the Island. These stations have been dependent on the labors of a missionary of the United Presbyterian Church of Scotland, to whose support the Synod contributes $400 per annum. The Synod have since sent a missionary to California. They have also sent two or three to labor in Oregon. They have a Presbytery consisting of three ministerial members, who have families, in Sialkot, Hindoostan. But as a more full ac- count of these missions will be given in another part of this work, it will not be necessary to be more particular here. A communication was received by the Synod at Xenia, May, 1851, from the brethren of the Reformed Dissenting Presby- tery, proposing a union with the Associate Church. In this paper they give their views on certain points respecting which there might be a real or apparent discrepancy between them and the Synod. In consequence of the action of the Synod upon their paper, they subsequently, with the exception of one mem- ber of their Presbytery, became incorporated with the Associate Church. Another union was effected at the meeting of the Synod at Albany, May, 1854. Certain difficulties had agitated for a num- ber of years the Presbyteries of Cambridge, Albany and Ver- mont, and to a limited extent, some other portions of the Church. The origin of these difficulties dates as far back as 1831. At that time three anonymous pamphlets made their appearance in succession, animadverting with severity upon the proceedings of ?ome of the church courts, and the character of some individu- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 49 als. No judicial notice was taken of these publications till the year 1836, when some circumstances occurred which were thought to require the bringing of the reputed author of them to trial. Without attempting a history of the proceedings in this case, which would probably be neither interesting nor profit- able, it will be sufficient to state that, between the years 1838 and 1840, they resulted in a division of the Presbyteries of Al- bany and Cambridge, and the withdrawment of all the ministe- rial members of the Presbytery of Vermont. These constituted themselves into a Synod, claiming to be the true Associate Synod of North America. As the cause of this division was not difference of doctrine, but the dissatisfaction of a minority with the administration of discipline, hopes were entertained that the breach might be healed ; and a correspondence was accordingly commenced in May, 1850, which was continued till 1854, when a reunion was effected. At this time the Associate Church consisted of 21 Presbyteries, 147 ordained ministers, (licentiates not enumerated,) 274 congregations, 8,422 families, 20,G17 communicants. At the period of the late union with the General Synod of the Associate Reformed Church, there were 21 Presbyteries, 198 ministers, 33 licentiates, 293 congrega- tions, 10,621 families, 23,505 communicants, 1,444 baptisms du- ring the year, 2,120 increase of members, 1,109 decrease. To- tal contributions, $12,585.93 : average to each member, 54 cts. As an account of the union by which the United Pre.-byte- rian Church was constituted May, 1858, will be given in another part of this work, we shall only subjoin in addition to that al- ready given, an account of some of the decisions of the Associ- ate Synod on questions to which her attention has at different times been called. The question having been raised in different parts of the Church as to the right of members to present adopted children for baptism, it was debated in the Synod for some years, and finally decided in 1829, against this supposed right. The de- 50 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. cision was as follows : " The natural relation of parentage alone warrants the presentation of a child for baptism ; and this rela- tion entitles the child of a professing parent in all cases to the privilege. This appears to us the plain import of the Scrip- tures. See 1 Cor. vii, 14; Gen. vii, 7; and also of our Con- fession of Faith, lGGth question, Larger Catechism." This decision was not satisfactory to a respectable minority, and in 1851, was rescinded, and Sessions were left to act according to their own conscientious convictions in respect to such cases. The same question came before the Synod again at their last meeting, being proposed for advice by the Presbytery of Sial- kot, in Hindoostan. That Presbytery was desirous to know whether it would be proper to baptize the orphan children of heathen parents received into the families of the missionaries. A decision of this question, agreeably to a recommendation of the committee of Bills and Overtures, was deferred for the pres- ent, and the matter commended to the serious and prayerful consideration of the members of the Synod, with a view to its future settlement. In 1843, a question came before the Synod in respect to the ordination of a minister where only one ministerial member of the Presbytery officiated in the ordination. After a protracted discussion, it was decided the next year by a vote of forty-nine against twenty-two, that such ordination, though irregular in its form, was valid as to its substance. In 1840, the Synod passed an act respecting the traffic in ardent spirits, " advising that no member of the Church retail them for ordinary use, that Sessions deal with such members of the Church as may be engaged in such traffic, in order to induce them to desist, and that all members of the Church refuse any encouragement to those who follow such an employment." In 1843, a lengthy and able report " on the manufacture and sale of ardent spirits," prepared by Messrs. Scroggs and Rogers, was presented to the Synod. The resolutions appended to it were THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 51 unanimously adopted, and the report ordered to be printed. The following are the resolutions : " 1. That Church Sessions be directed to deal with such members of the Church as are found engaged in the manufacture or vending of ardent spirits, under such circumstances as are calculated to bring a reproach upon their profession, and thus constitute an offense in the Scriptural sense of the term, and that such persons be required to abandon it. 2. That it be recommended to Sessions to ex- ercise the greatest care in carrying out this resolution." This subject also came before the Synod at their last meeting subse- quently to the consummation of the union. The following reso- lutions were adopted in a committee of the whole, and referred to the General Assembly of the United Church : 1. Resolved, That our ministers be directed in an especial manner to call the attention of their people to the dangerous consequences to them- selves, and the evil influence of their example upon others, arising from the ordinary use of intoxicating liquors. 2. Resolved, That Sessions be directed to admonish those who indulge in their common use, and should they persevere in it to the disgrace of their profession, to suspend them from the communion of the Church. 3. Resolved, That in the judgment of this Synod, the manufacturing or vending of intoxicating liquors for the purpose of being used as a common beverage, is a censurable offense. In 1845, in compliance with the purport of various memori- als, the Synod addressed a pastoral letter warning their people against the sin of voting for immoral characters. The same subject was brought before the Synod again in 1853, and a re- port was adopted in which the great iniquity of voting for wick- ed men is pointed out, and ministers are particularly enjoined to instruct their people in reference to this matter, and to warn them against being partakers of other men's sins by exalting vile men to high places. The course pursued by the government for promoting the cause of slavery, and the outrages perpetrated by the friends ot that system, were regarded by the Synod of 1856, as loudly £>Z THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. calling for some action. A report was accordingly adopted, condemning in very pointed terms, 1st, Slavery itself; 2d, The fugitive slave law ; 3d, The gross and brutal attack upon Sena- tor Sumner ; 4th, The outrages in Kansas. This report the clerk of Synod was directed to forward to the President of the United States, and to each House of Congress. At a very early period, the attention of the Associate Synod of Scotland was called to the subject of Free Masonry. Some of her members had joined Free Mason Lodges, and by such discoveries as they obtained from them, and by other means, the Synod became satisfied that an oath was administered to those initiated, which, both as to its matter and form, was sinful. For this and other evils attending these associations, the members of the Church were warned against all connection with them. Since that time, all such as are known to belong to Free Mason societies, and who refuse to renounce their connection with them, have been excluded from the communion of the Associ- ate Church. At the time when certain outrages, committed by this society in the United States, had brought a general odium upon the fraternity, some other secret societies of a kindred character began to come more prominently into public notice, and multitudes were drawn into these associations. The Synod therefore felt herself called on to warn her members against uniting with them. Sessions had all along acted on the princi- ple that the act excluding Free Masons from the fellowship of the Church was applicable to all other secret oath-bound associ- ations ; but the alarming increase of such societies was such, that it was judged proper to issue a specific warning against some of the most prominent of them. A report was accordingly adopted in 1846, respecting the Order of the Sons of Temper- ance. In this report, this society is not placed on the same footing with those of Free Masonry and Odd Fellowship, but for various reasons, such as the vain parade of the society at funerals and processions, their secrecy, the danger of such soci- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 53 eties to the community, and the countenance they give to other societies of a worse character, the members of the Church are warned to avoid connection with them; such as may have joined them are to be dealt with to give up such connection ; and if any prove refractory, their cases were to be reported to the next meeting of Synod, that it may be seen what further measures are necessary in the premises. At the same meeting, a report on Odd Fellowship was ac- cepted, and the following resolution adopted : " That we regard connection with the Order of Odd Fellows in the same light as with Free Masons, and equally deserving the censures of the Church." Both these reports give a brief account of the socie- ties to which they refer, and weighty reasons against Christians uniting with them. They were presented by the same commit- tee, and signed by Rev. James Rodgers, D.D., chairman of the committee. Notice was given to the Synod in 1857, of another secret so- ciety, called the American Protestant Association, and a com- mittee was appointed to report respecting it. The committee, however, could not, without more time, obtain all the information which they desired, and another committee was appointed to report at the next meeting. The Synod, in the meantime, "re- solved, that in their judgment, formed in view of all the evi- dence in their possession, the American Protestant Association, on various grounds, is highly objectionable, and particularly on the ground of the secrecy to which its members are understood to be solemnly pledged." The subject of an improved version of the Psalms had en- gaged the attention of both the Associate and the Associate Reformed Churches for several years past. Several editions of the Psalms have been published, with amendments, and with new versions of some Psalms in various meters. None of these appear to be in all respects satisfactory, but the impression of the importance of this measure has become so strong, and so 54 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. general, that it is not likely to be dropped, but to be one of the first subjects which will engage the attention of the United Church. HI. — A Sketch of the Associate Reformed Church. The Associate Reformed Church had its origin in a union, which was agreed upon at Pequa, Pennsylvania, June 13, 1782, between the Associate and the Reformed Presbyterian Churches; and took its title from a union of the names of the two bodies thus originally composing it — The Associate Reformed Church. The Associate was the oldest of these Churches, in this coun- try, and at that time comprised the two Presbyteries of Penn- sylvania and New York, — both under the jurisdiction of the Associate Synod of Scotland. As early as the year 1736, that Synod had received urgent applications for the word and ordi- nances of grace from persons residing in Londonderry, Chester county, Pennsylvania, and others who had removed from differ- ent parts of Great Britain ; but, though various steps were taken to comply with these applications, which were earnestly repeated from time to time, nothing effectual was done until the year 1753, when the Synod solemnly set apart Alexander Gellatly and Andrew Arnot for this work, and sent them forth, more particularly to the province of Pennsylvania, with power to organize congregations, and constitute themselves into a Presby- tery. They did not, however, reach their field until the follow- ing year, when they set themselves, with great diligence and zeal, to their mission, and in November of that year formed themselves into a Presbytery under the name of the Presbytery of Pennsylvania. From this small beginning the work gradually spread. A THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 55 wide and needy field called for cultivation. More ministers were anxiously asked for, and promptly sent out from Scotland and the north of Ireland. New congregations were organized ; and at length the field had so extended, and the number of min- isters so increased, that a division of the Presbytery was called for. Accordingly, on the 20th of May, 177G, the Presbytery of New York was organized, and the two Presbyteries gave themselves to their great work with renewed energy and success. Thus far, connection had been carefully kept up with the Synod in Scotland ; and though it was scarcely possible for any to attend its meetings, yet the reports of the Presbyteries were regularly sent to the Synod for review, and all their acts were subject to its approbation or censure. When, however, the war of the Revolution broke out, this was entirely interrupted ; and partaking largely of the spirit of independence of the mother country,* which at that time so generally prevailed, and deeply feeling, also, the desirableness and duty of greater oneness among those of like precious faith, in this country especially, the min- isters and people early began to agitate the question of union between the different bodies of the Presbyterian family. First, the Burgher and Antiburgher portions of the Associated Church entered into a union, which, though not approved by the Synod at home, was well received throughout the colonies, and was followed with happy results. Not long before this, also, a union had been spoken of with the Presbyterian Synod of New York and Philadelphia. This body, which held its first united meet- ing in 1758, and has since grown into the General Assembly of the Presbyterian Church, had many prominent ministers and members in its ranks from Scotland and Ireland, and had not, at that time, very generally received any other than a Scripture Psalmody in the worship of God. Their Standards, also, were largely formed on the model of those of the Church of Scotland, * Rev. R. Annan and others served as chaplains in the American army. 5Q THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. and thus the two bodies had many things, in faith and practice, in common. But after some consultation, and for reasons that do not fully appear at this lapse of time, the matter was dis- missed, and each body girded itself for its own peculiar and proper work. Still, the idea of union was a cherished one. Men of piety and worth, like the elder Dr. John Mason, of New York ; Rev. James Proudfit, first of Pequa, Pennsylvania, and afterwards of Salem, New York ; Rev. Robert Annan, and others of kin- dred spirit, were alive to the letter and spirit of the Great Intercessor's prayer, and fervently prayed and labored to have God build up his Jerusalem in this western world, and gather the dispersed of his Israel into one. Accordingly, negotiations were early entered into with the brethren composing the Re- formed (or Covenanter) Presbytery. This Presbytery was organized in 1770, and was composed of Rev. Messrs. Matthew Lind, Alexander Dobbin, and John Cuthbertson. With them, as with the Associate brethren, there were numerous vacancies and missionary stations scattered over a vast extent of country, and the inability to give them any adequate supply was painfully seen and felt. In the hope of being better able to meet these necessities, and at the same time form a union, in which the truth and order of God's house might be maintained, and greater good done, these two bodies entered into serious and prayerful negotiations for a union. Some twenty conventions or meetings w r ere held in reference to it; and at length the Reformed Pres- bytery, the Associate Presbytery of New York, and nearly all the members of the Presbytery of Pennsylvania, came together into one organic body, and thus gave rise to the Associate Re- formed Church. The act was agreed to, at Pequa, in June, 1782, and the Synod was formally constituted, in Philadelphia, on the 30th of the following October. The platform or basis of this union was very brief and simple, and was as follows : THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 57 1. That Jesus Christ died for the elect. 2. That there is an appropriation in the nature of faith. 3. That the gospel is addressed, indiscriminately, to sinners of man- kind. 4 That the righteousness of Christ is the alone condition of the cov- enant of grace. 5. That civil government originates with God the Creator, and not with Christ the Mediator. 6. That the administration of the kingdom of Providence is given into the hands of Jesus Christ the Mediator: and magistracy, the ordi- nance appointed by the Moral Governor of the world to be the prop of civil order among men, as well as other things, is rendered subservient, by the Mediator, to the welfare of his spiritual kingdom, the Church, and has the sanctified use of it and of every common benefit, through the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ. 7. That the law of nature, and the moral law revealed in the Scrip- tures, are substantially the same, although the latter expresses the will of God more evidently and clearly than the former ; and, therefore, ma- gistrates, among Christians, ought to be regulated by the general direc- tory of the Word, as to the execution of their office. 8. That the qualifications of justice, veracity, etc., required in the law of nature for the being of a magistrate, are also more explicitly revealed as necessary, in the Holy Scriptures. But a religious test, any further than an oath of fidelity, can never be essentially necessary for the being of a magistrate, except where the people make it a condition of government. 9. That both parties, when united, shall adhere to the Westminster Confession of Faith, the Catechisms, the Directory for Worship, and Propositions concerning Chuich Government. 10. That they shall claim the full exercise of church discipline, with- out dependence upon foreign judicatories. The body thus formed, was made up of three Presbyteries and fourteen ministers, and immediately set itself to the great work to which it felt called in the providence and by the grace of God. After much labor, and with great care, the Synod, at its meeting in Greencastle, Pennsylvania, May 31, 17!)!), issued its formal Standards. This work was the result of many meet- ings and of much prayerful deliberation. It retained tin- West- 5 58 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. minster Confession of Faith, and the Catechisms, larger and shorter, unchanged, except in the matter of the civil magistrate's power in relation to religious things ; and in this the XXI, the XXII, and the XXXI Chapters, were altered so as to express on this subject the present faith of the Church, without any ad- ditional testimony or explanation. Under the things forbidden in the second Commandment, also, the word tolerating was changed to authorizing. In all other things these venerable formularies of truth were left unaltered. The Westminster Directory for Worship, and the Propositions of Church Govern- ment, were not changed ; and the Rules of Discipline, and the Forms of Process, were merely systematized, for greater con- venience in the administration of Church authority. The book, as thus prepared, and as it has continued in force ever since, was styled "The Constitution and Standards of the Associate Reformed Church in North America." As thus constituted, the Associate Reformed Church went forward and prospered. Its increase was rapid and large. Its Churches were soon found scattered over the country extending from the Canadas to the Carolinas, and south-west as far as Kentucky; and a promising and useful future seemed opening up. In this state of things, and for the purpose of promoting (as was thought) local interests better, it was early proposed to have the Synod divided into subordinate Synods, and that dele- gates should be chosen by each Presbytery to attend an annual assembly, which should be called a General Synod. This pro- position carried, at the meeting in New York, October 21, 1802, and the four following Synods were constituted, viz : New York, Pennsylvania, Scioto, and the Carolinas. These Synods held their appointed meetings; and on the 30th of May, 1804, the first General Synod of the Associate Reformed Church met in Greencastle, Pennsylvania, and was opened with a sermon by the Rev. John M. Mason, from Titus i : 9, " Holding fast the faithful word." The eight Presbyteries of Synod, viz : Wash- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 59 ington, New York, Philadelphia, Big Spring, Kentucky, Mo- non^ahela, and First and Second Carolinas, were represented. Rev. Alexander Dobbin was chosen moderator, and Rev. James Gray clerk. The General Synod, as now constituted, was declared in the Standards of the Church to be, " in every respect, to the par- ticular Synods, what the latter are to the Presbyteries within their bounds." Its province was also declared to be " to decide questions respecting doctrine and discipline ; to bear testimony against errors and immoralities ; to correspond with other Churches ; and, in general, to preside over the religious inter- ests of the Church at large." It was in reality, however, little more than any one of the subordinate Synods ; and as it had the power of transacting their business, it generally superseded them, or made their meetings of little consequence or interest, until at length they were generally given up. In being, how- ever, a delegated body from the different Presbyteries, the Churches being widely scattered, and the means of intercommu- nication being slow, difficult, and expensive, it began, ere long, to be felt that there was an unfortunate centralizing of power ; that distant Presbyteries could be only feebly represented, and often not represented at all ; and that there were tendencies, in the centres of influence, to courses, especially on the subjects of communion, psalmody, and the exercise of ecclesiastical author- ity, which the extremities could neither approve nor check or control. From these and other causes, unhappy feelings were excited, and in 1820 the entire Synod of Scioto withdrew from all connection with the General Synod; and in the following year, the Synod of the Carolinas asked to be constituted an independent Synod. This request was granted ; and thus the General Synod had only the Synods of Pennsylvania and New York left, to make up its general body. About the same time, propositions which had been made for a union with the Reformed Dutch Church, and considered at length, were laid aside. In 60 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. the year 1821, at the meeting of Synod in Philadelphia, over- tures were received from the General Assembly of the Pres- byterian Church for an organic union, and committees were appointed by both bodies to conduct the negotiations to a proper issue. These committees, in joint action, reported a plan which proposed, as the basis of union, that " the different Pres- byteries of the Associate Reformed Church should either retain their separate organization, or be amalgamated with those of the General Assembly, at their own choice " ; that the Theological Seminary of the General Assembly, and the Theological Semi- nary of the Associate Reformed Church, should be consolidated ; and that the theological library and funds belonging to the As- sociate Reformed Church should be transferred to the Seminary at Princeton. This singular plan was sent in overture to the Presbyteries for final action, — thirteen members of Synod voting for that course, and three against — (these three being George Barber, an elder from the Presbytery of Washington, Rev. D. C. McLaren, D.D., moderator of the late General Synod, and Rev. James Chrystee, D.D., now Professor of Theology in the Reformed Presbyterian Church.) This overture, though not taken into the consideration of the Presbyteries of the General Assembly, so far as is known, was before the Presbyteries of the Associate Reformed Church ; and at the meeting of General Synod in Philadelphia, May 15, 1822, these Presbyteries re- ported their decision, — a decision which, in all just ecclesiastical authority, ought to have been final and absolute, as settling the question. All of them were friendly, as the Associate Reformed Church has ever been, to union, on proper grounds and terms ; but of the five Presbyteries, three — viz : Washington, Saratoga, and Big Spring, — reported unanimously, and with solemn re- monstrance, against the proposed union ; and two — viz : New York and Philadelphia — a qualified approval of it. After all this, however, the Synod, at this meeting, — a meeting at which comparatively few members were present, and one Presbytery THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 61 was not represented at all, — took up the matter, discussed it at length, and pressed it to a vote, when it appeared that seven members (one of whom, Dr. Lawrie, was the moderator of Synod, and six of whom were from one Presbytery,) voted for the union, five against it, and four were silent. The vote was declared to be in favor of the union ; the General Synod of the Associate Reformed Church was declared to be dissolved, — its members were invited to seats in a General Assembly to which they had never been chosen ; and the valuable library of the Associate Reformed Theological Seminary, in New York, was removed at once to the Theological Seminary at Princeton, New Jersey. Thus terminated the General Synod, but in no sense was the existence of the Church itself affected. Various circumstances had, indeed, combined to give individuals and sections of the Church an ability to do what had thus been accomplished ; but the great mass of the ministry and membership were true to her principles and devoted to her interests, and each of the different portions of the Church set themselves immediately to the work of perpetuating the body on true and proper grounds. First. The western portions, comprising more especially the Presbyteries of Monongahela and Ohio — (this Presbytery hav- ing been formed from the Presbytery of Kentucky, and held its first meeting in Xenia, Ohio, in April, 1817,) — in the Synod of Scioto, had early conferences, and at length, after prayerful deliberation, it was, on the motion of Rev. Joseph McElroy, (then of the First Associate Reformed Church, Pittsburgh, and now of the Scotch Presbyterian Church, New York,) resolved to organize a Synod independent of the General Synod, and to be known as The Associate Reformed Synod of the West. This step was carried out. The first meeting was held at Rush Creek Church, Ohio, April 27, 1820, and the Synod was constituted with prayer by the Rev. John Riddell, the senior minister present. Rev. John Steele was appointed stated clerk. 62 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Fourteen ministers and eight elders were in attendance, from the two Presbyteries that composed the Synod. But from this small beginning, on the clear and well denned principles of the Associate Reformed Church, as they had been understood and practised until about the year 1811, the Synod steadily and rapidly advanced. Numerous Churches were organized, new Presbyteries were formed, and at the meeting of Synod in Chil- licothe, October 21, 1839, it was deemed advisable to form a new Synod, to be styled The Second Associate Reformed Synod of the West. This second Synod held its first meet- ing at Hamilton, Ohio, in the following year, and was opened with a sermon by the Rev. P. Monfort, from Psalms cxviii : 22. Rev. S. P. Magaw was chosen the first stated clerk. On the 13th October, 1852, a third Synod was organized, to be called The Associate Reformed Synod of Illinois. Its first meeting was held at Oquawka, Illinois, and was opened with a sermon by Rev. D. Maedill, D.D., the oldest minister, from Col. iv: 17. Rev. William M. Graham was chosen the first moderator, and Rev. J. C. Porter clerk. These several Synods were placed under the care of a Gen- eral Synod, which was provided for in 1839. It was to be composed of delegates from the several Presbyteries ; to be without any appellate power, except in cases of doctrine ; and to have special charge of missions, home and foreign. Its first meeting was held in New Concord, Ohio, June 9, 1841, and was opened with a sermon by the Rev. J. Claybaugh, from 2d Cor. ii: 14. It was called The General Synod of the Asso- ciate Reformed Church of the West; and through the divine blessing upon its efforts, it has grown until now there are three Synods in its bounds, containing twenty-two Presbyteries, viz : twelve in the first Synod, six in the second, and four in the Synod of Illinois; 360 churches and congregations; 23,91G communicants ; two theological seminaries ; several colleges and THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 63 higher schools and academics ; and three foreign missionary fields. Second. The southern portion, composing the Synod of the. Carolinas, was, early after its withdrawal from the General Synod, in 1821, formed into a Synod to be called The Asso- ciate Reformed Synod of the South. This Synod, while it has held the views of the South, generally, on the subject of slavery, has always had a strict adherence, in profession and practice, to the principles of the Associate Reformed Church, in her best days ; and now embraces in its bounds eight Pres- byteries, sixty-five ministers, and has an efficient college* and theological seminary under its care, at Due West, Abbeville District, South Carolina. Third. The Synod of New York having never withdrawn from the General Synod, and not having acceded in any way to the act of union with the General Assembly, in 1822, occupied the ground, and claimed the rights, of the General Synod. Ac- cordingly, its three Presbyteries — viz : New York, Washington, and Saratoga, — met in Synod at Newburgh, New York, Sep- tember 13, 1822, was opened with a sermon by the Rev. James Scrimgeour, from Col. i: 28, and was constituted by him with prayer. Ten pastors and nearly as many ruling elders were present. Rev. James Mairs was chosen moderator, and Rev. R. Proudfit stated clerk. The Synod resolved, with entire unanim- ity, to hold on its course ; took steps to secure the restoration of the library and funds that had been removed by the General Synod's act of union ; and giving itself to its appropriate work, has continued its labors, until it now numbers six Presbyteries, forty-seven Churches, 7,3 G8 communicants, a theological semi- nary, and an efficient band of missionary laborers in the foreign field. These different Synods,— the General Synod of the West, * Er»kine College. 64 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. the Synod of the South, and the Synod of New York, — though thus thrown into an independent position by a variety of provi- dential circumstances, have, nevertheless, adhered to the same standards; and while distance and other causes have made it be deemed expedient for the Synod of the South to continue in its separate condition, yet a union of those Synods that were more nearly together, was often an object of earnest and prayerful de- sire. At length, after a series of friendly communications, such a union was effected between the Synod of New York and the General Synod of the West, in Pittsburgh, Pennsylvania, May 17, 1855, under the title of The General Synod of the Associate Reformed Church. The basis of this union was also concise and simple, and is as follows : 1. The Confession of Faith. Larger and Shorter Catechisms, together with the Government and Discipline of the Church, and the Directions for Public and Private Worship, as judicially ratified by the Associate Keformed Synod at Greencastle, May 31, 1799, shall be the constitution and standard of the United Church in all matters relating to doctrine, government, discipline and worship, with this exception, that the appel- late powers of the General Synod shall be confined simply to doctrine. 2. That the institutions and property, real and personal, now or here- after to be under the control of the respective Synods, whether the legal title is vested in them, or trustees, or individuals, shall so forever con- tinue without any interference in any manner, by the General Synod or any other particular Synod. In proposing these two items for the basis, the Synod of New York also said through Dr. McCarrell, the chairman of the com- mittee on Organic Union : " In order that our sister Synods of the West may understand our position on the subject of psalmo- dy and communion, we hereby declare : 1. That this Synod does adhere to the doctrine and constitution on the singing of Psalms, and that the received version is exclusively used in all our Churches, and that our ministers, when preaching in Churches of other denominations, are not authorized to use anything but a version of a portion of the Book of Psalms; and THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 60 2. That Sessions determine when communion with other Church- es, or members of other Churches, would be proper, and are not authorized to admit to the Lord's table any but such as would be received to full communion should they apply." This united body entered upon its work under unusually fa- vorable auspices. Its field of labor was large and inviting. Its Churches were in a peaceful and flourishing condition. Its sys- tem of operations, both in the home and foreign field, was well arranged, and every call for help to carry out its plans was lib- erally responded to by the body at large. And at the time of the consummation of the union with the Associate Church, in May last, it presented the pleasing spectacle of a harmonious and active Church, containing 4 Synods, 28 Presbyteries, 253 preachers of the everlasting gospel, 3G7 congregations, 14,787 families, 31,284 communicants, 3 theological seminaries, and G missionaries of the cross in the foreign field. Such was the Associate Reformed Church. Her beginning was small, but her latter end greatly increased. Precious fruits has she borne — precious is and will her memory be. And joyful indeed as all hearts may now be in the mingling of her clear and fruitful stream with a sister one, from a common fountain head, to help swell together the river that makes glad the city of our God, yet it is and will be well to cherish fond recollections of a pleasing past, and happy anticipations of an honored and useful future under the divine blessing, and with the new name that God hath given them— The United Presbyterian Church. THEOLOGICAL SEMINARIES. It is proper to notice, in this historical sketch, that the Asso- ciate Reformed Church has ever very deeply felt the importance of a thoroughly educated and well qualified ministry. For some time the Churches in this country were entirely depend- ent on the mother country for laborers in the Lord's vine- yard, and even at the time of the formation of the Associate 6Q THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Reformed Church, it is not known that a single minister of the uniting Churches had been educated out of Scotland or Ireland. But such a supply as could be obtained from thence, must of necessity always be inadequate and uncertain, and therefore the attention of good men was early directed to the good work of raising up from among themselves young men to preach the ev- erlasting gospel. The means of doing this, however, were very varied and limited. Sometimes a young man whose heart was set upon entering the ministry, pursued a course of reading and study for it under the care of his own pastor. Sometimes the Presbytery or Synod appointed one of their own number to have charge of such in their bounds as desired theological instruc- tion, and who would resort to him at his own house. And sometimes a minister would of his own accord open a school where all the various parts of study were pursued, until a young man would be prepared for licensure. Thus the early Presby- terian Church in this country had many of its young men pre- pared for the ministry by the Rev. William Tennent in a log building twenty feet square, which he himself erected for this purpose shortly after his settlement in Neshominy, Pennsylva- nia, in 172G, and which was long familiarly known as the " Log College." Thus, too, the Reformed Dutch Church had an able course of theological instruction given by the Rev. John II. Livingston, D.D., as early as almost the close of the Revolu- tionary war ; and the Associate Church, also, from the year 1793, by that eminently able and faithful man, Dr. John An- derson, at Service Creek, Pennsylvania. In all these cases, however, the intention was simply to furnish an opporlunity to the young men of their own Church to study. The course of study was very much such as the teacher himself thought best to prescribe — and his relation to the Church at large in this work was often rather that of a recognized, than of a formally appointed and inaugurated professor in the modern sense of the term. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 67 Into the spirit of these things the Associate Reformed Church early entered, and at the meeting of Synod in 179G, an act was passed in reference to a Synodical Fund, one of whose objects, it was distinctly stated, was to " assist pious youth, who from poverty cannot comfortably and successfully pursue their stud- ies, and the establishment of a professorship of theology for the instruction of such as design the holy ministry." Anxiously was the matter kept under consideration until the meeting in Phila- delphia in 1801, when the whole subject was ably reported on by a committee consisting of Rev. Messrs. Alex. Dobbin, Robt. Kerr, and John Young, father of the late Rev. John C. Young, D.D., of Danville, Kentucky. This committee recommended the appointment of a minister to visit Great Britain as an agent of Synod, to secure ministerial help for the wide field calling for supply, and to seek all possible assistance in the work of erecting a theological seminary, and furnishing it with a suita- ble library. After the Synod's engaging in solemn prayer, the Rev. John M. Mason, D.D., was chosen by ballot for the pur- pose, and sailed accordingly for New York on the 29th of the following July. He was absent about fifteen months, raised £970 19s. 2d., or nearly $5,000, the principal of which was ex- pended in the purchase of books for the intended seminary library, and prevailed upon five young ministers of the gospel and one licentiate, to accompany him to the needy fields opened up for labor in his native land. At the first General Synod, which was held in Greencastle. Pennsylvania, May 30, 1804, Dr. Mason was chosen Professor of Theology, and Rev. Messrs. R. Annan, J. Mclmsey, A. Proudfit, James Gray, and J. Laurie, the first Superintendents. New York was fixed upon as the proper place for the institu- tion, and it was agreed it should be opened on the first Monday of November, 1805. Accordingly, on that day, this institution commenced its course, and during that first session, eight stu- dents attended, viz : John Lind, J. M. Matthews, George Stew- 68 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. art, George Buchanan, Win. McMurray, James McChud, John H. Clarke, and Samuel Crothers — four from Pennsylvania, two from New York, and two from Kentucky. The course of study was to embrace four sessions of seven months each, and the Bible was to be the great text-book or subject of study. Thus well organized, with systematic rules and all the facili- ties for a theological institution of a high public order, this sem- inary entered upon its course, and almost at once took a stand that gave promise of most important fruit to the Church and the world. Many of its first as well as later students became men of mark, and it was resorted to by young men of various evangelical Churches — while its eminently successful course in- cited largely to the establishment of the theological seminary at Andover, Massachusetts, in 1808, and the seminary of the Pres- byterian Church at Princeton, New Jersey, in 1812. In 1809, Rev. Jas. M. Matthews, one of the first class of stu- dents, and the only one that survives still in a green old age, was elected Assistant Professor of Biblical Literature and Church History. This office he held until the year 1818, when he resigned. In 1821, also, Dr. Mason, after occupying the professor's chair with distinguished ability for sixteen years, and seeing himself greatly broken down with multiplied labors and unceasingly feeble health, was compelled to relinquish his place; and at length the institution which had been instru- mental, in whole or in part, in sending ninety-six men into the holy ministry, w r as, from various causes, under a necessity of be- ing suspended. It had done a great and good work, and many parts of the needy Church and field of the Lord Jesus Christ wept as its doors were closed. The want of a suitable place to bring forward a ministry of its own training, was immediately and keenly felt in all portions of the Church; and therefore, in 1825, the Synod of the West resolved to establish a theological seminary in its own bounds. The city of Pittsburgh was fixed upon as its place, and the Rev. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 69 Joseph Kerr, D.D., father of Prof. D. R. Kerr, D.D., and at the time pastor of the congregation of St. Clair, was chosen the first professor. Four years afterwards, and in the midst of great usefulness, this devoted servant of God departed this life. Somewhat informally, then, the Rev. Mungo Dick supplied the place for the two following years, and at the meeting of the Synod in Pittsburgh, Oct. 10, 1831, the Rev. John T. Pressly, D.D., of the Associate Reformed Synod of the South, was chosen to the office of senior professor. That office he has tilled with great acceptability and success till the present time, and the fruits of his labors are scattered widely over the length and breadth of his own and foreign lands, doing good service in the cause of Christ and of his truth. Associated with him in the charge of the institution, are the Rev. A. D. Clarke, D.D., who was elected to the Professorship of Biblical Literature and Crit- icism in 1847, and Rev. D. R. Kerr, D.D., who was called to the chair of Ecclesiastical History and Church Government in 1851. This seminary has a good building, a library of about 1500 volumes of carefully selected and valuable books, 33 stu- dents in attendance during the last session, and an alumni list of about 275, most of whom are engaged in faithfully preaching the gospel of the grace of God. Not less earnest have the other portions of the Associate Re- formed Church been in instituting and sustaining the means of a sound theological training. At its meeting in Argyle, New York, in 1829, the Synod of New York resolved, after much prayerful deliberation, to revive the seminary that had been sus- pended in New York in 1821. Accordingly, Rev. Messrs. Jo- seph McCarrell, D.D., of Newburgh, New York, was chosen the first professor, Rev. Messrs. John Mclmsey, D.D., Alex. Proudfit, D.D., Robt. Forrest, and D. C. McLaren, Superin- tendents, and its Sessions were opened in Newburgh on the first Monday of the following October. It began its course under promising auspices — has done much to supply the Church oi 70 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. God with an able and faithful ministry, and has devoted men from its midst laboring for Christ, not only in this country, but also in Syria, Egypt, and Northern India. In 1839, a new and noble edifice was completed for the occupancy of this institu- tion, and in 1852, Rev. John Forsyth, D.D., was called from the College of New Jersey to the Professorship of Biblical Crit- icisms, Ecclesiastical History and Church Government. The seminary has also come into possession of the valuable library which Dr. Mason procured in Europe, and which had been re- moved to Princeton, and now numbers nearly 4,000 volumes. After much deliberation, and with a view of more efficiently cultivating the wide field entrusted to its care, the Synod of the West resolved at its meeting in Chillicothe, Ohio, October 19, 1839, to form a second Synod of the West, and establish a the- ological seminary in its bounds. Rev. Joseph Claybaugh, D.D., of Chillicothe, was chosen Professor of Theology, and Rev. S. W. McCracken, Professor of Hebrew ; and Oxford, Ohio, was fixed upon as its location. Shortly afterwards its sessions open- ed with ten students, and from that time this seminary has stead- ily and usefully pursued its course. Dr. Claybaugh proved himself an able teacher, but in the midst of his labors, and full of promise, he died September 9, 1855. The institution, how- ever, was not given up for a moment. Different brethren were called in to fill a temporary place, and at length, with very great unanimity, Rev. Alexander Young, of St. Clairsville, Ohio, was elected professor in place of the lamented Claybaugh. He en- tered at once upon its duties, and is discharging them well. In the autumn of 1857, negotiations were set on foot between the Synod of Illinois and the second Synod of the West, in ref- erence to a removal of the seminary from Oxford to Monmouth, Illinois, and after much deliberation the arrangement was made. The next session, therefore, will open in that new and enter- prising place, on or about the first Monday of September, and much good may be hoped from its future course. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 71 The Associate Reformed Synod of the South also has a very efficient theological seminary at Due West, South Carolina. It has already furnished a large number of the Churches in the bounds of the Synod with pastors, and gives promise of steadily increasing the number. It is well located, has a good corps of professors, and enjoys the confidence of the Church at large. ACTS OF THE ASSOCIATE REFORMED CHURCH. While the Associate Reformed Church was formed on strictly union principles, and has ever aimed at securing and preserving the visible unity of the body of Christ, yet as a Church, she has not been silent on the great practical questions of the day. On the contrary, so far as these questions have been in any way peculiar to her profession, her Synods have given forth Acts and Testimonies which have been positive, distinct and clear. This historical sketch would be imperfect, if we did not notice the fact. 1. On the subject of Psalmody, it was declared in the Stand- ards issued at Greeneastle in 1799, to be "the will of God, that the sacred songs contained in the Book of Psalms be sung in his worship, both public and private, to the end of the world ; and the rich variety and perfect purity of their matter, the bl< sss- ing of God upon them in every age, and the edification of the Church thence arising, set the propriety of singing them in a convincing light ; nor shall any composures merely human, be sung in any of the Associate Reformed Churches." Such was the original law of the Church; and, though under the pressure of peculiar circumstances, a resolution was passed by the Gen- eral Synod, at its meeting in New York in 1810, allowing con- gregations to use the Psalms prepared by the Reformed Dutch Church, yet this was against the sentiment and practice of the great body of the Church in all its parts, and the law of the Standards was never repealed. Very few, and that only for a i'Z THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. very short time, availed themselves of the privilege allowed, and after mature deliberation and discussion on the whole subject, running over several years, the Synod of New York, at its meet- ing in Argyle, New York, June 20, 1842, unanimously adopt- ed the following paper, moved by Rev. Messrs. H. Connelly and R. II. Wallace : Whereas, The subject of Psalmody has been under the consideration of this Synod for several years past, and whereas, fears have been enter- tained in some parts of the Church, that the Synod had in contemplation to lay aside a Scripture Psalmody, in singing the praises of God in his worship, the Synod consider it their duty to declare that it neither has been, nor is it now. their wish or intention to lay aside the version now in use in singing the praise of God in his worship ; therefore, Resolved, That the version of the Book of Psalms now in use amongst us, be exclusively used in singing the praise of God, in his public and private worship, in all the congregations under the care of Synod. Resolved, That when our ministers preach in other Churches, they be, and are hereby directed, to adhere closely to the principle of a Scripture Psalmody, and in no case whatever to sing composures merely human. Resolved, That for the full understanding of the preceding resolution, we hereby adopt the following minute passed by the Associate Re- formed Synod, in 18U2 : " Composures merely human, in article 2, sec- tion 3, chapter 3. of Public Worship, cannot possibly refer, as is manifest from the nature of the subject, to any production which contains only the doctrines of men. Under that expression are included all those re- ligious poems, however pious and sound in themselves, of which, though the subject be Scriptural, yet the structure and management are the work of human genius, and which aim at anything more than adapting the Psalms given in the Bible by the inspiration of God. to the Christian worship, by a version as close as the laws of versification will admit. The same distinction is observed in this case which obtains between a prose translation of the Scripture and exposition or discourses upon them ; the latter are by all allowed to be human composures, while they account the former the Word of God ; and by this principle must the clause be interpreted in the Constitution of the Associate Reformed Church." This act is understood to express the sentiments of the great body of the Church, and became, so far as Psalmody was con- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. • 73 cerned, the basis of the union between the Synod of New York and the General Synod of the West, in May, 1855. On this subject the Associate Reformed Church has ever felt a deep interest, not only because the Book of Psalms is clearly God's gift for his Church's use in divine praise, but also because such a Psalmody is in every sense unsectarian, and tends to the visible and real unity of the Church of God. From an earnest desire also to make this part of her service more acceptable for its purpose, the Church has always been in favor of an improved version of the Book of Psalms. As early as the year 1810, an able committee was appointed to prepare a new version, and this work has been in progress, with various degrees of success, down to the present day. 2. The subject of Communion has also been distinctly un- der the consideration of this Church, and action has been taken from time to time, as circumstances seemed to demand. Bring- ing into its organization the principle and practice on this subject that had characterized the bodies from which it sprung, the As- sociate Reformed Church had no particular occasion to direct attention to it during all its earlier history. In the year 1810, however, one portion of the Church having, from peculiar circumstances in which it was placed, departed from the practice that universally prevailed, by allowing, on certain occasions, intercommunion with another body, inquiry began to be made after the law and the testimony on the whole question. And after considerable discussion, the General Synod, at its meeting in Philadelphia, May 15, 1811, passed nearly unanimously, the following, which had been moved by Rev. E. Dickey, of the Synod of Pennsylvania, and Rev. Alex. Porter, of the Synod of the Carolinas, and afterwards of the Synod of the West : Whereas, A diversity of judgment and practice has been found to exist among the ministers and members of this Church, relative to the application of the doctrine of the Confession of Faith concerning the Com- munion of Saints; and whereas, the course of procedure in this matter 6 74 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. must depend in a great measure upon circumstances which cannot be pro- vided for by any general rule ; therefore. Resolved, That the judicatories, ministers and members of this Church, be, and they are hereby entreated and required, to exercise mutual for- bearance in the premises, and the use of their discretion to observe mu- tual tenderness and brotherly love, studying to avoid whatever may be contrary thereto ; and giving special heed to the preservation of sound and efficient discipline. While, however, such were the generally received views of the body in theory on this subject, the course of particular indi- viduals and Churches gave ground for serious apprehension and disquietude in many minds. Presbyteries sent to the Synod solemn remonstrances against any thing like promiscuous com- munion in sealing ordinances ; congregations, too, presented their complaints ; but such remonstrances and complaints, so far as they bore on particular individuals or sections of the Church, were resisted or evaded ; and these things, together with the publication of a work on Catholic Communion, by Dr. Mason, and the personal feelings that were excited by the agitation of years, did much to hasten on the dissolution of the General Synod, the disbanding of the theological seminary, and the throwing of the different Synods into separate and independent bodies. These Synods, however, did not hesitate to take proper ac- tion. Almost immediately after their separate organization, the Synods of the South and West clearly defined their position, and after long continued and earnest deliberation, the Synod of New York, at its meeting in Salem, New York, August, 1838, adopted the following resolutions : Resolved, That this Synod disapproves of the principle and practice of open communion, or that scheme of communion which would obligate or allow the ministers or members of the Associate Reformed Church to unite in sacramental communion with other Churches, and the ministers and members of other Churches to unite in communion with ours, on the ground merely of a general or partial agreement of opinion respecting THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 75 the doctrines set iorth in our Confession of Faith : and the Synod hereby enjoins all the ministers to conform to the constitutional doctrine of the Associate Reformed Church. Resolved, That occasional communion may be granted to members of other Churches only in extraordinary cases, on application made to the respective Sessions where such cases may occur, and on the same terms in which applicants are received into stated communion. This action has never been repealed or changed, and among other things was accepted by the General Synod of the West as the basis of that union between the two Synods in 1855, by which the General Synod of the Associate Reformed Church was reorganized. The Associate Reformed Church has thus, in its separate Synods and in its highest Judicatories, enacted or received the law which distinctly declares that a restricted com- munion is the law of the Church, and that the whole question of admission to the Lord's table is one to be determined by the office bearers of Christ's House, in subordination to the stand- ards of the Church. 3. In its different sections, this Church has had its attention directed also to the subject of Secret Associations. These associations have been known to exist in the country at large in a great variety of forms and names, and under an apprehension of their being opposed to the simplicity and purity of the gos- pel, and of direct or incidental evils flowing from them, action has been taken in reference to them at different times. At its meeting in Galway, New York, September 5, 1828, the Synod of New York had a communication laid before it from one of the Pres- byteries, asking advice as to the following questions, received from some of the Sessions under its care, viz : " Whether any of the principles, usages or ceremonies of Free Masonry, are contrary to the doctrine that is according to godliness as exhib- ited in the Standards of the Associate Reformed Church." This communication was referred to a committee, who shortly after- wards reported the following resolutions, which were adopted: 76 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Resolved, As the judgment of this Synod, that the multiplication and the nature of the oaths administered in the Masonic Lodges are unwar- ranted in the Word of God, and demoralizing in their tendency; and that oar Church members be and hereby are enjoined not to connect themselves with the said society, and any who may have been connected are affectionately recommended to withdraw from any further connection with the institution. Resolved, That a committee, consisting of Rev. Messrs. Robert Proudfit, James Mairs and Joseph McCarrell, be appointed to prepare a report upon the subject of Masonry, to be presented to this Synod at its next meeting. This report was adopted. The next year the committee was continued, and Rev. D. C. McLaren was added to it. At the following meeting in Newburgh, September 3, 1830, this commit- tee presented an able report, concluding with the following resolu- tions, which were unanimously adopted, and have been the law of the Synod since on this subject : Resolved, That this Synod will and hereby do express their decided dis- approbation of the principles and usages of Free Masonry, as far as known, and warn their people solemnly and affectionately against all connection with the institution. Resolved, That it be and hereby is enjoined upon Church Sessions un- der the inspection of this Synod, to adopt the most prudent and effective measures to remove the contamination from our Churches. At its meeting in Steubenville, Ohio, in October, 1829, the Synod of the West also declared its belief that the practice of Free Masonry is contrary to the Standards of the Associate Re- formed Church, and ascertaining that the several ministers com- posing the Synod were in the practice of debarring from sealing ordinances those who take unlawful oaths, deemed no further action called for at that time. In 184G, however, the subject of secret societies in a more general form, came before the General Synod at its meeting in Pittsburgh, when the following action was taken : 1. Whkreas, The society of Odd Fellows have been and still are mak- ing special efforts to revive and secure popular favor to the principle of THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 77 secret associations, and especially to give the appearance of morality and religion, by the names of ministers of the gospel ; and whereas, we regard the principle itself as inconsistent with the character of true Christianity, and highly dangerous to our civil institutions ; therefore, Resolved, That this Synod do hereby express its disapprobation of said society, and warn our people that persistence in a coanection with it must subject such as do so to the discipline of the Church. 2. Whereas, The Order of the Sons of Temperance, though having a more simple object, and free from oaths, is nevertheless organized on the principle of secret associations, thereby sanctioning it ; therefore. Resolved, That in the judgment of this Synod it is the duty of profess- ing Christians to stand aloof from its entanglements, and not to give it their sanction or encouragement. The Synod of the South, it is understood, has taken substan- tially the same action with the above Synods on this subject. 4. Nor has the Associate Reformed Church been silent on the subject of Slavery. At an early period in its history, anxious inquiry was made as to the course that should be pur- sued in regard to this system ; and extending, as the body then did, into slaveholding territories, it was a practical question of grave moment. At different meetings of the General Synod the subject was discussed, and committees were appointed to prepare statements of the Synod's views, but from various causes, nothing was effectually done during the existence of that body. At the meeting, however, of the Synod of the West at Chilli- cothe, Ohio, May, 182G, the subject came formally up in a memo- rial from the congregation of Hopewell, in the first Presbytery of Ohio, and a series of discussions and acts were entered upon which resulted in the adoption, at the meeting in Chillicothe again in 1830, of the following resolutions, which, with some modifications and explanations that we shall append in foot notes, contains the final action of that portion of the Church : 1. Resolved, That the religion of Jesus Christ requires that involuntary slavery should be removed from the Church as soon as an opportunity in 78 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. the providence of God is offered to slave-owners for the liberation of their slaves. 2. Resolved, That when there are no regulations of the State to pro- hibit it ; when provision can be made for the support of the ireedraen ; w ? hen they can be placed in circumstances to support I he rank, enjoy the rights, and discharge the duties of freemen, it shall be considered that such an opportunity is afforded in the providence of God.* 3. Resolved, That the Synod will, as it hereby does, recommend it to all its members to aid in placing the slaves which are within the juris- diction of this Synod, in the possession of their rights as freemen ; and that it be recommended to them especially to take up annual collections to aid the funds of the American Society for colonizing the free people of color in the United States.f 4. Resolved, That the practice of buying or selling slaves for gain, by any member of this Church, be disapproved ; and that slave-owners un- der the jurisdiction of this Synod, be, as they hereby are, forbidden all aggravations of the evils of slavery, by violating the ties of nature, the separation of husband and wife, parents and children, or by cruel or un- kind treatment ; and that they shall not only treat them well, but also instruct them in useful knowledge and the principles of the Christian religion, and in all respects treat them as enjoined upon masters towards their servants by the apostles of our Lord Jesus Christ. Two years afterwards, in 1832, the Synod issued a Letter of Warning, or an Occasional Testimony, in which these resolu- tions were quoted, and the following extracts will show in what sense they were intended and understood as the law r of the * At the meeting in 1838, the Synod passed the following in reference to this resolu- tion : Resolved, That an opportunity in the providence of God shall be considered as afforded when the master can emancipate his slave, and place him in circumstances where he shall not be liable to be immediately sold into bondage. fin consequence of a memorial from Robinson Run congregation, the Synod, at its meeting in 1839, adopted the following in regard to this resoluti-n : As there are two conflicting Societies operating in the community — the Colonization and the Anti-Slavery Societies — and as this Synod has recommended the former to the patronage of the Churches under its care ; and as it is desirable the Synod should keep char of this excitement, and as the Church should not be involved by the operation of bodies over which it has no control ; therefore, Rex Ived, That this Synod withdraws the recommendation formerly given to the Col- onization Society. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 79 Church : " Now, brethren, it is expected that the foregoing resolutions will not be as a dead letter, but be respected and re- duced to practice. It is expected that Sessions and Presbyte- ries will see them enforced. It is expected that slave-owners in the Church will make conscience of seeking and improving opportunities, and the very first which offer, of liberating their slaves. It is expected that in the meantime they will give sat- isfactory evidence to their respective Sessions that they do con- sider slavery a moral evil, that they do truly desire to get rid of it as soon as they can, and that it is their intention to embrace the first opportunity which God in his providence shall give them for so doing. And it is expected of Sessions that they will require this of slave-owning church members or appli- cants," etc. These acts of the Synod of the West remain unchanged. They were carried into the General Synod of the West, were recognized in the union with the Synod of New York, and are strikingly similar to the Testimony on this subject in the basis of union with the Associate Church in May last. The Synod of New York has often also had this subject un- der consideration. Its last action was at Broadalbin, New York, June 24, 1851, when a report by Rev. R. Proudfit, D.D., was adopted, concluding with a solemn protest against any in- sinuation that this Synod is a pro-slavery Synod. 5. On the subject of Covenanting, the Associate Reformed Church has never said very much. Perhaps, however, about as much has been done in regard to it as in any of the sister Churches in this country. In the first constitution, which has never been formally repealed, " The ministers and elders met in Synod" declare "that they have an affectionate remembrance of the National Covenant of Scotland, and of the Solemn League and Covenant of Scotland, England and Ireland, as well intended engagements to support the cause of civil and religious liberty, 80 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. and hold themselves bound by the divine authority to practice all the moral duties therein contained, according to their circum- stances, and that public and explicit covenanting with God is a moral duty under the gospel dispensation, to which they are re- solved to attend as He shall be pleased to direct." Like those of their sister Churches in this country generally, the members of the Associate Reformed Church have never engaged in formal public covenanting, other than that of a per- sonal devoting of themselves to God, and a taking of Him to be their God, in the ordinances of His house. But the rightfulness and the duty of the act when occasion calls for it, is a principle never denied in the Standards of the Associate Reformed Church. IV. — History of the Conventions of Reformed Churches. For more than half a century there have existed, in these United States, three distinct ecclesiastical organizations — the Associate Reformed, the Associate, and the Reformed Presby- terian Churches. These Churches claimed as their common parent, the Church of Scotland, and have always been, substan- tially, one in doctrine, worship, and church government. The members composing these different Churches were intermingled all over the country, and in their divided condition their congre- gations were so small as to be unable, in many instances, to support a pastor ; and the consequence has been, that, in many portions of our country, there has been experienced a compara- tive famine, not of bread, nor a thirst of water, but of hearing the word of the Lord. To remedy this evil, and, if possible, to bring these Churches into a closer relation, a call for a Convention of the Reformed THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 81 Churches, to confer on the subject of union, was issued. In conformity with this call, a Convention assembled in the city of Pittsburgh on the 17th October, 1838, composed of delegates from the Associate Reformed Synod of the West, the Associate Reformed Synod of New York, (which then existed as separate, independent Synods,) and the General Synod of the Reformed Presbyterian Church. The delegates in attendance on this occasion were, of the Associate Reformed Synod of the West : Rev. John T. Pressly, D.D., Rev. Joseph R. Kerr, and Rev. William Wallace. Of the Associate Reformed Synod of New York : Rev. John McJimpsey, D.D., Rev. Donald McLaren, and William McKee, Ruling Elder. Of the Reformed Presbyterian Church: Rev. John Black, D.D., Rev. William Wilson, and Daniel McMillen, Ruling Elder. The Convention was organ- ized by appointing Rev. John T. Pressly President, and Wm. Wilson Secretary. The principal subject which occupied the attention of the Convention, at its first session, was, " What course should be pursued by these Churches, while yet in a divided state, to pro- mote a nearer approximation preparatory to organic union?" After due deliberation and a free interchange of views, the following resolution was adopted : Resolved, As the judgment of this Convention, that the ministers of the Churches here represented may interchange pulpits; and it is recom- mended to both ministers and people to unite, as often as opportunity offers, in meetings for prayer and other religious exercises. That there might be no misapprehension in the public mind in relation to the views and designs of the Convention, the fol- lowing general rules were adopted for its government : 1. There shall be no abandonment, by this Convention, of any prin- ciple sanctioned by the word of God, and recognized in the scriptural attainments of the Reformation, whether in doctrine, worship, or order. 2. No principle shall be maintained tbat is not plainly founded upon, and in accordance with, the word of God. 02 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 3. Strict care shall be taken lest the measures adopted should furnish valid reasons for an increase of schisms and factions in the Church of God, instead of diminishing their number, or altogether destroying their existence, in their ultimate operation. 4. The investigations and discussions, whether conducted in an oral or written form, shall be pursued with candor and Christian courtesy, and in the fraternal spirit which should distinguish the followers of Christ. 5. The decisions which may be made shall all be submitted, in over- ture, before our respective Supreme Judicatories, and shall not be con- sidered obligatory either upon them or their representatives in this Convention, until they are ratified by them. After spending several days very pleasantly in fraternal con- ference, and in devotional exercises, and after preparing an ad- dress to the Christian public on the subject of the union of the Churches, and extending an invitation to all those Churches which are agreed in adhering to a Scripture Psalmody to meet in a future assembly, the Convention adjourned to meet in the city of Philadelphia in September of next year. In the second Convention, which was held in the city of Phil- adelphia, 29th September, 1839, the same Churches were rep- resented as in the first. On this occasion there was a full and free interchange of views on various subjects on which it had been supposed that there existed some diversity of opinion, which might present some difficulty in the way of union, such as Psalmody, Communion, Slavery, Testimony bearing and Covenanting ; from which it appeared, to the agreeable surprise of some of the brethren, that there existed a remarkable degree of harmony. The question which chiefly occupied the attention of the Con- vention at this time, was, "What are the precise principles which are at once indispensable and sufficient as the basis upon which the whole Church of God ought to maintain organical, visible unity?" Without giving any distinct deliverance on this subject, at this time, the Convention thought proper to ex- tend another invitation to some sister Churches, which had not THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 83 hitherto met with us, in the hope that they might be induced to aid us in our efforts to heal the divisions of Zion. But when the Convention assembled for the third time, in May, 1841, we were sorry to find that the invitation had not accomplished the desired end. However, we persevered, and to our gratification we found that when the fourth Convention assembled in the city of Philadelphia, in May, 1842, in addition to the Churches formerly represented, there were present dele- gates from the Associate Presbyterian Church. In consequence of this accession to our delegation, it became necessary, to some extent, to retrace the ground over which we had already passed. And for the purpose of ascertaining to what extent there ex- isted an agreement in sentiment among the different Churches represented, sundry resolutions were introduced for the con- sideration of the Convention. And as the result, the following resolution was unanimously adopted : Resolved, That having discussed the more prominent subjects upon which a diversity of sentiment was apprehended to exist, it appears there is such a degree of unanimity on these subjects that there is en- couragement for the Convention to take further measures towards a visible ecclesiastical union. Between the Churches represented, there had existed a prac- tical difference in relation to two subjects, on which it seemed necessary that there should be a distinct understanding before any further progress could be made. In adopting the West- minster Confession of Faith, the Associate Reformed Church had so modified those portions which define the powers of the civil magistrate circa sacra, as to make them express clearly the doctrine which we hold in common. Our sister Churches re- tained the Confession unaltered, but explained in their Testi- mony the sense in which they received it. The Associate Reformed Church received the Confession of Faith and Catechisms, Presbyterian form of Church Govern- ment, and Directory for Worship, as her fixed Testimony, and at the same time pledged herself to emit occasional Testimonies ia 84 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. defense of the truth and in opposition to error, as circumstances might require. Our sister Churches received, in addition to the Confession of Faith, a Judicial Testimony. The difference which existed did not involve principle. With regard to the power of the civil magistrate circa sacra, the same doctrine was held in common. With regard to the obligation resting upon the Church, in her official capacity, to bear testimony in defense of the truth and in opposition to error, all were agreed. The point of difference had reference merely to the preferable mode of performing the duty. Where the surrender of no principle was demanded, but the yielding of a mere preference as to the mode of carrying out a principle, it became necessary that there should be a compromise. Accordingly, at a meeting of the Convention the following year, the subject of the form of a basis of union was taken into consideration. And as the result of a free interchange of views, the following resolution was adopted : Resolved, That in the judgment of this Convention, a union between the bodies here represented can be effected only by an alteration of the Westminster Confession of Faith, in the 20th. 23d and 31st chapters, and the adoption of a Judicial Testimony against prevailing and dan- gerous errors of the present time ; and therefore that these matters be referred to the Supreme Judicatories of our respective denominations. A committee was then appointed to prepare a basis of union formed in accordance with this resolution, to be submitted to the Convention at its next meeting. On the 21st May, 1845, the Convention of Reformed Churches met in the city of Philadelphia for the seventh time, when the committee previously appointed presented their report. The result was the adoption of a Confession and Testimony by the Convention, as a basis of union. This basis comprehended the Westminster Confession of Faith, those chapters which define the powers of the civil magistrate being so altered as to express clearly the faith held in common by these Churches, together with a Testimony against prevailing errors. To each chapter of THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 85 the Confession was appended a numerous list of errors against which a Testimony was borne. This basis, when first submitted to the Supreme Judicatories of the respective Churches, was received with a degree of favor. But after more mature consideration it seemed to meet with less favor than at first, and finally did not prove entirely accept- able to either of the parties. And when the Convention met for the eighth time, in the following year, discouragement seemed to prevail ; no progress was made, and after adopting the following resolution, the Convention adjourned sine die : Resolved, That this Convention finds nothing more that it can do at present in furtherance of the object of its appointment. When the result of the deliberations of this Convention was made known, such was the effect upon the public mind, that a meeting of the people of the three Churches represented was called for prayer and conference, when the following resolution was adopted : Resolved, That we will not relinquish our prayers and our efforts in he- half of the unity of the Church, hoping our beloved pastors will lead and encourage us in the work, and that the Chief Shepherd will approve and bless. The people could not appreciate those metaphysical difficul- ties which lay in the way of accomplishing the desired end ; their hearts yearned for union, and they could not think of abandoning the object of their prayers and of their fondly cherished hopes. The General Synod of the Associate Reformed Church, which met immediately after the adjournment of the Conven- tion, after hearing the report of her delegates, was unwilling to relinquish her efforts to accomplish the object for which she had long labored and prayed. Accordingly a resolution was adopted appointing delegates to attend a future Convention, should the sister Churches, or either of them, concur in the measure, and authorizing them to act in any emergency as the representor 86 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. tives of the Synod in the prosecution of efforts with reference to a union of the Churches. At this time the Reformed Presbyterian Church withdrew, and no longer cooperated in efforts to effect a union of the Churches. And though no Convention was called, the hope of union between the Associate Reformed and Associate Churches was never abandoned, nor were efforts with a view to its accom- plishment entirely relinquished. Various communications passed between the Supreme Judicatories of these Churches, and at different times meetings were held for conference and for devo- tional exercises. The result was, the two bodies became better acquainted with each other, their hearts were drawn more closely together, and the desire for union, both among the min- istry and the people, became stronger and stronger. At length a basis, framed in accordance with the general prin- ciples which had been approved by our Supreme Judicatories respectively, was prepared by a committee, which being pre- sented to our Synods, was by them transmitted in overture to the Presbyteries. After receiving the reports of the Presbyte- ries, at the annual meeting of our Supreme Judicatories, the basis was adopted by them both, with the understanding that the formal consummation of the union should take place at the time of our annual meeting in 1858. As the time approached when the long desired union was to be consummated, the anxiety of those who had long labored and prayed for that consummation became more and more in- tense. It was not only our heart's desire to see the union effected, but to see it accomplished in such a way as to secure harmony and unanimity among brethren. Deeply impressed with the conviction that without the blessing and concurrence of heaven, all our efforts must be in vain, a Convention was called to assemble in the city of Xenia, Ohio, for the purpose of seek- ing by united prayer the outpouring of the Holy Spirit, that the Churches might be prepared to come together in the bonds of THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 87 fraternal love. Here brethren met and united most pleasantly in prayer and supplication, in singing the songs of Zion, and in conferring together with reference to the revival of true godli- ness in our own souls. The effect of this Convention was most happy. God was manifestly present, and the hearts of breth- ren were drawn so closely together in the bonds of fraternal love, that from that time forth it was manifest that no human power could prevent the union. The Convention, after spending a few days in most delightful Christian fellowship, adjourned to meet in the city of Allegheny, immediately previous to the time appointed for the assembling of our respective Synods. A large number of the brethren of both Churches accordingly met, and spent several days in con- ference and in devotional exercises. Under these circumstances the two Synods met, and after due deliberation the union was consummated in conformity with the arrangements of a joint committee of the respective Synods. Thus, after anxious solicitude, and fervent prayers and ear- nest efforts persevered in for more than twenty years, the hearts of those who love the peace of Zion were made glad by seeing brethren who were substantially one in the faith, but who had long been ecclesiastically separated, brought together in the bonds of Christian love, under one banner, and dwelling together in unity. Then did we appropriately sing : When Zion's bondage God turn'd back, As men that dreamed were we; Then filled with laughter was our mouth, Our tongue with melody. They, 'mong the heathen said. The Lord Great things for them hath wrought. The Lord hath done great things for us, Whence joy to us is brought. 88 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. V. — The Testimony of the United Presbyterian Church of North America. INTRODUCTION. We believe it to be the duty of the Church, as a faithful wit- ness for the truth, to exhibit, plainly and explicitly, all the prin- ciples of her profession, in a published Creed or Confession. A simple acknowledgment of the Scriptures as the word of God, and the only rule of faith and practice, is not sufficient, while there are multitudes professing such a belief in the Scriptures, whose principles are grossly heretical, and subversive of the doc- trines of our holy religion. It must therefore be evident to every one who duly considers the matter, that the Church of Christ cannot maintain her high character as a witness of Jesus Christ, nor deal honestly and faithfully with those who are out- side of her pale, without such a clear and unequivocal statement of those principles which she is bound by the word of God to maintain and propagate. This course the Church of Christ has pursued, with a greater or less degree of faithfulness, in all periods of her history. It particularly characterized the witnesses for the truth at the time of the Reformation, and has ever been eminently blessed by God, as a means of preserving the truth, and transmitting it to future generations. Upon this principle, our reforming forefathers in Great Britain were enabled to act with a high degree of faithfulness, and that too, under peculiar trials and difficulties. To them we are in- debted for that venerable document called the Confession of Faith, which constitutes the symbol of the faith of the Presby- terian family in this country and in Great Britain. To these Westminster Standards (including the Confession of Faith, Catechisms, Larger and Shorter, the Form of Presby- terial Church Government, and Directory for the Public Worship THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 89 of God,) we, as a Church, declare our adherence, as containing a true exhibition of our faith as a branch of the Church of Christ. In making this declaration of adherence, we are not to be un- derstood as giving an unqualified approbation of the principles respecting the power of the civil magistrate, as they are set forth in chap. 20th, sec. 4th; chap. 23d, sec. 3d ; chap. 31st, sec. 2d, of the Westminster Confession. The language there employed has been variously interpreted, and by many thought to be in- consistent with that " liberty of conscience " and that " distinct government in the hands of Church officers " which the Con- fession itself recognizes. For this reason, we have deemed it a duty, without passing any judicial opinion in relation to the meaning of these parts of the Confession, to exhibit, in a par- allel column, the acknowledged doctrine of the Church* — leav- ing it to every reader to form his own opinion as to the agree- ment or disagreement between the views thus set forth. This course we have been led to adopt, from a desire to avoid doing violence to that feeling of veneration which all true Presbyte- rians cherish for this standard of faith to which the Church, un- der God, is so much indebted ; and, at the same time, to dis- charge a duty that is resting upon us, to exhibit clearly and fully what we believe to be the principles of divine truth on this sub- ject. If we are here agreed, a difference of opinion, as to the import of the language employed in the Confession, ought not to affect Christian union and communion. We have said that it is the duty of the Church to exhibit, plainly and explicitly, all the principles of her profession, in a published Creed or Confession. This duty was discharged with a high degree of faithfulness by the framers of the Westminster Confession. It should, however, not be forgotten, that the Church of God, while " holding fast that whereunto she has at- tained," should also strive to be making progress in the attain- * For this, see the Appendix. 90 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. ment of divine truth. If it be the duty of Christians, in their individual capacity, to "press forward" towards perfection, it must certainly be the duty of the Church, in her associated and collective capacity, to do the same thing ; and having made ad- ditional attainments, to declare her belief in them, and her ad- herence to them as a part of " the Testimony of Jesus." It is only by doing so, that she can fully accomplish her mission in the world, and faithfully carry out the injunction of her ascend- ed Lord, to teach all things whatsoever he has commanded her. Under a solemn conviction of our duty, in this respect, we, as a Church, have, in the following document, set forth our views on certain points, which were either not distinctly introduced in- to the Confession of Faith by its framers, or not exhibited with that fullness and explicitness which the circumstances of the Church, the times in which we live, and the views and practices of those around us, demand of us as witnesses for the truth. The articles set forth by us in the following Testimony, on Psalmody, Communion, Slaveholding, Secret Societies, and Cov- enanting, may be regarded as specially referring to this class of subjects, and might therefore very properly be introduced into the body of our Confession of Faith. It may, however, be most convenient for the present, that they appear in this Testimony. As all the principles of our profession are set forth in the "Westminster Confession of Faith, and in the Articles on the subjects just referred to, (which Articles may be said, in a pe- culiar manner, to distinguish our profession from some of the Churches in this country, whose recognized symbol of faith is the Westminster Confession,) it may appear to some, that a further exhibition of truth is unnecessary. Such would be the case, if all who profess an adherence to this Confession received it in its genuine sense, and maintained it by the faithful exer- cise of discipline, and by their writings and public ministrations. It is, however, to be lamented, that this is far from being always done by those from whom it might be expected. We would be THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 91 sorry to make a representation more unfavorable than the facts of the case would justify, and we desire not to be unmindful of any manifestations of faithfulness on the part of those Pres- byterian Churches from which we are in a state of separa- tion. We love them for the sake of the truth we hold in common. Yet, faithfulness to our Divine Master, and love to our brethren, whom we desire to see not only professing, but walking in the truth, require us solemnly to testify against some of the more serious departures from the Confession of Faith, with which many, particularly in this land, are chargeable. In doing this, we cannot be justly regarded as attaching a dispropor- tionate importance to these points. The fact that we have brought them prominently to view has arisen mainly from the circumstances just mentioned, which we think attach to them the character of the " present truth," in which it becomes us to be " established." We believe that when the principles set forth in the Creed or Confession of a Church are assailed, mis- represented, or thrown into the shade, it becomes the duty of the Church to declare, explain and defend these principles, by the emission of a distinctive Testimony. On this principle, those who have, from time to time, felt it to be their duty to secede from the Church of Scotland, and those who have maintained a separate ecclesiastical organization from the two great divisions in this country, known by the name of Presbyterian, have acted in one form or other, and we believe that there are still suffi- cient causes for the performance of this duty. Such a Testimo- ny, although containing the same principles which have been already embraced in the Church's Confession, is certainly well calculated to bring out clearly before the mind, the principles of that Confession from which there have been departures, and thus serve, with the blessing of God, to revive a love for them in the hearts of those who profess them, and thereby secure their faith- ful maintenance on the part of all concerned. Nor can such a course be regarded as opposed to a spirit of union and brotherly 92 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. love, or a desire for union among those who profess an adher- ence to the same standard of faith. On the contrary, we believe it to be the dictate of love, and directly calculated, by the bless- ing of God, to secure an intelligent and cordial union among all those who are the true friends of our common Confession. Deeply impressed with this fact, and sensible of the solemn responsibilities of our position as a Presbyterian Church, in a state of separation from other Presbyterian Churches, particu- larly in this land, and animated, as we trust, by an ardent de- sire to maintain and promote the purity of the Lord's house in doctrine, worship, discipline and government, and, in subordina- tion to this, the unity of the Church of Christ, we hereby, in the name of the great Head of the Church, publish to the world this our Testimony ; beseeching all those into whose hands it may fall, and especially all the friends of the Westminster Con- fession of Faith, to give it their serious and prayerful consider- ation. An adherence to the Westminster Standards before referred to, and to the Declarations contained in the following Testimony, will be required of those seeking communion with us. An assent to the argumentation and illustration under each Declaration, cannot, with propriety, be demanded as a term of communion, but these parts may be useful as a guide to the meaning of the Declaration. Article I. — Of the Plenary Inspiration of the Scriptures. DECLARATION. We declare, That God has not only in the Scriptures of the Old and New Testaments made a revelation of his will to man, as the only rule of faith and practice, but that these Scriptures, viewed as a revelation from God, are in every part the inspired word of God, and that this inspiration extends to the language, as well as to the sentiments which they express. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 93 Argument and Illustration. This we hold to be the doctrine of our Confession, chap, i, sec. 2. It is the only view of the subject that accords with Scripture and reason. Such an inspiration is involved in the phrase " word of God," which is ap- plied to the Scriptures, (Mark vii, 13 ; Rom. ix, 6; 2 Cor. iv, 2; Heb. vi, 5.) It is expressly declared (2 Tim. iii, 16,) not merely that Scripture was written by inspired men, but that the Scripture itself, and all Scripture, was divinely inspired. " Holy men of God," we are told, (2 Pet. i, 21,) " spake as they were moved by the Holy Ghost." Paul tells us (1 Cor. ii, 13,) that he spoke in the words which the Holy Ghost taught him. David declares (2 Sam. xxiii, 2,) that the Spirit of the Lord spake by him, and his word was in his tongue. It may also be inferred from two Scriptural facts. 1. The writers themselves did not always fully understand what they wrote. 1 Pet. i, 10, 11. But no man could write intelligibly on a subject which he did not un- derstand, unless the language itself was dictated. 2. We find the apostles sometimes reasoning from the very terms or modes of expression used in the Old Testament Scriptures, (Gal. iii, 11, 13, 16 ; Heb. i, 6, 8 ; Heb. iv, 7 '* Heb. x, 8, 9 ; Heb. xii, 26, 27.) But why this, if these terms or modes of ex- pression were not dictated by the Holy Ghost? It may be thought that the historical parts of the Scripture did not re- quire such an inspiration ; but no one can prove this to have been the case. On the contrary, as every part of Scripture has a higher end than the tem- poral benefit of individuals and nations, even the advancement of salvation in subserviency to the glory of God in Christ, it is most reasonable to sup- pose that it would require a manner of thinking and writing peculiar to it- self. There is nothing in the above Declaration and Testimony on this subject inconsistent with the belief that the inspired penmen wrote agreeably to their respective talents for composition ; and consequently, there is no ar- gument, in the diversity of style which characterizes the Scriptures, against their plenary inspiration ; unless it can be shown that the Spirit of God could not direct them according to their respective talents. We deem it a matter of great importance that the truth on this subject should be maintained, as any thing short of it is calculated to weaken the authority of the Bible, render indeterminate its teachings, and throw a sus- picion over the whole of Divine Revelation. It is plain, if the ideas only were inspired, that we have only human authority upon which to depend for the accuracy with which the idea is presented. To the neglect or deni- al of this truth, is to be ascribed, in a great measure, the elevation of rea- son to the place of supreme judge in matters of revelation, the low views which many entertain of the Old Testament Scriptures, and of the feelings and motives by which their writers were prompted. 94 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Article II. — Of the Eternal Sonship of Christ. DECLARATION. We declare, That our Lord Jesus Christ is not only true and Supreme God, being one in essence with the Father, but also the Son of God, in respect of his natural, necessary, and eternal re- lation to the Father. Argument and Illustration. The doctrine here stated, and which is exhibited in our Confession, chap, ii, sec. 3, stands opposed, not only to the opinions of those who deny the divinity of our Lord Jesus Christ, but also of some who profess a belief in the Trinity. They deny that our Lord is called the Son of God because of his relation to the Father as one of the persons of the Trinity, and affirm that He is so called because of His mission, incarnation, or resurrection. That the Declaration we have given on this subject is the doctrine of God's word, will appear, when we consider that Jesus called God his Father, (in the original his proper Father.) when speaking of him as the Supreme God, (John v, 17, 18 ;) and the name son being a corelate of that of Father, must mean, when applied to the second person of the Trinity, an identity of nature with the Father. The Jews understood our Lord, in calling him- self the Son of God, to claim an identity of nature with him, and their un- derstanding of the extent of this claim was sanctioned by our Lord, (John x, 30—36.) It is " the Son " that knows the Father, ( Matt, xi, 27)— that does the same works with the Father, (John v, 19, 21)— is entitled to the same honors, (John v, 23.) The fact that he was the Son of God is urged as an evidence of the greatness of God's love in sending him to die for our sins, (John iii, 16; Rom. viii, 32)— as an evidence of his own amazing love and condescension, (Heb. v, 8; Gal. ii, 20) — as an evidence of the dignity of his person, (ileb. i, 2; v, 8)— as an evidence of the efficiency of his offices, (Heb. iii, 5, 6 ; iv, 14 ; vii, 28 ; John i, 18 ; v, 25 ; 1 John i, 7)— all which imply a nat- ural and necessary relation. He could not be called the Son of God on account of his eternal appoint- ment to the mediatorial office, for he is recognized as a Son in this appoint- ment, (Ps. ii, 6—8 ; John iii, 16, 17 ;) nor on account of his incarnation, for the formation of the human nature is ascribed to the Holy Ghost, who is not called by him the Father, (Luke i, 35)— nor on account of his resurrec- tion, for he was then only "declared to be the Son of God with power," (Rom. i. 3, 4.) Paul, it is said, (Acts ix, 20,) " preached Christ that he is the Son of God," in which there is.a distinction evidently recognized between his mediatorial office, as the anointed of God, and his Sonship. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 95 We deem it a matter of great importance that this doctrine of our holy religion should be witnessed for by the Church ; as it affects the Supreme Deity, distinct personality, and mediatorial offices and work of our glori- ous Immanuel. Article III. — Of the Covenant of Works. DECLARATION. We declare, That God having created man in a state of per- fect holiness, and in possession of a perfect ability to obey him in all things, did enter into a covenant with him, in which cov- enant Adam was the representative of all his natural posterity, so that in him they were to stand or fall, as he stood or fell. Argument and Illustration. This is the doctrine of the Confession, chap, iv, sec. 2 5 chap, vi, sec. 3 ; and also of the Larger Catechism, questions 20, 21, 22. In this Declaration we have affirmed that God entered into a covenant with man. That this was the nature of the transaction recorded in Gen. ii, 16, 17, will appear from the following considerations. It is called a cov- enant, (Hosea vi, 7, see the margin.) It possesses all the parts of a cove- nant 1. There are two parties mentioned, "God" and ''man." 2 There is a promise on the part of God implied in the threatening, (Rom. vii, 10; viii, 3; x, 5; Matt, xix, 16, 17.) 3. There is a condition imposed upon man; namely, that he is not to eat of a certain tree. 4 There is a mutual agree- ment between the parties, which agreement on the part of God is express- ed in the command and promise of God, and implied on the part of man in the fact of his perfect conformity to the will of God— in his silent acquiescence, in the reply of Eve to the serpent, and in the apology which he offered to God for his sin. These considerations, we believe, show that the transaction referred to was truly and properly a covenant between God and man. God, in entering into this covenant with Adam, manifested the greatness of his condescension and kindness. It is highly important that the strictly federal character of this transaction should be maintained, as erroneous views here must necessarily lead to erroneous views in reference to the nature of the transaction in the covenant between God and Christ, " the second Adam." We have also affirmed that Adam, in this transaction, was the represent- ative of all his natural posterity, so that in him they were to stand or fall, as he stood or fell. By " representative" we do not simply mean that he was their natural head or parent— this circumstance laid a foundation, and proved his fitness for sustaining a representative character — but we mean 96 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. that he was their moral head— that he appeared and acted in their name, as well as his own, so that in law, according to the covenant agreement be- tween God and him, his acts became virtually their acts, they as well as he being held responsible for them. That Adam thus represented his posterity, is evident from the fact that they are all said to have "sinned in him," (Rom. v, 12, see margin,)— that they were " made," or constituted " sinners " by his " disobedience," (Rom. v, 19,)— that they all died in him.d Cor. xv, 22,)— that they were all brought under the sentence then passed, (Rom. v, 12— 18.)— that even infants are subjected to this sentence, CRom. v, 14.) The representative character of Adam in the covenant appears further from the special notice which the apostle takes of the "offense," " the offense of one," and "one man's of- fense," (Rom. v, 15— 18)— thereby showing that in that offense he sustained to his posterity a peculiar relation. It appears also from the representative character ascribed to Christ, (John vi, 37 ; x, 15; xvii, 2 ; Isa. liii, 10, 11 ; Heb. vii, 22; 1 Cor. xv, 20, 23,) taken in connection with the fact that Adam is called his " figure," or type, (Rom. v, 14,) where the reference must be to his representative character, and also taken in connection with the compar- ison which the apostle draws (Rom. v) between Adam and Christ as to their respective relation to the introduction of sin and of righteousness. Another convincing proof that the posterity of Adam were represented by him in the covenant, we have in the moral character and condition of in- fants, (Rom. v, 14; 1 Cor. vii, 14,) it being impossible to account for their subjection to the law and its curse but by a reference to the " offense of one," by which "judgment came upon all men to condemnation." This doctrine of the Bible and of the Confession has been sadly corrupt- ed by many in this land who profess an adherence to the Westminster Standards— affirming that Adam and his posterity were connected only by a principle of " social liability ;" according to which his sin was only in some way the occasion of their sin and death, and not the judicial ground of these ; and that we have no more to do with the first sin of Adam than with the sin of any other parents Such a view of the subject we regard as wholly unscriptural, and of dangerous tendency. It is the dictate of car- nal reason and vain philosophy. Article IV. — Of the Fall of Man, and his Present Inability. DECLARATION. We declare, That our first parents did, by their breach of cov- enant with God, subject themselves to his eternal wrath, and bring themselves into such a state of depravity as to be wholly inclined to sin, and altogether unable, by their own power, to THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 97 perform a single act of acceptable obedience to God ; and that all their natural posterity, in virtue of their representation in the covenant, are born into the world in the same state of guilt, depravity, and inability, and in this state will continue until de- livered therefrom by the grace and righteousness of the Lord Jesus Christ. Argument and Illustration. The Declaration that we have given on the fall of man, and its conse- quences, is in accordance with the Confession of Faith, chap, vi, sees. 2, 3, 4; chap, ix, sec. 3. That our first parents became by their sin subject to death, appears from the threatening of death pronounced by God, (Gen. ii, 17 ;) which death in- cludes in it the separation of the soul and body, with its antecedents, as a penal evil, (Rom. vi, 23; I Cor. xv, 56; Rom. i, 32;) and the everlasting sepa- ration from his favor and presence of both soul and body, as appears from the contrast which the apostle draws between the sin and death introduced by Adam, and the righteousness and life introduced by Christ, (Rom. v, 12, 18;) and also from the terror, shame, and confusion into which our first parents were thrown, and their disposition to hide themselves from the presence of the Lord God, (Gen. iii, 7, 8;) all which, with the provision of grace revealed for their restoration, (Gen. iii, 15, 21,) clearly indicate that the condition of our first parents was one of guilt, depravity and inability. That this is the state in which the posterity of Adam come into the world, follows as a necessary consequence from his representative charac- ter, which we have before proved; his sin is theirs, and is so imputed to them by the righteous Judge of all. Accordingly we find men declared to be in a state of condemnation, (Rom. iii, 19; v, 16, 18; Gal. iii, 10.)— of death, (Rom. v, 12, 14,)— having an understanding darkened, (Jer. iv, 22; 1 Cor. ii, 14; Eph. iv, 18,)— a will opposed to the will of God, (Rom. viii, 7; Col. i, 21; Rom. i, 30,) a mind and a conscience defiled (Tit. i, 15; I Tim. iv, 2; Heb. ix, 14.)— affections corrupted, (Rom. viii. 5,)— and the body subjected to a state of sinful subservience, (Phil, iii, 19, 21; Rom. vi, 13; James iii, 6; Rom. iii, 13, 15.) This state of condemnation and depravity is universal, extending to every individual of the human family, (Rom. iii, 9, 19; John iii, 6,)— total, corrupting the whole man, (Gen. vi, 5 ; Ps. xiv : Jer. xvii, 9,)— native, having been brought with us into the world, (Ps. Ii, 5 ; John iii, 6 ; Eph. ii, 3,) Such being the condemnation and depravity of all men, their inability to believe, repent, or by their own power to do any thing which is pleas- ing to God, follows as a necessary consequence. But the proof of man's inability does not depend upon inference. The Saviour says, (John xv, 5.) that without him we can do nothing. We cannot come to him, unless divinely 98 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. drawn, (John vi, 44.) Paul declares that we are without strength, (Rom. v, G.) We are represented as dead, (Eh p. ii, 1,) — corrupt trees, which cannot bring forth good fruit. (Matt, vii, 17, 18.) This inability of man is also sup- posed in the Scripture doctrine of the necessity of a change of state and of heart, in order to his walking with God in newness of life, (Rom. vii, 4 ; Eph ii. 10; Phil ii, 13.) Many who profess an adherence to the Westminster Standards, claim for the sinners what is called a '• natural ability " to believe, repent, and perform good works. The expression conveys an erroneous idea, if it be used in any other sense than simply to affirm that man is still in possession of his rational faculties; but if used in this sense, it is an improper ex- pression ; it claims for man more than this — it claims for him, what he has not, in any sense, an ability to do what God requires him to do. Man's responsibility to God is no proof of his ability. This ability he possessed in Adam, and in him lost it. It is also an inability which in- volves in it opposition to God and his law, which, of course, cannot be excused, (John iii, 19.) He. moreover, does not perform towards God even those natural acts which God requires of him, and thereby shows that a sense of inability is not the motive of his disobedience. And let it be remembered also that strength is freely offered in the gospel, (Nah. i, 7; Ps. xxvii, 14; Isa. xl, 29.) Of this strength we are commanded to take hold, (Isa. xxvii, 5.) We therefore solemnly testify against the following errors : — that there is no such thing as original sin — that infants come into the world as per- fectly free from corruption as Adam was when he was created ; that by original sin nothing more is meant than the fact that all the posterity of Adam, though born entirely free from moral defilement, will always begin to sin when they begin to exercise moral agency, and that this fact is some- how connected with the fall of man ; that there is no such thing as impu- ted sin ; that the impenitent sinner is, by natun , a d independently of the aid of the Holy Spirit, in full possession of all ihe powers necessary to a compliance with the commands of God— and that if he labor under any kind of inability, natural or moral, which he could not himself remove, he would be excusable for not complying with God's will. Article V. — Of the Nature and Extent of the Atonement. DECLARATION. We declare, That our Lord Jesus Christ did, by the appoint- ment of the Father, and by his own gracious and voluntary act, place himself in the room of a definite number, who were cho- sen in him before the foundation of the world ; so that he was THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 99 their true and proper legal Surety ; and as such, did, in their behalf, satisfy the justice of God, and answer all the demands which the law had against them, and thereby infallibly obtain for them eternal redemption. Argument and Illustration. The doctrine here declared is the doctrine of our Confession, chap, viii, sections 3, 4, and 8- That our Lord sustained the character and relation of a Surety and Substitute, is, we believe, unequivocally taught in the word of God. He is called (Heb. vii, 22,) "the Surety of a better testament," (covenant.) He was "made under the law, to redeem them that were under the law," (Gal. iv, 4, 5.) He is represented as acting not for himself, (Dan. ix, 26,) but for (or instead of) his people in the work of salvation, (1 Pet. iii, 18; Matt, xx, 28; Isa liii, 5.) Our "iniquities" were "laid upon him," ilsa. liii, 6 ) He "bore our sins," (Heb. ix, 28; 1 Pet. ii, 24.) He 'was made sin for us," (2 Cor. v, 21.) He was "made a curse for us," (Gal. iii, 13.) This truth also appears from the vicarious character of the typical sacri- fices under the ceremonial law, (Lev. xvii, 11 ; Heb. x, 1—12; Lev. iv, 24; Lev. xvi, 21.) On no other principle can we reconcile the sufferings en- dured by Christ with the holiness of his nature and life, and with the love of the Father for him, both which are asserted in the Scriptures, (Luke i, 35; Acts iv, 27; 2 Cor. v, 21; Matt, iv, 17; John xvii, 24.) As the Surety of his people, our Lord represented them in law; and in this light he is clearly exhibited to us in Romans v, 12—18. These proofs fully establish the truth of our declaration, that our Lord was the true and proper legal Surety of his people. We have also declared that our Lord, as the Surety of his people, satis- fied the justice of God, and answered all the demands which the law had against them. If Christ did, as we have seen, take the place of his people in law, he must have done all this, and nothing less than this. Retributive justice enters essentially into the character of God as Law- giver and Judge, (Ps. ix. 8; Rom. ii, 6—9; Rom. vi, 23; 2 Thess. i, 6—8; Heb. x, 30, 31 ; Prov. xi, 21.) This being the case, it was necessary that, as one who was " made under the law," he should make satisfaction to the retributive justice of God in behalf of his people: or, in other words, that he should suffer in their room the penalty of the law. Accordingly, we find the great Lawgiver himself represented as dealing with him in what he suffered through the instrumentality of others, (John xix, 11 ; Acts ii, 23; Acts iv, 27; Isa. liii, 10) It is only on this principle that we can ac- count for his amazement and agony in the garden, (Luke xxii, 42—44) ; and his bitter lamentation on the cross, (Mark xv, 34.) That our Lord satisfied 100 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. the justice of God by suffering the penalty of the law, is asserted in Gala- tians iii, 10, 13: "As many as are of the works of the law, are under the curse;" ''Christ hath redeemed us from the curse of the law, being made a curse for us." The same important truth is also exhibited to our view by the word " sacrifice," which is frequently applied to the sufferings of Christ. This word, especially when interpreted in the light of the ancient types, clearly involves the idea of the satisfaction of justice, in the strict and proper sense of that term, (Heb. ix, 26 ; x, 5—12.) In no other way can we reconcile the sufferings of Christ with the justice of God the Father, in his dealings with his Son ; or see how God can be "just," and yet "justify the ungodly," (Isa. liii, 10; Rom. iv, 5.) As the vicarious character of Christ involves the idea that he satisfied the retributive justice of God for those for whom he was made under the law, so it also involves the idea that he perfectly obeyed all the precepts of the iaw for them. The law, under which he was made as the Substitute of sinners, required obedience as the condition of life; and consequently, it was necessary that this obedience should be rendered by Him who came that we might have life, (Tit. i, 2; Matt, v, 17, 18; Rom. x, 4.) This doctrine of the suretyship and satisfaction of Christ stands opposed to the ideas, that in the sufferings of Christ there was not an endurance of the penalty of the law, but that they were simply designed as a substitute for the infliction of the penalty; that the whole legal system has been suspended by the atonement ; that the satisfaction rendered by Christ was simply a satisfaction to the principles of what some call general or public justice, and that its only effect is to render it consistent with God's honor to propose lower terms of salvation to the sinner, such as faith, repentance, and sincere obedience, — ideas which are held most inconsistently by some professed Presbyterians. We have further declared, that the satisfaction and obedience of Christ were rendered by him in the room of a definite and a chosen number. That this was the case follows as a necessary consequence from their vica- rious character, taken in connection with the fact that some will be lost. (Matt, xxv, 41.) While his death possessed, intrinsically, an infinite value, and must have been sufficient as a ransom for all mankind, had it been the design of God that all mankind should be redeemed by it, the Scriptures clearly represent him as giving his life for a definite number, called " his seed," (Isa. liii, 10, 11,)— his " sheep," (John x, 15, compared with verses 26, 27, and Matt, xxv, 12, 33,)— his " church," (Eph. v, 25) They are some out of all nations, (Rev. v, 9, 10,) and such as were given to him by the Father, (John xvii, 2, 4, 6.) The very terms, " redeem " and "ransom," which are used to express the work of Christ, clearly imply this, unless all shall actu- ally be saved; for justice can have no claims upon those for whose deliv- erance an adequate price has been paid. Christ himself expressly declares that he did not pray for any but his sheep ; and it is altogether unreason- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 101 able to suppose that he would exclude from his prayers, as a priest, any for whom as a priest he had laid down his life. It is true that universal terms are employed in connection with the atonement; but they will be found, upon examination, to refer to the atonement of Christ as distin- guished from the Levitical atonement, which was restricted to the Jewish nation, (Rom. iii, 22, 23, 29, V— or to the applicability of the atonement to all, (1 Tim ii, 6,)— or to the exclusion of every other way of salvation, (1 John ii, 2,)— or to the offer of salvation to be made to all, (2 Cor. v, 19.) These views in reference to the nature and extent of the atonement, which we have exhibited, and which we have shown to be in accordance with the Scriptures, clearly involve the idea set forth in our Declaration, that the satisfaction and obedience rendered by Christ for his people, infal- libly secure their salvation, and of course stand opposed to the idea that Christ did not die, properly speaking, in the room of sinners; but only for sin in general, with the view merely of rendering salvation attainable, and equally attainable, by all. Such an idea is directly contrary to the Scrip- tures, which represent him as dying, not merely for our sins, but for (or in the room of) persons, (Isa. liii, 4—6; Matt. xxvi,28; 1 Pet. iii, 18; Rom, v, 6; 1 Thes. v, 10; John x, 15;) and which also represent the salvation of these persons as infallibly sure, (Rom. viii, 29, 30; 2 Tim. ii, 19; Rom. vi, 11 ; Tit. ii, 14; Eph. v, 25—27,) which it would not be if he died alike for all, and that only to render salvation possible. Correct views in relation to the nature and extent of redemption are ne- cessarily and intimately connected, and it is a matter of the utmost import- ance that the truth on both these points be clearly perceived and faithfully maintained. Article VI. — Of Imputed Righteousness. DECLARATION. We declare, That in justification there is an imputation to the believer of that righteousness, or satisfaction and obedience, which the Lord Jesus Christ, as the surety of his people, ren- dered to the law ; and that it is only on the ground of this im- puted righteousness that his sins are pardoned, and his person accepted in the sight of God. Argument and Illustration. This Declaration is evidently in accordance with the Confession of Faith, chap. xi. The imputation of the righteousness of Christ, is placing to the account of the believer in Christ what he did as the Substitute and Surety of his 102 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. people. The truth of the preceding Declaration follows, as a necessary consequence, from the doctrine that we have already established in relation to the substitution of Christ in the room of his people; and hence, it is denied only by those who deny that as a Substitute he fulfilled the law, and endured its penalty. This doctrine, however, is not less clearly taught in the Scriptures. God is said to "impute righteousness without works," (Rom. iv, 6.23.) We are said to be ''made the righteousness of God in him/' (2 Cor v, 21.) Christ is said to be "made unto us righteousness," (1 Cor. i, 30.) "By the obedience of One, many" are said to be "made righteous." (Rom. v, 19.) Christ is "called— THE LORD OUR RIGHT- EOUSNESS," (Jer. xxiii, 6.) "In the Lord," we are said to "have right- eousness," (Isa. xlv, 24.) " Of his righteousness, even of his only," we are to ' make mention," (Ps. lxxi, 16.) " The righteousness of God" is said to be " unto all and upon all them that believe," (Rom. iii, 22.) These pas- sages fully establish the doctrine of the imputation of the righteousness of Christ as the ground of the believer's justification before God. As Jehovah is a just God, if we are justified by him, it must be either on the ground of our own righteousness, or that of a substitute, (Ex. xxiii, 7.) That we are justified on the ground of our own righteousness is expressly denied, (Rom. iii, 19—21 ; Gal. ii, 16; iii, 10; James ii, 10 ) Hence it follows, that the righteousness of Christ is the only ground of our justification. Some affirm that the believer is justified on the ground of his faith. This, however, is to pervert the office of faith in the justification of the soul, which is simply as an instrument to "receive the gift of righteous- ness," (Rom. v, 17,) or Christ as " the Lord our righteousness," (John i, 12; Rom. xiii, 14; Heb. vi, 18.) Faith, though the gift of God, (Eph. ii, 8,) and a grace of the Spirit (Gal. v, 22.) is nevertheless the act of the be- liever, in which he performs a duty required by God. (1 John iii, 23; John xiv, 1 ; John vi, 29) If, then, he is pardoned and accepted by God on the ground of his faith, his justification is of works, which the Scriptures ex- pressly deny, (Rom. iii, 20; iv, 6 ; ix, 11; xi, 6.) Again, the fact of the sinner's justification by faith is referred to as evincing his justification to be by grace, (Rom. iv, 16; Eph. ii, 8. 9) It would, however, evidently fail to evince this if he were justified on account of his faith, and not simply by faith, as an instrument. To affirm that God accepts of our faith as a jus- tifying righteousness for the sake of Christ, does not in the least change the aspect of the doctrine, or render it less subversive of the grace of Christ in the salvation of the sinner. We therefore testify against the following sentiments that have been maintained by some, the symbol of whose faith is the Westminster Con- fession :— That under the gospel, sinners are not justified by having the obedience of Jesus Christ set down to their account; that Christ owed all his obedience to the law for himself; that faith is itself a righteousness, THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 103 and as such is the condition of the sinner's justification before God; that the expression, ' righteousness of God, 1 ' so frequently occurring in the Scriptures, never means the ground of the sinner's justification, but only- God's method of justifying sinners. Article VII. — Of the Gospel Offer. DECLARATION. We declare, That the gospel, taken in its strict and proper sense, as distinguished from the law, is a revelation of grace to sinners as such ; and that it contains a free and unconditional offer and grant of salvation through Christ, to all who hear it, whatever may be their character or condition. Argument and Illustration. The doctrine here stated accords with the Confession of Faith, chap, x, and Shorter Catechism, quest. 31. When we speak of the gospel in its strict and proper sense, as distin- guished from the law, we understand it simply as a proclamation of good news, which is the literal import of the word, (Luke ii, 10; Cor. xv, 1, 2; Rom. xi, 28.) Although, as such, it comes to all who hear it with divine authority, and binds them to receive and improve it, (Heb. ii, 1—3,) yet it is a revelation of grace to sinners, containing neither precepts nor sanc- tions, (Rom. vi, 14 ; Acts xx, 32; 2 Cor. vi, 1.) In this gospel there is a free, unconditional, and unlimited offer of Christ, and salvation in him, to man as guUty and depraved. That there is an offer of these in the gospel is evident from the fact that they are received by man, which they could not be if they were not given, (Col. ii, 6; John i, 12; John iii, 27.) That this offer is free appears from the fact that it is referred to the love of God, (John iii, 16.) That it is unconditional, appears from the guilt, depravity and helplessness of the sinner, (Rom. v, 12, 16; Ps. xiv; Eph. ii, 1.) That it is unlimited, being made to all who hear it without any restriction, ap- pears from the express testimony of God's word, (Mark xvi, 15; Isa. lv, 1—3; Prov. viii, 4; Isa. xlvi, 12; Rev. iii, 18; Rev. xxii, 17 ; John vi, 32, 37. If the offer of the gospel were not thus made to each sinner who hears it, its rejection could not be, as it is declared to be, a ground of con- demnation, (Prov. i, 24; John iii, 18, 36.) Salvation is thus freely offered to all, not because Christ died for all, (which we have seen to be contrary to the Scriptures.) but because there is in his obedience and death a suffi- ciency of merit for the salvation of all, (Isa. xlii. 21,) and because he is in- vested by the Father with all power, (Matt, xxviii, 18, 19.) The doctrine here declared and vindicated, is opposed to the idea that 104 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. salvation is to be offered by the minister of the gospel to none but sensi- ble, awakened, or penitent sinners, and that it is only such sinners that are warranted to come to Christ— and that, therefore, sinners are in the first place to prepare themselves to come to Christ, by trying to make themselves sensible of their need of him, and to excite in their hearts de- sires for his salvation. Such a view of the gospel offer is not only dishon- oring to the grace of God, but discouraging to the sinner, as it sets him to ■work without strength, and gives him no assurance when he is sufficiently prepared for the reception of Christ. Against such views we therefore solemnly testify. Article VIII. — Of Saving Faith. DECLARATION-. We declare, That in true and saving faith there is not merely an assent of the mind to the proposition that the Lord Jesus Christ is the Saviour of sinners ; but also a cordial reception and appropriation of him by the sinner as his Saviour, with an accompanying persuasion or assurance corresponding to the de- gree or strength of his faith, that he shall be saved by him ; which appropriation and persuasion are founded, solely, upon the free, and unconditional, and unlimited offer of Christ and salvation in him, which God makes in the gospel to sinners of mankind. Argument and Illustration. This Declaration we make in defense of the doctrine of the Confession, chap, xiv, sec. 2. Faith, in the general acceptation of the term, is a belief of testimony. Human faith is a belief of human testimony ; divine faith is a belief of divine testimony. Now, in order that we may ascertain what is the nature of that faith which respects Christ as a Saviour, we must inquire what is the testimony of God respecting this Saviour. This we have seen in the preceding article to be, that he has made in the gospel a free and uncondi- tional offer and grant of Christ to us as sinners. This is the testimony of God, (1 John v, 10,) and also of Christ himself, (John vi, 32.) This being the case, the believer must, in the exercise of faith, contemplate Christ as given to himself in particular. lie sees Christ in the gospel, as made of God unto him wisdom, righteousness, sanctification, and redemption, (1 Cor. i, 30 ;) and thus seeing him he appropriates him to himself, or re- ceives him as his own Saviour. Hence faith is expressed by terms which clearly imply this direct application of Christ by the believer to himself. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 105 It is called the receiving of Christ, (Col. ii, 6,)— putting on Christ, (Rom. xiii, 14,)— a fleeing to Christ, and laying hold of him, (Heb. vi, 18,)— a feeding on him, (John vi, 51.) This reception of Christ we call appropria- tion, because the believer views the offer which God makes of Christ to him as giving him a warrant to take him as his Saviour. That he thus views him is implied in the very words which express this exercise of the soul, (John xx, 28; Ps. xviii, 1, 2 ; Ps. xliii, 2—4; Ps. xvi, 2.) We have declared that in this appropriation there is, according to the degree and strength of the faith exercised, a belief, persuasion, or assur- ance, that we shall be saved. When the soul receives Christ, and rests upon him, it is for salvation. This salvation must, therefore, be in the mind, as a result to be realized. Hence faith is declared to be the sub- stance of things hoped for, the evidence (or demonstration) of things not seen. We are exhorted to draw nigh to the Holiest of All in " the full assurance of faith," (Heb. x, 22.) This can only mean that assurance which is in the direct act of faith ; for the reason assigned for it is not the work of God in the heart, but the fact that we " have a High Priest over the house of God," (verse 21.) This persuasion, or assurance, is also im- plied in those passages which represent faith as a building on Christ, (Eph. ii, 20,)— a trusting in him, (Eph. i, 12, 13,)— a resting on him, (Ps. xxxvii, 7,) — a leaning on him, (Song viii, 5j The assurance of which we have spoken, is different from that " assur- ance of grace and salvation," of which the Confession speaks, (chap, xvii,) and for which " a true believer may wait long, and conflict with many difficulties before he be a partaker of it." The one rests upon the testimony of God, speaking in his word; the other upon the work of God in the heart. The one may exist without a consciousness or sensible im- pression of its existence; the other, in the very nature of the case, can- not. Nor do we deny— but on the contrary maintain — that this assurance that is in the nature of faith may be associated with doubts respecting the testimony of God to us in the gospel, (Matt, xiv, 31.) We deem it a matter of importance that the doctrine which we have ex- hibited on the subject of faith be maintained by the Church, as it cannot fail to encourage the sinner to close with the offers of the gospel and thus open up to his soul a source of true and permanent peace. If he must know that he is a true believer before he can warrantably say, " Surely in the Lord have I righteousness and strength," where is "the beginning" of that "confidence" which he is to hold ''steadfast unto the end?" We therefore solemnly testify against all those who give such an exhibition of faith in the Lord Jesus Christ, and of the offers and promises of the gos- pel as is calculated to excite a doubt in the mind even of the chief of sin- ners, that he has a perfect warrant for an assured appropriation of Christ, and of all the blessings of the new covenant. 8 106 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Article IX. — Of Evangelical Repentance. DECLARATION. We declare, That the repentance which is a saving grace, is one of the fruits of a justifying faith; and, of course, cannot be regarded as a ground of the sinner's pardon, or as necessary to qualify him for coming to Christ. Argument and Illustration. The doctrine here presented is that of the Confession of Faith, chap, xv, sees. 2d and 3d. To prevent misunderstanding, we would distinctly state that the repent- ance of which we speak, is an essential part of that " holiness without which no man shall see the Lord,'' (Luke xiii, 3, 5; Acts xvii, 30.) It is, however, as we have declared it to be, a fruit of faith. It does not go be- fore faith, but follows after it as an immediate effect. This will appear evident if we consider either the nature of these two acts of the soul, or the testimony of God's word. Whatever may be the nature of the repent- ance, there must be, in the very nature of the case, belief in order to that repentance. According to the belief, so will the repentance be. He who has no belief in the law, cannot be said, in any sense, to repent of sin as sin : for " sin is the transgression of the law," (Rom. iv, 15 ; 1 John iii, 4 ;) and "by the law is the knowledge of sin," (Rom. iii, 20; vii, 7.) There must, then, necessarily, be a legal faith in order to a legal repentance. Now. this legal repentance, or that sorrow for sin which arises merely from a view of the requirements and sanctions of the divine law, may and does precede evangelical faith. The sinner must see that his sin is destroying him before he will think of applying to the Saviour. Faith in the law merely, however, is not saving. Neither is that repentance saving which flows from it. Such was the repentance of Saul, (1 Sam. xv, 24, 30; xxvi, 21,) and of Judas, (Matt, xxvii, 3 — 5.) Such is " the sorrow of the world," (2 Cor. vii, 10.) Saving faith has a respect to a Saviour offered in the gos- pel, and the mercy and grace of God in making this offer; and there is the same necessary connection between this faith and that repentance which is saving, as there is between the legal faith and the legal repentance of which we have just spoken. This saving repentance, or repentance unto life, has respect to a God in Christ as one who has been offended by our sins. The sorrow for sin experienced by the true penitent, springs up in the heart as an immediate result of that view which the believing soul takes of sin as committed against the God of grace, revealing and making over to us Christ with all his saving benefits. It is therefore, necessarily, the fruit of faith, and as different from a mere legal repentance, as is the faith which produces it from a mere legal faith. THE CnURCH MEMORIAL. 107 The Scriptures also clearly exhibit true and saving repentance to us in this light, as may be seen by consulting the following passages: Zech. xii, 10; Jer. xxxi, 18, 19 ; Ezek. xxxvi, 26—31 ; Luke xv, 20, 21. This rational and scriptural view of repentance shows the error of those who would call the sinner to repentance, either as a means of appeasing the wrath of God against him for his sin, or as qualifying him for the re- ception of Christ by faith. Against such an exhibition of repentance we testify, as dishonoring to the grace of God and to the atonement of Christ, and as tending to dis- courage the sinner from making an immediate application to Christ. Article X. — Of the Believer's Deliverance from the Law as a Covenant. DECLARATION. We declare, That although the moral law is of perpetual ob- ligation, and consequently does and ever will bind the believer as a rule of life, yet as a covenant, he is by his justification through Christ, completely and forever set free from it, both as to its commanding and condemning power, and consequently not required to yield obedience to it as a condition of life and salva- tion. Argument and Illustration. This Declaration is in accordance with the Confession of Faith, chap.xvi, and Larger Catechism, ques. 97. We have said that the moral law does, and ever will, bind the believer as a rule of life. That this is the case appears from the very character of the law as u holy, just and good," (Rom. vii, 12,)— from the nature of that prin- ciple which is said to fulfill the law, namely, love, (Rom. xiii, 10,)— from the sovereignty and supremacy of God as Lawgiver, he having given but one moral law, (Isa. xxxiii, 22 ; James iv, 11, 12,)— from the preface to the ten commandments, setting forth as a reason why we should obey the law, not only the sovereignty of God, but also his character as a Redeemer, which reason, in the case of the beiiever, will always be in force, (Ex. xx, 1, 2.)— from the declared end of Christ's death, which is to make us " zeal- ous of good works," (Tit. ii. 14)— from the charge of God to his- people to 11 remember the law of Moses," (Mai. iv. 4,)— and from the express decla- ration of the apostle that we are " not without law to God, but under law to Christ," (1 Cor. ix, 21.) While, however, believers are bound to keep the whole law, and to seek after perfect conformity to it as a rule of life, it is nevertheless a truth 108 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. clearly taught in the word of God that they are wholly and forever deliv- ered from it as a covenant, promising life in case of obedience, and threat- ening death in case of disobedience. Believers are declared to be " deliv- ered from the law," (Rom. vii, 6,)—" not under the law, but under grace," (Rom. vi, 14.)— and Christ, in whom they are "found, not having their own righteousness, which is of the law," is declared to be to them " the end of the law," iPhil. iii, 9; Rom. x, 4.) The apostle expressly declares it to be the privilege of believers that they are "redeemed from the curse of the law," (Gal. iii, 13.) Deliverance from the curse of the law, as a covenant implies deliverance from its command as a covenant; for if it command be- lievers in this character, it must also punish them when they transgress it. The complete freedom of believers, both from the perceptive and penal power of the law as a covenant, further appears from the fact that Christ was, as a Surety, made under this law in this form, and in the name of his people fulfilled its precepts, and suffered its penalty, (Gal. iv, 4, 5 ; Matt, v, 17 ; Gal. iii, 13.) The same truth also appears from all those passages which represent the believer as justified by Christ and his righteousness, (2 Cor. v, 21 ; Rom. v, 18, 19,)— as justified without works, (Rom. iii, 20 ; iv, 6,) and as justified by grace, (Rom. iii, 24; Tit. iii, 7.) Such being the blessed privilege of the believer, his obedience to the law, when it is of an evangelical nature, and such as is pleasing to God, does not spring from a slavish fear of God's vindictive wrath, or a hope of life on the ground of his own works, (Luke i, 74; 1 John iv, 18: Rom. viii, 15,) —but from faith in God as his new covenant God in Christ, (Deut. x, 20, 21 ; 1 Pet. i, 17; Tit. ii, 14.) In rendering this obedience to the law as a rule of life, the gospel presents to us the most powerful considerations, such as the love of the Father in sending his Son to save us, (1 John iv, 8, 9j— the love of Christ in giving his life to redeem us, (1 Cor. vi, 19, 20,)— the love of the Spirit in applying this redemption, (Eph. iv, 30,)— and the hope of a glorious immortality in heaven, (1 John iii, 2, 3 ; Matt, v, 8; Heb. xii, 14.) We deem it a matter of the greatest importance that the doctrine of the believer's exemption from the law be distinctly set forth, as its belief is ne- cessary to a life of holiness, (Rom. vii, 4 ; Gal. ii, 19,)— and to the perform- ance of those good works that are acceptable to God, (Eph. i, 6 ; 1 Peter ji^ 5j_ an( j to the cultivation and enjoyment, by the believer, of a true and heavenly peace, (Rom. v, I, 2.) Article XI. — Of the Work of the Holy Spirit. DECLARATION. We declare, That the Holy Spirit, the third person of the Trinity, does, by a direct operation accompanying the word, so THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 109 act upon the soul as to quicken, regenerate, and sanctify it ; and that without this direct operation, the soul would have no ability to perceive, in a saving manner, the truths of God's word, or yield to the motives which it presents. Argument and Illustration. The statement here made is in accordance with the Confession of Faith, chap. x. The Scriptures clearly hold forth the idea that the Holy Spirit does, in a gracious and supernatural way, operate upon the soul. Such an operation is implied in the names by which it is expressed. It is called a creation, (Eph. iv, 24,)— a renewing of the Holy Ghost, (Titus iii, 5,)— an opening of the eyes, (Ps. cxix, 18.)— an opening of the understanding, (Lukexxiv, 45,)— a quickening, (Eph. ii, 1,)— the giving of a heart of flesh, (Ezek. xxxvi, 26,) — a circumcising of the heart to love the Lord, (Deut. xxx, 6.) These expressions clearly intimate a direct and supernatural operation of Divine power upon the soul. The necessity of such an operation appears from the condition of the sinner as exhibited in the word of God. He is represented as dead in sins, (Eph. ii, 1,)— as blind, (Luke iv, 18; Rev. iii, 17 ; Eph. iv, 18 ) In accordance with all this, God is represented as working in the soul, (Eph. iii, 20; Phil, ii, 13; Col. i, 29 ; iThess.ii, 13; Eph. ii, 10.) This doctrine stands opposed to the idea that the regeneration and sanc- tification of the soul are the result of mere moral suasion, or the bare pre- sentation of truth to the mind. Such is the natural condition of the sinner, that without the direct operation of the Spirit of God on his soul, the doctrines, precepts, invitations and warnings that are contained in the word, must necessarily be ineffectual. He is blind, and must therefore have his eyes opened, that he may see : he is dead, and must therefore be quick- ened, in order that he may hear. The apostle expressly tells us, (1 Cor. ii, 14,) that the natural man cannot know the things of the Spirit of God, be- cause they are spiritually discerned. David prays (Ps. cxix, 18,) to God to open his eyes, that he might behold wondrous things out of his law. The apos- tle prays (Eph. i, 17, 18,) that God would give hose to whom he wrote, the spirit of wisdom and revelation in the knowledge of Christ, the eyes of their understanding being enlightened, that thi-y may know what is the hope of his calling. The Saviour, we are told, (Luke xxiv, 45,) opened the un- derstanding of the disciples, that they might understand the Scriptures. The Lord opened the heart of Lydia, that she attended to the things that were spoken of Paul, (Acts xvi, 14.) Paul says: "I have planted, Apollos wa- tered, but God gave the increase" (1 Cor. iii, 6—9.) These passages clearly show that there is an operation of Divine power, distinct from that of the word, and by which alone the word is rendered efficacious ; yet, though this operation is distinct from the word, it is not ordinarily without the 110 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. word, (1 Pet. i, 23 ; Rom. x, 13— 17 ; 1 Cor. iv, 15; 2 Thess. ii, 13.) The word is the light and food of the soul, (Ps. cxix, 103, 105.) The Spirit of God, in thus operating upon the soul as a Spirit of light and truth, does not impart any new faculties to the soul, but quickens and brings into exercise, and sanctifies those which the sinner already possesses. Nor is there any vio- lence done to the soul : the sinner is drawn, (John vi, 44, 65,) and made willing in the day of God's power, (Ps. ex, 3.) It follows as a necessary inference, that the sinner is altogether passive in regeneration, it being the communication of a principle of spiritual life to the soul ; and not, as some contend, a mere change of purpose. Article XII. — Of the Headship of Christ. DECLARATION. We declare, That our Lord Jesus Christ, besides the dominion which belongs to him as God, has, as our God-man Mediator, a twofold dominion, with which he has been invested by the Father as the reward of his sufferings. These are a dominion over the Church, of which he is the living Head and Lawgiver, and the source of all that Divine influence and authority by which she is sustained and governed; and also a dominion over all created persons and things, which is exercised by him in subserviency to the manifestations of God's glory in the sys- tem of redemption, and the interests of his Church. Argument and Illustration. The doctrine of Christ's Headship, as above exhibited, is in accordance with the Confession, chap, ii, sec. 1. The statement we have made on this important subject affirms Christ to have, as Mediator, a dominion over his Church. For this we have the ex- press testimony of the Divine word. He himself calls the Church his kingdom, (John xviii, 36.) God, the Father, in speaking of him, says, (Ps. ii, 6,)— l 'I have set my king upon my holy hill of Zion." The angel that announced his birth declared that he should "reign over the house of Jacob for ever," (Luke i, 33) The prophet Isaiah (Isa. ix, 6.) declared that "the government shall be upon his shoulder;" and Paul speaks of him as "a Son over his own house," (Heb. iii. G ) It is, therefore, his ex- clusive prerogative to provide for the preservation and perpetuation of his Church. In order to this he communicates grace. Hence he is said to be the Head of the Church, (Eph. v, 23,) and the Church is said to be his body, (Eph. v, 23;) plainly implying that all gracious and saving influ- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Ill ences proceed from him, [John xvi, 26.] The authority, also, to appoint officers and institute laws and ordinances must, in virtue of his preroga- tive as King of Zion, belong to him alone; and to him it is expressly- ascribed, (Isa. ix, 7; xxii, 22; Matt, xxviii, 18—20; Eph. iv, 8—13; John xx. 21.) It is, therefore, an unwarranted assumption of power, and a di- rect encroachment on the rights of the Lord Jesus Christ as King and Head of his Church, for any man, or any body of men, either in the Church or State, to exercise or claim a legislative power in relation to the doctrine, government, worship and discipline of the Church, (Matt, xv, 9; Isa. viii, 20.) We have also, in the above Declaration, ascribed to our Lord Jesus Christ a dominion over all created persons and things. The testimony of Scrip- ture in proof of this, is equally direct and explicit. All power is given unto him in heaven and in earth, (Matt xxviii, 18.) God has given him a name which is above every name, (Phil, ii, 9.) He has set him at his own right hand in the heavenly places, far above all principality, and might, and dominion, and every name that is named, not only in this world, but also in that which is to come ; and hath put all things under his feet, and gave him to be the Head over all things, (Eph. i, 20 — 22.) He has put all things in subjection under his feet, and left nothing that is not put under him, (Heb. ii, 8.) He has given him power over all flesh, (John xvii, 2.) Jesus has the keys of hell and death, (Rev. i, IS ) These passages clearly hold forth the idea that Christ, as Mediator, possesses universal power. This dominion over all persons and things, we have declared to be exer- cised by our Lord Jesus Christ, in subserviency to the manifestation of God's glory in the system of redemption, and the interests of his Church. This follows as a necessary consequence from the fact that this power has been delegated to him as Mediator ; for the distinct and formal end of the mediatorial office is the manifestation of the glory of God as the God of grace, and in subordination to this, the salvation of an elect world. Hence our Lord is said to be Head over all things to the Church, (Eph. i, 22,) — to have power over all flesh, that he should give eternal life to as many as the Father gave him, (John xvii, 2;) and all things, we are assured, work to- gether/or good to them that love God, (Rom. viii, 28 ) The subsidiary char- acter of this dominion of Christ over all persons and things, is also clearly taught in the vision of the wheels seen by Ezekiel, (Ezek. i, 19, 20.) Ac- cordingly, we find our Lord, as Mediator and Redeemer of his people, overthrowing nations to make way for his Church, (Hag. ii, 7 ; Heb. xii, 26,27; Dan. ii, 44,)— raising up rulers that knew him not, to deliver his people from oppression, (Isa. xlv, 13,)— employing wicked men to correct them, (Isa. x, 7,)— and punishing these wicked men for their malignant opposition to them, (Isa. Ii, 22, 23 ; Isa. xxxiv, 2, 8 ; Dan. vii, 26, 27 ; Isa lxiii, 1—7,)— casting the ungodly into hell, (2 Thess. i, 6— 9,)— exercising a 112 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. control over Satan, the god of this world, (Luke x, 18; John xii, 31 ; Rev. xx, 7, 10; Mark xvi, 17, 18,)— and employing even the inferior parts of creation as instruments of good to his people, and of evil to their enemies, (Ex. viii, 9, 10; Ps.cxlviii, 8.) Such being the universal dominion of our Lord as Mediator, it follows that all intelligent beings to whom he has been revealed in this character, are bound to acknowledge his mediatorial supremacy in all their respec- tive stations and relations. The angels are called upon to do so, (Heb. i, 6.) This is enjoined upon all men, (Phil, ii, 10; Col. iii, 17.) It is required of civil magistrates, ^Ps. ii, 10—12; Isa. lx, 12; Ps. lxxii, 10, 11.) While this, however, is unquestionably the duty of the civil magistrate, a failure to perform this duty does not, of itself, as our Confession truly declares, (chap, xxiii, sec 4,) " make void his just and legal authority, nor free the people from their due obedience to him." Nor is he, on the plea of re- garding the authority of Christ as Mediator, to do violence to the rights of conscience, or encroach upon the liberty of the Church as a distinct and independent kingdom. The civil magistrate, as such, is bound, as are all others in their respective spheres and relations, to recognize the authority of Christ in the performance of the duties that are appropriate to his calling, and ever to keep in view the nature and end of his calling. We deem it a matter of importance that the doctrine which we have de- clared in relation to the headship of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, be faithfully maintained, and distinctly exhibited by the Church, as it has an important bearing upon the honor of Christ, the purity of the Church, and the welfare of civil society, and cannot fail, when duly appreciated by Christians, to impress their hearts with a sense of the obligations that are resting upon them to devote themselves to his cause, and to labor for the spread of his gospel throughout the world. Article XIII. — Of the Supremacy of God's Law. DECLARATION. We declare, That the law of God, as written upon the heart of man, and as set forth in the Scriptures of the Old and New Testaments, is supreme in its authority and obligations ; and that where the commands of the Church or State are in conflict with the commands of this law, we are to obey God rather than man. Argument and Illustration. This Declaration is in accordance with the Confession, chap, i, sec. 2, chap, xx, sec. 2. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 113 The Declaration we have made on this subject is so plainly in accord- ance with the principles of the word of God, that it seems to be scarcely necessary to adduce any arguments in its defense ; and yet the principle which it embodies has been not a little opposed in this land by some, and entirely lost sight of by many professing Christians. Subjection to civij and ecclesiastical authorities is strictly enjoined upon us in the word of God, (Rom. xiii, 1—7; Tit. iii, 1 ; 1 Pet. ii, 13; Heb. xiii, 17,) and it is no doubt, therefore, a principle of the Bible, as well as of our Confession of Faith, that " they who, upon pretense of Christian liberty, shall oppose any lawful power, or the lawful exercise of it, whether it be civil or eccle- siastical, resist the ordinance of God," Confession of Faith, chap, xx, sec. 4,) yet the power must be "lawful;" and the "exercise," even of that power, must be " lawful," to make resistance of the ordinance of God. When, therefore, either the Church or State passes laws requiring us to do what the law of God forbids us to do, obedience to such laws would be re- sistance to him who is the source, (Rom. xiii, 1,) of all authority. Authority exercised in opposition to the law of God, is so far null and void, and can- not bind the conscience. Open and violent resistance may not be a duty; for it is sometimes the duty of Christians to take wrong, and submit to oppression, (Matt, v, 39; 1 Cor. vi, 7 ; 1 Pet. ii, 18.) Yet where human au- thority requires us to do what the law of God forbids, or forbids us to do what the law of God requires, it is in that particular instance to be disre- garded by us, let the consequences be what they may. Upon this princi- ple Daniel acted with divine approbation. A "royal statute" was enacted, forbidding a petition to be asked of any god or man, save the king, for thirty days. This statute Daniel violated, (Dan. vi, 1— 10.) Upon this principle, also, did Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego act, in refusing, at the command of the king, to worship the image which had been set up, (Dan. iii, 18.) Upon this principle, also, did the apostles act when com- manded that they should not speak in the name of Jesus, affirming that they ought to "obey God rather than man," (Acts v, 29.) Those, there- fore, who plead the statutes of man as a justification for the doing of what the word of God forbids, are guilty of exalting human laws above the di- vine law. Those who pass unrighteous decrees expose themselves to the displeasure of that God who " has prepared his throne in the heavens," and whose " kingdom ruleth over all, (Ps. ciii, 19 ; Isa. x, I, 2;) and those who carry out those decrees, "have fellowship with the throne of ini- quity," (Ps. xciv, 20.) We therefore solemnly testify against those who will plead the law of the land or of the Church as a reason for doing what the law of God for- bids, and against those who do not oppose those sins that have received the sanction of law. 114 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Article XIV. — Of Slaveholding. DECLARATION. We declare, That slaveholding — that is, the holding of unof- fending human beings in involuntary bondage, and considering and treating them as property, and subject to be bought and sold — is a violation of the law of God, and contrary both to the letter and spirit of Christianity. Argument and Illustration. This Declaration is in accordance with the Confession of Faith, chap, iv, sec. 2, Larger Catechism, ques. 142. That slaveholding is, as we have declared it to be, a violation of the law of God, will appear from the following considerations: 1. The word of God represents the whole human family as possessing a common nature. The slave is a man— as really and truly a man as the most gifted and illustrious of the human family. He is a child of Adam, who was made in the image and after the likeness of God, (Gen. i, 26.) He is of " one blood " with him who holds him in bondage, (Acts xvii, 26 ) This being the case, his natural rights must be the same as those of any other. If man possesses, by the law of his creation, any natural and inalienable right, that right must be inconsistent with the condition of a person who is considered and treated as property, subject to be bought and sold. Slave- holding, then, is at war with humanity. 2. The word of God, in the grant of dominion which it makes, restrains the power of man thus to treat his fellow man. He has, by the authority of God his Creator, dominion over all the lower creatures, (Gen. i, 26.) The possession of such a dominion by a person is, in its very nature, in- consistent with his condition as a slave— a person who is himself considered and treated as property. While, therefore, he is held in this condition, the grant of his Creator is rendered a nullity. Nor is this all: while this grant of dominion secures to the slave his right to liberty, it interdicts, by the clearest implication, the assumption of that right which the slaveholder claims. The grant of his Creator gives him dominion over the lower creatures. These he may make his property ; thus far his dominion as owner extends, but no farther. Slavery, however, assumes this power. It reduces to the condition of property him who, by divine right, is lord of all. (Ps. viii, 6.) 3. The law of God recognizes the right of all men to use the powers of body and mind, which their Creator has given them, in the pursuit of hap- piness. It sanctions labor with a view to their support, (Gen. ii, 15; iii, 23; 1 Thess. iv, 11; 2 Thess. iii, 10— 12.) But slavery, while it dooms its vic- tims to toil, lays its hand upon the fruits of that toil, and appropriates it to THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 115 him who has not performed the labor. It thus takes away from man that incentive to labor which the Creator has given to him, by giving to him a right to its fruits. The slave, being himself the property of another, can own nothing, and of course can acquire nothing. 4. The law of God enjoins it upon masters to give to their servants " that which is just and equal," (Col. iv, 1.) The slaveholder gives nothing to his slave, as a right acquired by labor. What he gives as a slaveholder, has a ref- erence merely to the support of his slave, that he may thereby be qualified to labor. The fruits of that labor he appropriates to himself. He there- fore violates the law of justice enjoined upon the master, and exposes him- self to the wo pronounced against him who " useth his neighbor's services without wages, and giveth him not/or his work," (Jer. xxii, 13) Neither does he give his servant that which is " equal." There is no proportion be- tween the labor performed by the slave and what he receives from his master. The slave may be hired out to another, by whom he is fed and clothed ; but the owner of the slave receives from the man to whom he is hired, the wa- ges. Nor is there any proportion between what the slave receives and what another receives who performs the same amount of work. He therefore violates the principle of equality, which he is bound by the law of God to observe. 5. The law of God recognizes marriage as the right of all, (Heb. xiii, 4.) It requires the parties to dwell together, (1 Pet. ili, 7,) and makes the relation indissoluble by man, (Gen. ii, 24; Matt, xix, 6.) But the right which the slaveholder claims to his slave as his property, subject to be bought and sold, is in direct conflict with these divine requisitions. He may, by the exercise of his right as a slaveholder, forbid his marriage, or place him in circumstances in which he cannot enjoy this divine right; or if married, he may, at will, entirely and forever separate the parties. The laws which govern and control property imply all this. G. The law of God requires parents to bring up their children in the nur- ture and admonition of the Lord, (Eph. vi, 4.) The slaveholder, in virtue of the relation which he sustains, and by the right of ownership which he claims, may not only interfere with the government of the parent over his children, but entirely and forever separate them from each other. 7. The law of God requires every man to search the Scriptures, (John, v, 39.) The right of the slaveholder interferes with this. The laws which govern all property necessarily secure to him the right of prohibiting his slave from doing any thing which may operate against the attainment of the end for which this species of property, in common with all others, is held — his own gain. 8. The law of God forbids man-stealing, (Deut. xxiv, 7 ; 1 Tim. i, 9, 10.) In this the alleged right of one man to make merchandize of his fellow man, must have originated. As the fountain is corrupt, the stream cannot be pure. 116 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. The foregoing considerations clearly show this relation to be, as we have declared it to be, in violation of the law of God. We have also declared it to be contrary both to the letter and spirit of Christianity. What says the Author of Christianity? He says :—'' All things whatsoever ye would that men should do to you, do ye even so to them," (Matt, vii, 12.) There is no slaveholder who would not resist being made a slave, and who would not feel an irrepressible conviction that a wrong had been done him. This being the case, he is bound by this express precept of the Saviour to break the yoke and let the oppressed go free, (1 Cor. vii, 21 ; Isa. lviii, 6.) And what is the spirit of Christianity ? It is surely love, (Rom. xiii, 10; 1 John iv,20,21; Luke x,27— 37.) Is not, how- ever, the reduction of a fellow being (he may be a brother in Christ) to the condition of a piece of property, liable to be bought and sold, in viola- tion of this holy and divine principle ? Who, that is not a stranger to the impulses of a Christian's heart, will deny it ? We have, therefore, in the law of God, and in the letter and spirit of Chris- tianity, abundant reasons for testifying against slaveholding as a sin, and consequently a disqualification for membership in the Church of Christ. It is the relation itself, which we have examined in the lightof Scripture, and which we have found to be so inconsistent with it, and not the many cruel laws which blacken the statute books of the slaveholding States, and the many gross and fearful evils that result from this relation. A considera- tion however, of these laws and evils which everywhere attend it, cannot fail to impress the mind with a sense of the inherent wickedness of the system. Article XV. — Of Secret Societies. DECLARATION. We declare, That all associations, whether formed for politic- al or benevolent purposes, which impose upon their members an oath of secrecy, or an obligation to obey a code of unknown laws, are inconsistent with the genius and spirit of Christianity, and Church members ought not to have fellowship with such associations. Argument and Illustration. This Declaration is in accordance with the Confession of Faith, chap, xxii, sees. 1-— 5. In making the above Declaration, it Is freely admitted that there are many things with which an individual becomes acquainted which it would be improper for him to reveal, (Prov xi, 13; xx, 19.) The same thing, also, THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 117 may be affirmed in relation to associations. It is not, therefore, the fact of secrecy, simply considered, that we condemn. What, then, is it ? It Is the fact of a person giving an oath or promise that he will not make known to others matters which are to be subsequently communicated to him; or that he will obey a code of laws with which he is not made acquainted until after the oath or promise be given by him. This we believe to be wrong under all circumstances; and all associations founded on this principle are to be condemned, whatever be the object for which they are formed. 1. Such an obligation is inconsistent with our subjection to the law of God. This law is the supreme standard. We are always to obey it, (Gal. iii, 10; Isaiah viii, 20; Acts iv, 19.) When, therefore, we come under an oath or promise to keep the transactions of a society of men concealed, we know not but that the law of God may require us to reveal them. When we bind ourselves to support the principles of a society with which we have not been made acquainted, we know not but that the law of God may bind us to oppose them. When we pledge ourselves to obey a system of laws of which we are ignorant, we know not but that they may be in con- flict with the law of God. We are, therefore giving promises, obligations and pledges to do that which, for aught we know, may involve us in sin. These, under such circumstances, cannot be given "in judgment," as re- quired by the command of God, (Jer. iv, 2.) 2. Such an obligation is ensnaring and enslaving to the conscience. God alone is Lord of the conscience, (Jas. iv, 12; Rom. xiv, 4 ; Matt, x, 28 ) To bring ourselves, however, under an obligation to obey a code of unknown laws, is, in the very act, whatever may be the character of these laws, do- ing violence to the freedom of conscience. It is making ourselves the *' ser- vants of men," (1 Cor. vii, 23.) 3. Such an obligation is not only not countenanced by the example of the saints in the Scripture, but is inconsistent with it. When Abraham di- rected his servant to swear to him, although he informed him of the mat- ter of the oath, yet his servant did not swear until he first understood what he would be required by his oath, under certain circumstances, to do. This was made known to him by Abraham, (Gen. xxiv, 2—9 ) See, also, the case of David and Jonathan, (I Sam. xx.) We deem the foregoing considerations in point, whether the pledge given be a promise or oath, for the principles to which we have referred are equally applicable to both. When, however, an oath is given, the person swearing, under such circumstances, involves himself in the additional guilt of profaning the name of God, and does not, as our Confession properly requires, take an oath when imposed " by lawful authority," nor " duly considers the weightiness of so solemn an act," or "avouch nothing but what he is fully persuaded is the truth," and what he " believes to be good and just," and is therefore guilty of " swearing vainly and rashly." [See Confession, chap, xxii.] 118 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. In addition to these considerations, while we would not deny the right of associations to withhold some of their transactions from the public, when it may be deemed advisable at the time, yet associations formed on the prin- ciple of secrecy are liable to objections of a very serious character— such objections as show them to be, as we have declared them to be, inconsistent with the genius and spirit of Christianity. 1. The Founder of Christianity did not act upon this principle. He could appeal to his enemies, and say, " I spake openly to the world ; I ever taught in the synagogue and in the temple, whither the Jews always resort; and in secret have I said nothing," (John xviii, 20.) He is a light that light- eneth every man, (John, i, 9.) 2. The apostles did not act upon this principle. They " renounced the hidden thing of dishonesty," and " commended themselves to every man's conscience by the manifestation of the truth," and had their " conversation in the world in simplicity and godly sincerity," (2 Cor. iv, 2 ; 2 Cor i, 12 ) 3. The disciples of Christ are forbidden to act upon this principle. They are " the light of the world," and are commanded to let their " light shine before men" (Matt v, 14—16,) and to " have no fellowship with the unfruit- ful works of darkness," (Eph. v, 11.) 4. This principle is represented as a favorite principle with the wicked. Their " works " are said to be " in the dark," (Isa. xxix, 15;) and are called the " works of darkness," (Eph. v, 11 ;) and " they love darkness, because their deeds are evil," (John iii, 19.) 5 The fellowship of professing Christians with such societies, where the members are bound together by covenants of love and friendship, and con- stitute a distinct and separate brotherhood, is inconsistent with that principle of separation from the world which is so repeatedly and explicitly enjoined upon us in the word of God— we say separation from the world, for the standard of their faith and morals is evidently and confessedly adapted to the world, (Ex. xxiii, 32; xxxiv, 12, 15; 2 Cor. vi, 14—18; Ps. cvi, 35; Ps. xvi, 3 ; Ps. cxix, 63 ) The foregoing considerations clearly show that in our condemnations of secret associations we are sustained by the word of God. We have said nothing of the usurpation of the place of the Church— of the Christless character of the forms of worship in use— of the profane use that is made of the sanctities of our religion— of the selfish and unscrip- tural character of their benevolence— of the compromise of truth, in which a connection with them must involve the friends and witnesses of Christ —of their injurious effects upon the civil and political relations of life, and of the unhappy influence which they have in drawing persons away from the duties of the family and the sanctuary,— all of which in relation to some of the principal of these associations, are made manifest by their pub- lished writings, and by the workings of the system in the community,— of THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 119 these things we have said nothing, because there may be some secret as- sociations upon which all these things are not chargeable, and because we think the considerations presented by us are sufficient to show that the Church should solemnly testify against them. Article XVI. — Of Communion. DECLARATION. We declare, That the Church should not extend communion, in sealing ordinances, to those who refuse adherence to her pro- fession, or subjection to her government and discipline, or who refuse to forsake a communion which is inconsistent with the profession that she makes ; nor should communion in any ordi- nance of worship be held under such circumstances as would be inconsistent with the keeping of these ordinances pure and en- tire, or so as to give countenance to any corruption of the doc- trines and institutions of Christ. Argument and Illustration. This Declaration is believed to be in accordance with the Confession of Faith, chap, xxvi, sees. 1, 2; chap xxviii, sec. 4. We have not, in the above Declaration, set forth the whole doctrine of the Scriptures pertaining to the communion of saints, as it is not the object of this Testimony to do so in relation to any of the points on which we have deemed it our duty to give a declaration. We have, as in all the preceding statements, exhibited only that view of the subject which we think has been lost sight of by some who profess an adherence to the Con- fession of Faith. We deem this remark the more necessary here, as the principle which the above Declaration contains is not distinctly brought to view in the Confession. From this circumstance, and from the general expressions employed in that document, there has been thought to be an inconsistency between the statements there made on the subject of com- munion, and the view here presented. The first section of the chapter that formally treats of the subject, exhibits union to Jesus Christ by his Spirit, and union to one another in love, as the foundation and source of their fellowship with Him and with one another. The next section de- clares: ''Saints, by profession, are bound to maintain a holy fellowship and communion in the worship of God, and in performing such other spir- itual services as tend to their mutual edification; as, also, in relieving each other in outward things, according to their several abilities and necessities. Which communion, as God offereth opportunity, is to be extended to all 120 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. those who, in every place, call upon the name of the Lord Jesus." Here let it be noticed that the Confession is not speaking distinctly of commun- ion in sealing ordinances. It is the general subject of communion, including "relieveing each other in outward things, according to their several abil- ities and necessities." Now, while fellowship in sealing ordinances is no doubt included in the communion in "the worship of God" enjoined in this section, yet the subject being treated in this general aspect, there was a necessity for the use of the general expressions, " Saints by profession," and "All those who in every place call upon the name of the Lord Jesus," in speaking of the persons to whom this communion is to be extended. We believe that the Scripture expression, " All those who in every place call on the name of the Lord Jesus," was chosen for the special purpose of setting forth the important idea that Christians, in different lands, should cultivate towards each other a holy fellowship, and not suffer their mutual love to be restrained by local boundaries or national distinctions. The special object for which the Westminster Assembly was convened, namely, to effect in the three kingdoms a uniformity in doctrine, worship, and gov- ernment, indicates this. It should also be remembered that the persecu- tions to which Christians of the Reformation were at that time exposed, rendered it necessary for their brethren in other lands, who were more highly favored, to extend relief to them in their necessities. This, though always a duty to some degree, was at that time a duty to which Christians were especially called. Hence the principle is inserted, that Christians, in everyplace, should be the object of our love and sympathy. In addition to this, it should not be forgotten that the Churches, at that time, were in a course of reformation; and their entire conformity in doctrine, worship, government, and discipline, was anticipated, and in contemplation at the time that the Confession was made. The ordinance of the Parliament, call- ing the Assembly together, expressly declares the object of convening that Assembly to be the "nearer agreement" of the Church of England "with the Church of Scotland and other Reformed Churches abroad." [See the Ordinance.] The Church of Scotland, also, adopted the Confession of Faith " as a principal part of the intended uniformity in religion." [See act of the Assembly approving the Confession.] Similar acts were passed in adopting the Catechisms, Directory for the Public Worship of God, and Form of Presbyterial Church Government— all which clearly indicate that the communion which they enjoined was to have uniformity in profession for its basis. How unreasonable to suppose that those who declared that they adopted the Confession of Faith with this view, and as "a special means for the more effectual suppressing of the many dangerous errors and here- sies of these times," and who, in their National Covenant, had declared that they " abhorred and detested all religion and doctrine contrary to that received, and believed, and defended by many and sundry notable kirks THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 121 and realms, but chiefly by the kirk of Scotland"— who had covenanted that they would "endeavor the preservation of the Reformed religion in the Church of Scotland, in doctrine, worship, discipline and government," and who, in their "Engagement to Daties," had solemnly bound them- selves to "preserve the purity of religion against all error, heresy and schism, namely, Independentism, Anabaptism, Antinomianism, Arminian- ism. Socinianism, Familism, Libertinism, Skepticism, and Erastianism" — how unreasonable, we say, to suppose that they designed by this article in the Confession to enjoin the duty of the Church of Christ, to extend seal- ing ordinances to those who, though they "called on the name of the Lord Jesus," were making opposition to the principles of the Confession — making opposition either as individuals, or in a collective and organized capacity as a Church ! Nothing could be more unreasonable than such a supposition. We do not believe that the framers of the Confession thought of "God offering opportunity " twhich word means "a time favorable for the purpose") to Christians to hold communion in sealing ordinances, under such circumstances. The truth is, the present practice of intercom- munication among Christians living in the same place, and professing principles opposed to each other, was far from their thoughts. While, therefore, in accordance with our Confession, we maintain that communion as God offereth opportunity, is to be extended to all, who in every place, call on the name of the Lord Jesus ; yet, in perfect consist- ency with this, we have declared that the Church should not extend com- munion in sealing ordinances to those who refuse adherence to her pro- fession, or subjection to her government and discipline, or who refuse to forsake a communion which is inconsistent with the profession which she makes. In making this declaration, we have assumed that this profession is in accordance with the word of God. If this be so, the Church is surely bound to maintain it by the due exercise of government and discipline. If it be the duty of the Church to profess the truths of Christ, as must be apparent to any one who duly considers the end of her organization, and the solemn injunctions of the word of God, (Jude 3; Prov. xxiii, 23; Rev. iii, 10 ; Phil, i, 27 ; 1 Cor. xvi, 13 ; 2 Thess. ii, 15 ; Heb. iv, 14 ; x. 23 ; John xv, 27 ; Matt, xxviii, 20,) it must also be her duty to maintain these truths by the faithful exercise of that government and discipline which have been instituted by her King and Head. The correctness of this principle is so obvious that we see not how any one can call it in question. The word of God clearly recognizes it, as mav be seen by a reference to 2 Thess. iii, 6, 14, 15; 2 John 10, 11 ; Rev. ii, 2, 14, 15. Now. what is involved in the act of the Church extending to any one a participation in sealing ordi- nances? It surely involves in it a full recognition of the right of that per- son to membership; or rather the membership itself of the person thus 9 122 THE CHUKCH MEMORIAL. received. If this be denied, we ask what stronger pledge of membership can be given by the Church than is done by extending to a person this privilege? And in what way can the Church withhold a recognition of this membership from a person for any cause, but by refusing to extend to him this privilege? This being the case, it must appear to those who consider the matter, a palpable inconsistency to extend the privilege to those who refuse an adherence to her profession, or subjection to her gov- ernment and discipline. By so doing, the Church gives the strongest pledge which it is possible for her to give, of communion with those be- tween whom and herself, as a Church professing certain truths, there is not only no communion, but actual opposition. To these persons she gives the very same pledge that she gives to those who are " holding fast the profession of their faith." According to this practice, it is plain that the government and discipline of the Church cannot be coextensive with her profession ; that is, there are some truths which Christ has made it the duty of the Church to profess, and though he has given to her a gov- ernment and a discipline, yet she may not exercise these in maintaining these truths. How palpable is the inconsistency in which this practice in- volves its advocates! Is it said that the profession may be maintained, even though this privilege be extended to those who may be opposed to it in some particulars? We ask, how is this possible? If those who are op- posed to the profession which the Church makes in some of its distin- guishing principles, may be admitted to baptism and the Lord's Supper, opposition to this profession, on the part of any of its members, cannot, with any show of consistency, be made a ground of exclusion from these privileges; for if one may oppose the profession which the Church makes, another may, and so may every member of the Church. What security, under the operation of such a principle, has the Church for the preservation of her purity? It is said that the private members of the Church (as they are called) are not to be supposed to have expressed their approbation of the principles of the Church ; and, therefore, opposition to them is not to be made a ground either for excluding those who are members, from the sealing ordi- nances, or of withholding these ordinances from those who are not mem- bers. In relation to this we would observe, [1.] That the very fact of their membership implies an approbation, on their part, of the principles of the Church of which they are members. If they are professors at all, and if their membership constitutes them professors, they are professors of all its principles ; and, of course, have come under an implied, if not an express obligation to maintain them. [2] The admission of persons to membership, with this understanding, proceeds upon the supposition that private members constitute no part of the Church, but that it is confined exclusively to the officers of the Church, which is unscriptural, (Matt, xvi, THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 123 18; Acts ii, 47; viii, 1 ; xiv, 23, 27; xv, 22; Eph. i, 22; v, 25 ; 1 Cor. xii, 28;) anti-presbyterian, and contrary to the Confession of Faith, which de- fines the Church to be " those who profess the true religion together with their children." [3.] This principle, if it were always recognized and acted upon, would render the government and discipline of the Church a mere nullity, and totally annihilate the jurisdiction of Church officers. What authority could be consistently claimed and exercised over those who had given no promise, either express or implied, of adherence to the doctrine, worship, and government of the Church? We have also declared that communion in sealing ordinances should not be extended by a Church to persons who " refuse to forsake a com- munion which is inconsistent with the profession which she makes." The correctness of this principle follows as a necessary consequence from the principle already established ; namely, that there should be an adherence to the profession, and subjection to the government and discipline of the Church, required of those who are admitted to her communion in sealing ordinances. It is plain that a person cannot be a member, at the same time, of two Churches; nor can he be consistently admitted by a Church to those privileges, a participation of which implies a full right to mem- bership on the ground of his membership in a Church whose profession is inconsistent with that of the one to which he seeks admission. The impropriety of extending to such a person the sealing ordinances, be- comes, under these circumstances, the more palpable; for not only does he give no declaration of adherence to the Church extending to him its highest privileges and its most affecting pledges of communion, but he appears there as the member of a religious association whose principles are known to be different from, and in some respects adverse to, those of the Church which invites him to this communion. Such a practice, too, involves the following evils and irregularities : [l.J It recognizes the pro- priety of receiving persons to membership in the Church who do not pro- fess our principles and subject themselves to her laws. For if they may be received, on one occasion, to the highest privileges of the Church, they may be received, in the same way, to permanent membership. [2 ] It recognizes the principle that mere saintship is the criterion of the right of a person to the communion of the Church, which is unscriptural, (2 Thess. iii, 14, 15 ; 1 Cor. v, 5 ) [3] It requires, and supposes a recognition of the acts of those who admitted these persons to membership in other Churches, without a knowledge of the evidence of Christian character given by these persons, the standard by which they were tried when they became mem- bers, and the authority belonging to those by whom they were admitted, and who are in no sense responsible to the Church acting upon the princi- ple we have condemned. f4 J This practice produces an inequality among those who are all enjoying, for the time being, the same privileges, and 124 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. thus destroys the unity of the Church. [5 J It impairs the fullness and freeness af the communion of the Church. Those who partsike of scaling ordinances under such circumstances, have not, if judged hy their profes- sion, a common faith. [6 ] It destroys the force of the testimony, which the members and officers of the Church would otherwise he giving in be- half of their distinctive profession, and of their sincerity in making it. [7.] It has a tendency to make persons indifferent in regard to divine truth, and the duty and importance of faithfully maintaining it. [8 J It prevents the due exercise of discipline in the Church of God. and thus en- dangers her purity. [9-] It encourages separate Church organizations or sectarian divisions, as it proposes a remedy for the evils of these divisions which contemplates the continuance of these divisions, and thus makes Christians indifferent to that which receives no countenance in the word of God, and is highly displeasing to the head of the Church. While, therefore, we believe that no Christian should be excluded from the sealing ordinances of the Church, simply because of the weakness of his faith or the smallness of his attainments, or because of difficulties that may be in his mind in relation to some points connected with the profes- sion of the Church, yet the considerations we have presented fully estab- lish the truth of our declaration on this subject, and call upon us solemnly to testify against the practice which prevails even among many who pro- fess the Presbyterian name, of receiving persons into the communion of the Church without requiring them to declare their approval (as far as they are able to judge) of the profession which the Church makes, and of admitting to occasional communion the members of other Christian Churches, of a different faith and profession, simply on the ground of their membership in said Churches, and without making them in any way responsible to the government and discipline of the Church that admits them to this occasional aommunion. Article XVII. — Of Covenanting. DECLARATION. We declare, That public social covenanting is a moral duty, the observance of which is not required at stated times, but on extraordinary occasions, as the providence of God and the cir- cumstances of the Church may indicate. It is seasonable in times of great danger to the Church — in times of exposure to backsliding — or in times of reformation, when the Church is re- turning to God from a state of backsliding. When the Church has entered into such covenant transactions, they continue to THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 125 bind posterity faithfully to adhere to and prosecute the grand object for which such engagements have been entered into. Argument and Illustration. This Declaration is in accordance with the doctrine of the Confession of Faith, chap, xxii, sees 5—7. The Confession, in the sections referred to, treats of " vows." These are essentially the same as covenants with God. In covenanting with God we, in the way of taking hold of his covenant of grace, in which he en- gages to be our God, -promise to him, or vow, that in the strength of his promised grace, we will be his people, and perform those duties which he has enjoined upon us in his word. He says, in the promise of the cove- nant, '• I will be to them a God, and they shall be to me a people," (Heb viii, 10 ) The believer, in exercise of faith, takes God to be his God; and hav- ing done so, he engages on his part that he will be one of his people, and act towards him in a way becoming this relation. This avowal and engage- ment are made when the believer first gives himself away to the Lord, and they are renewed upon every subsequent dedication. This is the essence of covenanting with God, whether it be personal and private, or social and public. The Churches of Macedonia, therefore, covenanted with God, when they ynve thtir own selves to the Lord, i2Cor viii, 5.) This is the duty to which the apostle exhorts the Romans, when urging them to yield them- selves to the Lord, and to present their bodies a living sacrifice unto God, (Rom. vi. 13; xii, 1.) The idea of a covenant is necessarily involved in such a surrender. In every such surrender there must be a taking hold of God's covenant and an engagement, on our part, to be his people, and to perform the various duties that are incumbent upon us. Besides this covenanting with God, in which every believer must be sup- posed to have engaged, the Scriptures also clearly authorize the doing of this on special occasions, by a formal and solemn deed. The children of Israel at lloreb, after Moses had related to them the promises and require- ments of God, said— "All that the Lord hath spoken we will do," (Ex. xix, 5— 8.) Here were solemn engagements to duty, publicly expressed. These engagements were afterwards renewed, and in making these engage- ments they are said to '* enter into covenant with the Lord their God ;" the end of which covenant is declared to be that the Lord "might establish them a people unto himself." (Deut. xxix, 10 — 13.) Here was a public transaction, in which they formally and explicitly entered into engage- ments with the Lord. At a subsequent period, we are told that the child- ren of [srael presented themselves before God, and that Joshua "made a covenant with the people ;" in which covenant they declared, " The Lord our God will we serve and his voice will we obey." Additional solemnity and formality were given to this covenant; it was committed to writing by 126 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Joshua, doubtless with a view to perpetuate it, and that it might be refer- red to, (Josh, xxiv, 1, 24—26; Isa. xxx, 8 ) On a still later occasion, we are informed that "they gathered themselves together at Jerusalem," and "entered into a covenant to seek the Lord God of their fathers with all their heart, and with all their soul." The solemnity of an oath was ob- served on this occasion, (2 Chron. xv, 9— 15 ) Hezekiah says, (2 Chron. xxix, 10,) — ''Now it is in mine heart to make a covenant with the Lord God of Israel, that his fierce wrath may turn away from us." We are told (2 Kings xi, 17,) that " Jehoiada made a covenant between the Lord, and the king, and the people, that they should be the Lord's people." Josiah (2 Kings xxiii, 3,) "made a covenant before the Lord to walk after the Lord, and to keep his commandments, and his testimonies, and his statutes, with all their heart, and with all their soul" Many years after this Ezra made the chief priests, the Levites, and all Israel, enter into a covenant and swear that they would perform certain duties, (Ezra x, 3—5.) In the time of Nehemiah the children of Israel say, " We make a sure covenant, and write it ;" and we are farther told that they "entered into a curse and into an oath to walk in God's law, which was given by Moses," (Neh. ix, 38; x, 28, 59) These examples of God's people clearly authorize the duty set forth in the Declaration. We have seen that the duty, essentially considered, is performed by ev- ery believer when he dedicates himself to the Lord, as was performed by the Churches of Macedonia. The matter of the duty being moral, the form in which God's people are represented as observing it on several special occasions, is certainly designed for our imitation, when the occasion is such as to demand it. In addition to this, we may observe that we are ex- pressly commanded to " vow and pay unto the Lord our God," (Ps. Ixxvi, 11 ) The duty of swearing, not only by the Lord, but to the Lord, is en- joined upon us, (Isa. xlv, 23; Matt, v, 33.) He has given us his oath, and it appears to be a reasonable service that we should give him ours, (Jer. xxxii, 22; Gen. xxii, 16, 17; Ps. exxxii. 11; Luke i, 73 ; Acts ii, 30; Heb. vi, 16, 17 ; vii, 20.) It is prophesied that, under the New Testament dis- pensation, " Five cities shall swear unto the Lord of Hosts," and " vow a vow unto the Lord," (Isa. xix, 18, 21 ;) and also that the children of Israel and the children of Judah shall say, " come, and let us join ourselves to the Lord in a perpetual covenant, that shall not be forgotten," (Jer. 50, 4, 5 ) God's people are commanded (2 Chron. xxx, 8, margin,) to " give the hand unto the Lord." It is promised, (Isa. xliv, 5,) as the result of the out- pouring of his Spirit, that his people n shall subscribe with the hand unto the Lord." Such formal, solemn transactions, have been not only pri- vately entered into by the best of God's people, but also publicly, by the Churches of the Reformation, and particularly the Church of Scotland. Such transactions, when entered into according to the will of God, do THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 127 not bind to anything additional to what the law of God contains ; but they bring those who engage in them under an additional obligation—an obligation arising from their own engagement, promise, or oath, as the case may be. We have said that this duty is not a stated, but an extraordinary duty. That this is the case, appears from the very nature of the duty. It is only on special occasions that writings and an oath between parties, are requir- ed. It also appears from the Scripture examples referred to. We have said that this duty is seasonable in times of great danger to the Church. Such was the character of the times in the reign of Asa. They were " in trouble " — " great vexations " were upon them — they were " vex- ed with all adversity," (2 Chron. xv, 3, 4, 5, 6, 12.) We have said that this duty is seasonable in times of exposure to back- sliding. Such was the case in the time of Joshua. There were " strange gods " among them, (Josh, xxiv, 23.) We have also said that it is seasonable in times of reformation. Such was the case in the time of Ezra. " The people wept very sore " for their sins, acknowledging that they had trespassed against their God, (Ezra x, 1—3,)— and in the time of Nehemiah they had " separated themselves from the people of the land unto the law of God," (Neh. x, 28. 29.) This duty being thus of a special and extraordinary character, and its seasonableness to be determined by the indications of God's providences and the circumstances of the Church, there may be times when the call to it may not be so clear to the minds of some of the members of the Church. On this account such members should not be required to observe it, nor subjected to discipline for declining to do so; provided they are not mak- ing public opposition to it as a moral duty to be observed on proper occa- sions. We have declared that " when the Church has entered into such cove- nant transactions, they continue to bind posterity faithfully to adhere to, and prosecute the grand object for which such engagements have been entered into." The principle here recognized, is not peculiar to these transactions. It is the same principle that is acted upon in all corporate or organized bodies, whether civil or ecclesiastical. Every society regards its acts (unless these acts are such as, in their nature, limit their own dura- tion to a certain period,) as properly binding the body until they are re- pealed. The removal, by death, of some, or even of all those who origin- ally passed these acts, does not in the least affect their obligation upon the society. The same principle, of course, is to be recognized by the Church in the performance of this duty. And we find it recognized in the Scriptures, not only in other transactions, (Gen. xxviii, 13; xxxii, 28, com- pared with Hosea xii, 4 ; Josh, ix, 15, compared with 2 Sam. xxi, 1 ; Ex. xiii, 19j but in immediate connection with this duty of covenanting with 128 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. God. Moses says to the children of Israel, forty years after the transac- tion in Horeb, (Ex. xix, 5—8,) ' k The Lord made not this covenant with our fathers, but with us, even with us, who are all of us here alive this day," (Deut v, 3.) Again: Moses, speaking as the mouth of God, says, (Deut. xxix, 14, 15,) " I make this covenant also with him that is not here with us this day." The children of Israel are charged by God with break- ing the covenant which he made with their fathers, (Jer. xi, 10.) He also reminds them of the " old time," when (hep said, " I will not transgress," (Jer. ii, 20.) He promises them that he will not forget the covenant of their fathers, which he sware unto them, (Deut. iv, 31;) and that he will remember the covenant of their ancestors whom he brought out of the land of Egypt, (Lev. xxvi, 44, 45.) The descent, therefore, upon posterity, of obligations arising from covenant engagements, is most clearly recognized in the Scriptures. In accordance with this scriptural principle, we, having descended from the Church of Scotland, regard ourselves as bound by the engagements of our reforming ancestors, in the National Covenant, and Solemn League and Covenant, to prosecute the grand object for which these covenants were entered into, namely, the preservation and transmis- sion to posterity of the true Reformed religion, (Ps. Ixxviii, 5, 6.) In mak- ing this statement, however, we are not to be understood as expressing our approval of every thing connected with these transactions, as entered into by them. We have thus fully established the principles of the foregoing Declara- tion in relation to this duty, and therefore we solemly testify in behalf of its observance by the Church. And although, in the consideration of this subject, we have been guided exclusively by the teachings of God's word, yet the fact that this duty is, when properly observed, so evidently calcu- lated, in its own nature, to unite the hearts of God's children, in their efforts to maintain and advance his cause, and keep alive in their souls a sense of their devotement to Him, fixes in our minds more deeply the con- viction that the glory of God, and the interests of the Church, demand its observance, as the providences of God and the circumstances of the Church may indicate. Article XVIII. — Of Psalmody. DECLARATION'. We declare, That it is the will of God that the songs con- tained in the Book of Psalms be sung in his worship, both pub- lic and private, to the end of the world ; and in singing God's praise, these songs should be employed to the exclusion of the devotional compositions of uninspired men. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 129 Argument and Illustration. This Declaration is in accordance with the Confession of Faith, chap, xxi, sees. 1 and 5; Shorter Catechism, ques. 51 ; Larger Catechism, ques. 109; and Directory for the Public Worship of God. Although the Declaration we have just made on this subject is in oppo- sition to the statements and practices of many, even of those who profess an adherence to the Confession of Faith, we believe it to be in accordance with the authority of God's word. This Declaration affirms it to be the will of God, that the songs contain- ed in the Book of Psalms should be used by the Church of Christ. In tes- tifying in behalf of this, we, of course, are to be understood as speaking of the use of the Psalms in the formal worship of God. Now, the word of God is tlie only source to which we can apply in order to ascertain his will. In the light of this word, we urge in favor of the use of these Psalms : 1. God has given them as a Book of Psalms. They were composed by the inspiration of God, (2 Tim. iii, 16; 2 Pet. i, 21 ; 2 Sam. xxiii, 2;) and, of course, were given by God. We have said that they were given as a Book of Psalms. They are expressly so called in the New Testament, (Luke xx, 42; Acts i, 20 ) Our argument, then, is: The Book of Psalms, whence was it 1 From heaven or of men ? If from heaven, why not use it ? (Matt, xxi, 25.) 2. The title given to David, their penman, indicates that it is the will of God that they should be used by the Church. He is called " the sweet psalmist of Israel, 1 ' (2 Sam. xxiii, 1.) 3. They are called the •* songs of the Lord,"(l Chron. xxv, 7;) which, like the expressions, " table of the Lord," ' supper of the Lord," " day of the Lord," implies divine authority and appointment. 4. Ttiey are called •* the songs of Zion," (Ps. exxxvii, 3,) which implies that they were designed for the use of the Church. 5. God's worshiping people, under the former dispensation, were directed to sing them, ( 1 Chron. xvi. 4, 7 ; 2 Chron xxix, 30 ; Ps. cv, 2 ; Ps. lxxxi, 2; and they sang them after their captivity. (Neh. xii, 24.) These directions and examples are still in force, as there is in the New Testament no inti- mation to the contrary. 6. These commands are renewed in the New Tes- tament, (Eph. v, 19 ; Col. iii, 16 ; James v, 13.) 7. They were most proba- bly sung by our Lord and his disciples at the institution of the Lord's Supper, (Matt, xxvi, 30;) the Jews made use of them at the passover, on which occasion the Lord's Supper ^as instituted. Here the argument is the same as we have for the observance of the first day of the week as the Sabbath. These considerations fully establish the truth of our Declara- tion, that the songs contained in the Book of Psalms should be sung in the worship of God. We have also declared that they should be employed, to the exclusion of the devotional compositions of uninspired men. The truth of this part 130 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. of our Declaration follows as a necessary consequence, unless it can be shown that God himself has authorized the use of such compositions. For it is not only the doctrine of our Confession, that " the acceptable way of worshiping the true God is instituted by himself, and so limited by his own revealed will," but the doctrine of the word of God, (Deut. xii, 32; Lev x, 1—3 ; Matt, xv, 9.) The simple question, then, is, Have we divine authority for the use of the compositions of uninspired men in the wor- ship of God 1 It is alleged that we have such an authority in the direc- tions of the apostle to sing, not only " Psalms," but " hymns and spiritual songs," (Eph. v, 19; Col iii, 16.) In order that the authority sought for may be found in these verses, it must be shown that the terms, "hyms " and " spiritual songs," are designed to indicate compositions differing from those referred to by the name "Psalms," as the compositions of uninspired men differ from those of inspired men. This, however, cannot be shown. It does not appear in the fact that a variety of terms is employed ; for we know that the Scriptures often, under a variety of names, refer, in the same place, to that which has been appointed by God, as "statutes," "judgments," "ordinances," and •' commandments," (Ex. xv, 26; Deut. xxvii, 10; 2 Sam. xxii. 23; Ex. xviii, 20 ; 2 Kings xxiii, 3.) It does not appear in the names " hymns" and " songs ;" for these names correspond to the Hebrew names Tehilla and Shir, which are applied along with Miz- mor, (a Psalm,) to some of the inspired Psalms. The whole collection is called, in Hebrew, Sepher Tehillim, the Book of Hymns. The Septuagint version of the Old Testament — the version that was in use in the times of the apostle— applies to some of the inspired Psalms the very terms, "hymns" and "songs," which the apostle employs; and Josephus, and other writers, refer to the Psalms of David under the name of "songs" and " hymns." It is, therefore, utterly impossible to prove the distinction claimed, and consequently to find in the passages authority for the use of any other compositions but the psalms, and hymns, and spiritual songs of inspiration. But not only is there a lack of authority in these passages, but there are several considerations which are conclusive against the supposition of such a distinction as the one sought. 1. It is known that there was an inspired collection of psalms, and hymns, and spiritual songs, in existence at that time. 2. We have no command to make hymns or songs for the worship of God, or the least hint that would infer that the Church possessed such a right. 3. It is not probable that the Ephesians and Colossians would, at that time, be qualified for such a service, as they had been lately converted from idolatry. 4. The Jews would in all probability have opposed the use of any thing else but the inspired collection, having been from their child- hood accustomed to their use. 5. It is not likely that the apostle would thus place the word of God and the word of man upon a par, by directing THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 131 them both to be used for the same end. 6. If we make the distinction which is alleged to exist between psalms and hymns, we must make a dis- tinction equally great between hymns and spiritual songs. 7. These songs are called spiritual, which word implies that the Spirit of God is their au- thor, (1 Cor. x,3. 4; Rom. vii, 14; 1 Cor. iii, 1 ; xv, 44, 46; Eph. i, 3: Gal. vi, 1 ; Col. 1, 9, etc.) 8 They are to be used as a means of being " filled with the Spirit;" to this end the words of inspiration are peculiarly adapted. 9. We are to sing them as a means of " letting the word of Christ dwell in us richly " — language which will apply more appropriately to the inspired Psalms than to any human composition. In view of these considerations, these two passages of the New Testament Scriptures are to be regarded as an apostolic injunction to praise God, by means of those psalms, and hymns, and spiritual songs, which He himself had given to his Church. In making use of any thing else, we are doing that for which we have no warrant, and against the expressed will of Him to whom alone it belongs to say in what way, and by what means, he shall be worshiped. We, therefore, solemnly testify against the use of uninspired compositions in the worship of God. In testifying for the use of an inspired psalmody, we, of course, make no reference to any particular version. We should use the most faithful that can be obtained. It is for the use of the Book of Psalms, in a faithful translation, whether it be in measured or unmeasured lines, and against the use of a mere imitaion or loose paraphrase of these Psalms, or the use of a religious song, composed by man, that we testify. The evils which have followed the exclusion of an inspired psalmody from the worship of God, and the arguments which have been urged by many of the advocates of the practice which we condemn, (indicating, as they often do, a disregard of Divine authority, or a want of reverence for the Scriptures, and low views in relation to their inspiration,) only impress us the more deeply with a sense of the importance of maintaining this or- dinance in its purity. CONCLUSION. We have thus, with all plainness, but we trust in " simplicity and godly sincerity," given a declaration of our faith in relation to certain articles of divine truth, which have been either de- nied by not a few professing Christians, or permitted to lie in ob- scurity. Our object has been, by thus, as a Church of Christ, " speaking the truth in love," to draw attention to these things, in the hope that our brethren of the Presbyterian family, from 132 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. whom we are in a state of separation, may be brought seriously to consider the grounds of our controversy with them. We most deeply deplore the divisions that exist in the Church of Christ, and especially among those who have the same Confes- sion of Faith : believing that they are highly dishonoring to Christ, and tend to harden the enemies of the truth in their op- position to it — to promote improper feeling among brethren — to counteract the exercise of discipline, and to retard the grand and avowed design of Christianity, which is to unite men of all countries and classes to God, and to one another, in sentiment, heart, and confession. With this conviction in our minds we have agreed upon the foregoing Testimony ; and it is with a sin- cere desire that it may, with the blessing of God, be instru- mental in bringing our brethren and us to see eye to eye, that we now publish it to the world. It has been the farthest from our design, to displace by this Testimony, the Confession of Faith, or in any measure to throw it into the shade. Had this been the case, we should have in- troduced into it many things on which we have been entirely silent. The very form in which we have exhibited this Testi- mony, clearly indicates that our object is directly the reverse of this. We have hoped, by this means, to direct attention to that document which contains the Confession of our Faith, and to which, as a Church, we have solemnly declared our adherence. We would also, with all earnestness, remind all those into whose hands this Testimony may fall, and especially those who have received it as their Testimony, that a profession of its prin- ciples will be in vain, and worse than in vain, if this profession be not attended by a holy life — a life of prayer and communion with God, and devotion to his cause. The " grace of God," which we have endeavored to exhibit, is a grace which " teaches us that, denying all ungodliness and worldly lusts, we should live soberly, righteously, and godly in this present world; look- ing for that blessed hope, and the glorious appearing of the THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 133 great God and our Saviour Jesus Christ." Let it be known, therefore, and solemnly considered, that we regard ourselves and all those who may profess to receive this Testimony, as coming under an engagement to renounce the world, the flesh and the devil — to strive against sin, perfecting holiness in the fear of the Lord — to wait upon God in all the ordinances of religious wor- ship, individual and social, private and public, and observe these in all their appropriate times and seasons — to promote the puri- ty, unity, and prosperity of their own congregation, and the ex- tension of the Kingdom of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ throughout the world — to seek the good of their fellow beings, and to cultivate and promote a spirit of charity and brotherly love towards all their brethren in Christ. " And as many as walk according to this rule, peace be on them and mercy, and upon the Israel of God." Amen. APPENDIX. CONFESSION OF THE U. rRESBYTERIAN CHURCH. Confession of Faith, chap 20, sec 4. — And hecause the powe s which God hath ordained and the liberty which Christ hath purchased, are not intended by God to de stroy. but mutualF to uphold and preserve one anoth er ; they who upon pretense of Christian liberty, shall oppose any lawful power, or the lawful exercise of it whether it he civil or ecclesiastical, resist the ordi nance of Gorl. And for the publishing of such opin- ions, or maintaining such practices as are contrary to the light of nature or to the known principles of Christi- anity, whether concerning faith, worship, or convers tion. or to the power of godliness; or such erroneous opinions or practices as, either in their own nature or in the manner of publishing or maintaining them, are destructive to the external peace and order which Christ has established in the Church; they ought to be called to account, and proceeded against by the cen- sures of the « hurch, if they belong to her communion and thus be amenable to her own spiritual authority And as the civil magistrate is the minister of God for good, to the virtuous, and a revenger to exe -ute wrath upon him that doeth evil, he is therefore bound to sup- press individuals and combinations, whatever may be their avowed objects, whether political or religious, whose principles and practices, openly propagated and maintained, are calculated to subvert the foundations of p op«*rlv constituted soc ; ety. Confession, chan. 23, sec. 3. — The civil magistrate may not assume to himself the administration of the Won" and Sacraments, (2 Chron. xxvi,18; Heb. v. 4; Rom x, 15;) or the power of the keys of the king 'om of heaven, or in the least interfere to regulate matters of WESTMINSTER CONFESSION OF FAITH. IV. And because the powers which God hath ordained, and the liberty which Christ hath urchas<-d, are not intended by God to destroy, but mutu- ally to uphold and preserve >ne another ; the}' who. upon oret- nse of Christian liberty, shall oppose any lawful power, or the lawful exercise of it, whether it be civil or ecclesi- astical, resist the ordinance of Hod And for the publishing of such opinions, or maintain- ing of such practices, as are contra>y to the liydit of na- ture, or to the known princi- ples of Christianity, whether concerning faith, worship or conversation; or to the power of godliness; or such errone- ous opinions or practices as, either in their own nature, or in the manner of publishing • >r maintaining them are de- tructive to the extern 1 peace a"d order which Christ hath established in the Church ; they may lawfully be called to account, and proceeded •against by the censures of the 134 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. faith and worship. (Matt, xvi, 19; 1 Cor. iv, 1—2; John xviii. 36; Acts v, 1—9. 18—29; vi. 5; Matt. ii. 7 ) As nursing father?, magistrates are hound to adm nister their government according to the revealed principles of Christianity, and to improve the opportunities which their high station and extensive influence « fiord in pro- moting the Christian religion as their own most valua hie interest and the good of the peoi le demand, hy all such means as do not imply any infringement of the inherent rights of the Church; or any assumption of dominion over the consciences of men (Col. iii, 17; Ps ii, 10, 11; Ps. xciv, 20.) They ought not to punish any as heretics or schismatics. No authoritative judgment concerning matters of religion is competent to them, as their authority ex'ends only to the external works or practices of their subjects as citizens, and not a> Christians. It is their duty to protect the Church, in such a manner that all ecclesiastical persons shall en joy the full, free and unquestioned liberty of discharg ing every part of their sacred functions without vio lence or danger, (Is. xlix, 23. They should enact no law which would in^ny way interfere with, or hinder the due exercise of government and discipline estab- lished by Jesus Christ in his Church (Ps. cv, 14; Acts xviii, 14 — 16.) It is their duty, also, to piotect the person good name, estate, natural and civil rights ot all their subjects, in sus Christ is a kingdom distinct from and independent of the State, having a government, law-, office bearers, and all spiritual power peculiar to her self, for her own edification; so it belongs exclu ively to the minis- ers of < hnst, together with other fit per- sons, upon delegation f n m their Churches, by virtue of their office, and the intrinsic power committed to them to appoint their own assembl es. and to convene together in them, as often as they shall judge it expe- dient for the good of the Church. (Acts xv, 4 6, 22. 23, 25; John xviii, 36; 1 Cor. xii, 28; Eph. iv, 11, 12.) Church, and by the power of the civi ! magistrate. III. The civil ma istrarael, God says : "For all these things will I be inquired of by the house of Israel to do it for them," and the Saviour says : ''If two of you shall agree on earth as touching any- thing that they shall ask, it shall be done for them of my Father which is in Heaven," and the special regard of God for such prayer and conference was manifested in the time of Malachi, a time not unlike, in many of its prominent features, to our own day. " They that feared the Lord spoke one to another, and the Lord hearkened and heard." In the days of prim- itive Christianity, it was in the social circle for prayer that Christ ap- peared to his disciples, and it was when they were thus assembled together that they received the first baptism of the Holy Ghost, from whence such wonders came on the day of Pentecost, and if we expect the Church to exert on a sin-cursed world a Pentecostal power, she must have a Pente- costal Baptism of the Spirit of God, and if she will enjoy that, she must not neglect the honored means of the Spirit, and we would not overlook the consideration that our brethren of other and larger bodies of Chris- tians have led off in this work much to their own encouragement, and, as they tell us, to the gladdening of their Zion, and surely if God has heard their prayers, and poured out his spirit with reviving power upon them, may not we be partakers of the same blessed influence. The smallness of our number, the scattered condition of our charges, and the limited state of our finances, need be no hindrance. These will but add sweetness to the offering, if our hearts are set on the work. We invite you, then, brethren of all the various branches of Christ's Church, ministers and elders, and other members whose hearts the Lord may move in this great work, to meet us in conference, and talk with one another until our hearts are warmed in love, and wrestle with the Almighty until in fulfillment of his own promise, he pours out his spirit as rain upon the mown grass, as showers that water the earth until the barren waste be turned into a fruitful field, and judgment dwell in the wilderness, and righteousness remain in the fruitful field. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 221 Surely, dear brethren, we have many precious encouragements to the work. God has said, " I will pour water upon the thirsty, and floods upon the dry ground ; I will pour my spirit upon thy seed, and my blessing upon thy offspring, and they shall spring up as among the grass, as willows by the water courses." Come and let us return unto the Lord, for he hath torn and he will heal, he hath smitten and he will bind us up ; after two days will he revive us ; in the third will he raise us up, and we shall live in his sight. Reason might teach us to expect good from the mutual prayers and counsels of brethren from many and distinct portions of the heritage of God ; but we have a higher guarantee for it than the uncertain voice of human reason. God himself hath said : "It shall come to pass that there shall come people, and the inhabitants of many cities, and the inhabitants of one city shall go to another, saying, let us go speedily to pray before the Lord, and to seek the Lord of hosts. I will go also." That our meeting may be for edification and profit to ourselves and oth- ers, permit us, brethren, to suggest a few topics to which your minds may be directed as appropriate subjects of consideration on an occasion of this kind. I. The true nature of a revival. IT. Indications of the need. III. Encouragements to hope for a revival. IV. Causes of the present deadness of the Church. V. Sins of the day as impeding the progress of religion. VI. Means of promoting a revival. VII. Necessity of the influences of the Holy Spirit. VIII. Evidences of a true revival. IX. Revival of religion essential to the success of missions. X. Aspects of Divine Providence toward the Church and the world. On these and kindred topics, such as the convention may adopt, we ask your prayerful study and your conscientious deliverances. Let prayers for the Convention itself be daily offered to God. Let it be like the gath- ering of the princes of the people, even the people of the God of Israel. Let this call be read in every pulpit, that the people may hear and join their hearts and voices with ours in fervent prayer for the revival of God's work among us. Let all obstacles and hindrances be removed out of the way of ministers and elders, so that they may attend without distraction. Let those who are blessed with abundance say to their ministers, we wish you to join the counsels of the Church ; here are the means, go, and may the blessing of God go with you. Fathers and mothers in Israel, you who have but few years to labor in the vineyard on earth, but who sigh with deep anxiety for your children, whom you must soon leave behind you, let us have your prayers and your sympathy at the Throne of Grace. Young men, on whom the burden of the work of God must soon rest, 222 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. enter our list, and by the united work of all in this matter, under the bles- sing of Zion's King, this Convention may be the brightest spot in the his- tory of our day ; the dawning of a new epoch in the Church of God ; the fulfillment of that blessed promise, when the Lord will create upon every dwelling place of Mount Zion, and upon all of her assemblies, a cloud and smoke by day, and the shining of a flaming fire by night, for upon all the glory shall be a defense. Behold I create Jerusalem a rejoicing, and her people a joy. A committee of reception will be in attendance, to furnish suitable ac- commodations for all who shall favor us with their presence. A cordial welcome will be given you in the humble dwellings of your brethren. [Signed by 30 Ministers and 23 Elders.] XL — Convention at Xenia for Prayer and Con- ference. Convention of Reformed Churches, embracing Ministers, El- ders and members of the Associate, Associate Reformed and Reformed (Old and New School) Churches, met in the Associ- ate Reformed Church in Xenia, March 24, 1857, at 7 o'clock P. M. On motion of Rev. J. P. Smart, the Convention was called to order by the appointment of H. M'Millan, D.D., Chair- man pro tern. On motion of Rev. R. D. Harper, Rev. R. H. Pollock was chosen temporary Secretary. The Convention united in singing a part of the cxvi Psalm. Prayer was offered by the President. ROLL OF MEMBERS. ASSOCIATE CHURCH. Ministers— Drs. Rodgers, Beveridge, Wilson; Revs. R. H. Pollock, P. W. Collins, Jas. Wallace, J. S. Rankin, J. W. McFarland, J. B. Clark, R. Forester, J. M. Henderson, S. C Reid.Thos. Brown, J. C Murch, H. H. Blair, D. Blair, J. P Smart, J. Dean, W. H. French, D. H. A. McLean, S. B. Reid, C Cummins, R. Wallace, I. N. Laughead, M. Ar- not, H. McHatton, J. L. Bull, R. D. Williamson. Eiders— A. Collins, S. Briggs, J. Taggart, John Dean, D. H French, David Brown, G. Monroe, T. H. Dissert, W. Torrence, Joseph Morrow, R. S. Bull, John Winter, Jas. Orr, Wm. Collins, Robert Brown. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 223 ASSOCIATE REFORMED CHURCH. Ministers— Drs. Pressly, Kerr; Revs. R. A. Browne, R. Gracey, W. A. Mehard, R. D. Harper, R. K. Campbell, W. Lorimer, W. H. Andrew, A. Young, G. W. Gowdy, N.C. Macdill, D. G. Bradford, J. R. Walker, J P. Wright, J. Clokey, W. C. McCune, J R. An- derson, J. M. Gorden, C. T. McCaughen, William Davidson, J. K. Andrew, D. Paul, A. Ritchie, J. Y. Scouller, J. Comin, J. S. Robertson J. McHatten, J. F. Huchison, S. W. McCracken, G. D. Archibald, J. C. Steele, D. Macdill, J. N. Dick, J. H. Peacock, S. Wal- lace, J. T. McClure, R. E. Stewart, A. Aten, W. H. Prestley, P. Monfort, A. Rankin. Elders— J. Kissick, Wm. Harvey, Jas. Dallas, W. Gowen, A. Gowdy, John Finney, A. Galloway, J. C. Gal'oway, J. Harmon, J. B. McCracken, J. Bigger, S. Johnson, W. G. Hyndmon, Thos. White, R. Bradford, S. Barnett, J. Turnbull, Thos. Bigger, Joseph Sam- per, L. Munfort, E. Finney, J. Patterson, A. Byrd, J. Alexander, J. Hannon, A. Mc- Dowell, D. Millen. REFORMED PRESBYTERIAN, (O. S.) Ministers— Revs. J. B. Johnson, Robt. Hutchinson. Elder — Samuel M. Foster. REFORMED PRESBYTERIAN CHURCH. Ministers— Drs. McMillan, Heron, Wilson, Black; Revs. Wylie, Robt. McMillan, G. R. McMillan, G. McMillan, John McMillan, W. P. Shaw, J. A. Crawford, E. Cooper. Elders— Thos. Little, W. Russell, W. Gill, Geo. Shaw, D. McMillan, J. C. McMillan, Robt. Reed, J. S. Elliot, D. McQuiston, John Nisbet, Wm. McQuiston, John N. Ewer, John Miller, John Orr. CORRESPONDING MEMBERS. Rev. W. T. Finley, 0. S. P.; Rev. P. C. Prugh, Ger. R«f.; Rev. W. Perkins, Free Pres.; Rev. J. Bonner, Free Pres.; Rev. M. Russell, 0. S. P.; Rev. T. M. Hopkins, O. S. P.; Rev. T. B. Wilson, 0. S. P.; Rev. Dr. J. G. Monfort, O. S. P.; Rev. C. Adams, Methodist. The roll was imperfect, a number present not having enrolled themselves. We are obliged also, for want of space, to omit the names of a large number of the laity who were members of the Convention. The whole number enrolled was 183. On motion, a committee consisting of four laymen was raised to nominate permanent officers and a business committee. The Chairman appointed the following persons ■ Messrs. John Alex- ander, of the A. R. Church; J. C. M'Millan, Ref. Pres. Church, (N. S.); Geo. Munroe, Asso. Pres. Church ; and S. M. Foster, Ref. Pres., (O. S.) The first item specified in the call — the nature of a true revi- val — was then taken up, on which Prof. Young was invited to address the Convention, he having been previously invited by a 224 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. committee of those issuing the circular to prepare an address for the opening of the Convention on this subject. The congregation sung Ps. cxxxii, 13-18 verses. Prayer by Rev. J. Clokey. Prof. Young then addressed the Convention. He said : To know the nature of a true revival of religion, we must know the object of it, and the means by which it is to be secured. All these means promote growth of grace in the heart and life of the Christian. Paul recognizes the unity of the faith as a lead- ing object in connection with this Christian growth, and de- scribes these attainments in connection with instrumentality, and he affirms the unity of the Spirit in connection with diversity of gifts. " He gave some apostles, and some prophets, and some evangelists, and some pastors and teachers, for the perfecting of the saints, for the work of the ministry, for the edifying of the body of Christ, till we all come in the unity of the faith, and of the knowledge of the Son of God, unto a perfect man, unto the measure of the stature of the fullness of Christ. The great ob- ject in bestowing these gifts was to bring Christians to a unity of faith, and to a perfect man in Christ Jesus. He then con- sidered the object and result of these gifts, and in this he dwelt on them in detail. Some apostles. Explained their office. It was indispensably necessary, besides the ordinary gifts of the ministry of word and doctrine, and their being clothed with mi- raculous power, that they should have seen the Saviour, as he was even seen of Paul as of one born out of due time. Hence there could not be a succession in the apostle's office. Proph- ets — they who not only foretell future events, but teach, and deliver God's message sent by them. With the last of the apostles that office ceased. Evangelists — those sent occasion- ally, and on different missions. Pastors and teachers — to give instruction in the word, depending on the Spirit in every case — feeding the flock as shepherds, and instructing them in the way. The preaching of the gospel in all that is comprehended in the THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 225 word is our duty. All these offices were given for the " per- fecting of the saints, the work of the ministry, the edifying of the body of Christ." " Perfecting " — there is a uniformity in this — first the blade, then the ear, then the full corn in the ear — a growing in grace. He then proceeded to show why a liv- ing ministry is requisite. We have the Divine will revealed in the Scriptures — and science is now widely and generally spread — and why are not these enough? The Head of the Church has not so arranged it that these are sufficient. The voice is made to come to the heart, and the heart is made to feel the sympa- thies of the heart. The minister of the gospel is compassed about with infirmities, that he may be able to sympathize with others under like infirmities. Men will not deal faithfully with the written word, and therefore need one to bring it to bear on their consciences. Hence ministers are to entreat and rebuke with the love of Christ glowing in their hearts, and with the knowledge of the worth of an immortal soul ; and they must preach Christ not only as the author, but for the sake of purity and peace. Thus the perfecting of the saints is a gradual and progressive work, and it requires a living ministry. " For the work of the ministry." The ministry has a work. He illus- trated this point, by referring to the necessity of division of labor. No mind can master all things, and so with the ministry in their work. The apostles themselves had different gifts, and consequently each had that work to do for which the Spirit, the Holy Spirit, gave them that preparation that is necessary to success in every duty. They entered into every village, de- pending on those to whom they ministered for the means to carry it on. They recognized the ministry as their work, and refused to serve tables. Have ministers been supplied with the means of giving themselves, without care, to this work ? If of our own choice, when there is no necessity upon us, we give ourselves up to other work, wo unto us. If we do it from want, what a burden rests on others, who thus hold them back 226 THE (JHURCH MEMORIAL. from their work by withholding the means. So Paul charged Timothy: "Take heed unto thyself, and unto the doctrine; con- tinue in them ; for in so doing thou shalt save thyself and them that hear thee " — " Preach the word ; be instant in season, out of season " — " Watch thou in all things, endure afflictions, do the work of an evangelist ; make full proof of thy ministry." " Edifying of the body of Christ." Body of Christ denotes His Church ; edifying signifies a building up. It will not do to preach morality alone, but the apostle here appeals to our social position, as represented by a building joined together in all its parts, or a body having many members and yet one body. We must build up His kingdom, for this the instrumentality has been given of God. He then made an appeal to all — especially to non-professors — to acknowledge Christ. The work is pro- gressive. There are shades of difference in the opinions of those who hold fundamental truths, not inconsistent with the grand results sought, viz : " Unity of the Spirit." Even in heaven all are not equal in clearness of knowledge nor degrees of enjoy- ment. The results of God's chosen instrumentality furnish a profitable theme for improvement. With all man's fickleness, carnality and worldly-mindedness, what a glorious being he is, when God puts His Spirit in him and transforms him. And can it be a matter of no consequence whether such a being is in misery or in happiness ? The word, and all instrumentality to save, demand that we properly estimate the value of our salva- tion. How is this to be accomplished ? You cannot expect others to give up their affairs to attend to yours. As it is in temporal, so it is in spiritual affairs. Whilst there is a work in the Church, every one must be seriously employed for himself. Parents must exercise a carefulness over their children. Nor must we stop with our own households, but extend our work wherever God gives us opportunity. He concluded by craving pardon of his brethren for whatever was aside of the subject, as THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 227 in the midst of his professional labors, and under affliction, he had not enjoyed one hour of thought upon this subject. After the close of the address, the Nominating committee re- ported as follows : Business Committee — R. D. Harper, A. R. Church ; J. P. Smart, A. Church; J. P. Crawford, R. P. Church; G. D. Archibald, A. R. Church ; G. R. M'Millen, R. P. Church ; R. H. Pollock, A. Church. PERMANENT OFFICERS. For President — Rev. Dr. Pressly. Vice Presidents — Dr. Rodgers, A. Church ; Dr. Wilson, A. Church ; Dr. Kerr, A. R. Church ; Prof. T. W. J. Wylie, R. P. Church, (N. S.) ; Rev. J. B. Johnston, R. P. Church, (0. S.) Secretary — A. W. Black, R. P. Church. Corresponding Secretary — R. A. Browne, A. R. Church. To Prepare an Address — Dr. Beveridge, A. Church ; Prof. Young, A. R. Church ; Dr. M'Millen, R. P. Church ; Rev. A. M. Milligan, R. P. Church, (0. S.) The report was adopted. Rev. J. P. Smart moved that when the Convention adjourn, it adjourn to meet at 9 o'clock A. M. to-morrow morning. Motion adopted. Rev. R. A. Browne said this was not a business Convention. These preliminary matters were perhaps well enough, but he had come to attend a prayer-meeting for a revival, and he hoped the Convention would proceed to that business now, to-night. "We had come together not to talk about revivals, but to have a revival. He wanted a prayer-meeting to-night. Similar remarks were made by others ; and it was concluded to fix the hour of meeting at 8 o'clock in the morning. The meeting was then concluded by prayer by Dr. Pressly. Thursday, 8 o'clock, a. m. — Convention met — Dr. Pressly in the chair. Exercises commenced with singing Psalm lxvi, 228 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 16. The President read a portion of the Scriptures. Prayer by Dr. Beveridge. On motion of Rev. Dr. Black, Resolved, That all ministers and other members of all other evangelical bodies who may be present, be invited to sit as corresponding members. The Convention continued its devotional exercises. Sung Psalm xc, 13, to end. Prayer by Rev. J. B. Johnston. Sung Psalm cii, 1 6-22. Prayer by Rev. Gavin M'Millen. Suspended the devotional exercises to hear the report of the Business com- mittee, which was as follows : 1. Resolved, That the devotional exercises of the Convention be under the direction of the presiding officer. 2. Resolved, That we deem it for edification, that those who are called to lead the devotions of the Convention should make their exercises brief. 3. Resolved, That the following topics demand the special attention of the Convention : 1. The true idea of a revival of religion. 2 The indica- tions that the Church needs a revival of religion. 3. The encouragement to hope for a revival of religion. 4. The causes of the present deadness of the Church. 5. The sins of the day as impeding the progress of religion; Sabbath desecration ; worldly mindedness ; slavery. 6 The means of pro- moting a revival of religion. 7. The necessity of the influences of the Holy Spirit in promoting a revival. 8. Evidences of a true revival. 9. Revival of religion essential to the success of the work of missions. 10. The as- pects of Divine Providence towards the Church and the world. 11. The history of revivals. 12. The preaching of the gospel as connected with the revival of religion. 4. Resolved, That those who lead in the discussions be requested to pre- sent the topics selected in the form of a resolution. 5. Resolved, That in the discussions of the Convention the speakers be limited to ten minutes. The report was received and unanimously adopted. The devotional exercises were resumed by singing Psalm lxxxix, 13-18. Prayer by Rev. H. H. Blair. Sung Psalm lxxx, 14, to end. Prayer by Rev. Dr. Ilerron. Communications were received from brethren in New York and Philadelphia, and from Rev. B. Waddle, New Concord, Ohio, expressing sympathy with the objects of the Convention, and praying for its success. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 229 On motion of Dr. Black, Resolved, That this Convention rejoices in the reception of these cheer- ing communications, and respond to them in the same spirit in which they are sent. Ordered that they be engrossed in the minutes. They are as follows : Philadelphia, March 22, 1858. To the Ministers, Elders and Members of the Associate, Associate Reformed, and Rejormed Presbyterian Churches, met for Prayer and Conference in the town of Xenia, Greene County, Ohio. Dear Brethren: — The association composed of the ministers and elders of the above named Churches in this city, have appointed us a com- mittee to address you a letter in response to a circular sent by you to the brethren of these Churches, and to express their sympathies with you in the object of your meeting, which we accordingly do with great pleasure. Our hearts, dear brethren, have been greatly refreshed by the intelli- gence received through your circular, that you have called a Convention of the ministers, elders and members of these Churches, from ditferent parts of the country, with the view of deliberating concerning the inter- ests of religion, and of pouring out your hearts in united, and earnest, and persevering prayer, for a revival of practical godliness in our several Churches. In this circular you have kindly invited us to meet with you on this in- teresting and solemn occasion. It has been with some of us a matter of serious consideration whether we should not, for the time being, forget any other claim upon our time and attention and joyfully accept your in- vitation to meet with you. There are considerations, however, which we think will prevent us from yielding to these first promptings of our hearts. Among these we may mention the fact, that the present time is, in this city, marked by events of the most extraordinary character. A mighty influence is at work in this section of our land. Never, in the history of our country, has there been such an awakening among all classes of the community to the interests of religion. In different parts of our great city assemblies are being held every day, in which persons are drawn to- gether by the thousands, filling to their utmost capacity, the largest halls and Churches in our city. Merchants are leaving their stores, professional men their offices, and mechanics their shops, in the business hours of the day, that they may hear and proclaim the word of salvation by Jesus Christ, and pour out their hearts in prayer to Almighty God for his bless- ing. But we need not tell you of these things. Doubtless you have heard of them, and doubtless they have awakened your deepest concern. 230 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Our object, more particularly, in referring to them now, is to assign a rea- son why, in the present state of things among ourselves, it appears to us that God, in his providence, is making it our duty to remain at our posts that we may await the issues of this mighty work, and be prepared for whatever the crisis may demand. Perhaps you would like to have an expression of our views in relation to this extraordinary awakening. We cannot, in a letter, give a full ex- pression of these. Let it suffice to say that we have earnestly pondered the matter, and in our ministerial association have exchanged our views in relation to it, and have come to the conclusion, that while there are as- sociated with it some things which we do not approve, yet it should be re- garded as the result of a special outpouring of the Spirit of God. Such, dear brethren, are our present convictions. With thankful hearts we recognize in this great movement the finger of God, pointing to a better state of things in the land ; and in it, too, we hear the voice of our great Captain calling upon us to arouse ourselves to a more vigorous conflict with the powers of darkness. This conclusion, dear brethren, has been not a little strengthened by the reception of your circular, breathing a spirit so much in union with the signs of the times, and the feelings they have awakened in our hearts. It will doubtless rejoice your hearts to know, as you urge us to united prayer, that in some of our Churches we have been meeting daily through the past week, or more, for this special purpose, and we have reason to hope thus far that our meeting has been attended with good results. While thankful for any manifestation of the Lord's goodness, in this re- spect, we would at the same time desire to be found watching, lest the great adversary of souls, through our sinfulness, may get an advantage over us. We ask you, dear brethren, to help us by your prayers. It will, we doubt not, dear brethren, encourage you to know that while you are assembled in Xenia to plead with God for a revival of His work, the ministers, elders, and members of these three Churches are gath- ered together in one plaee, in this city, to invoke upon you and upon ourselves, the blessings of the God of Zion. We shall, therefore, though absent in body, be with you in spirit; and though many miles separate us from each other, it rejoices our heart to think that your prayers and ours will meet together at that throne on which sits that glorious Being, whose resources are infinite, and before whom there is no distance. Brethren, go on in the blessed work in which you are engaged. Let the guilt and wretchedness of a lost world— let the sad and sinful recreancy of the Church in carrying out her high commission— let the responsible position you occupy as Christians, and ministers, and teachers of youth in our seminaries— let the promises of your exalted Saviour, and his crown- rights as King of Kings and Lord of Lords, urge you to pray and labor THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 231 with one mind and with one heart, for the consummation of those holy desires with which, we trust, the Spirit of God has inspired your souls. "The blessing of the Lord be upon you ; we bless you in the name of the Lord." Joseph T. Cooper, ") Alex. G. M'Acley, > Com. of Asso. Geo. C. Arnold, ) Members of the Association present at this meeting : Associate Church — Francis Church, Thomas H. Beveridge, James Price. Associate Reformed Church — Robert Armstrong, J. B. Dales. Reformed Presbyterian Church — Wm. Sterrett, S. P. Her- ron. To the Brethren, Ministers, Ruling Elders, and others, to meet in Convention for prayer and Conference in Xenia, Ohio, March 24, 18-08: Dear Brethren in Jesds Christ :— We have received your circular. We approve your proposal, and we hail you in the name of Christ while you gather round the Throne of Grace, to seek a new baptism of His Holy Spirit from above. There is a great power in prayer. Power to avert evil, to command the blessing, and " to move the hand that moves the world," that it may be opened to dispense revival to the Church, and salvation to sinners ready to perish around her. Let this power be used, dear brethren, by you. God has promised to give His Holy Spirit to them that ask Him, and laying hold of this promise by faith, you may confidently expect that the bless- ing for which you may agree to ask will be dispensed. The progress of vice and immorality in our country, generally, and in large cities in particular, is fearful; and the Church, under God, must stay its advances or we are lost. The formalism, the worldliness, the disaffection, and the inactivity of the Church herself, show that the fervor of religion is greatly wanting within her pale, and that she needs revival from the presence of her Lord. The want of the day is an increased spirituality, and for this, as we un- derstand it, it is the object of your assembly to seek. An awakening of the public mind to the importance of religion, is now existing in our city and its vicinity. It pervades all classes. It leads men to social prayer, to the hearing of the gospel, and to inquiry for salvation through Jesus Christ. It has been, so far, characterized to a very great degree, by the absence of mere animal excitement, and of unusual means for affecting the minds of men. And we trust that it will be productive in the issue of great and lasting blessings to the world. So far as we find 232 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. it in accordance with the spirit and order of the gospel, we rejoice in and desire to advance it. Let us request you, dear brethren, that when you gather in your holy convocation, you will remember before God the large cities of our land, where Satan's seat is, and where it is our lot to labor for our common Lord and Master. We trust that some of our brethren will be able to meet you in Conven- tion, and from such you will receive more extended information on these subjects. We will therefore conclude by saying that we have read your circular in our Churches ; we have made your meeting a subject of special prayer, and it is highly probable that at the same hour on which you meet, assemblies among ourselves which have been advised of yours, will be joining with you in supplication at the Throne of God. That you may enjoy the presence of the Master of Assemblies, and be made joyful in His house of prayer, is, respected and dear brethren, the prayer of yours, in the gospel of our common Lord and Master. (Signed) John N. M'Leod, James Brown, And Crawford, Hugh H. Blair, James Young, J Patterson, John Brash, Geo Sanderson, Alex. M'Farland, Alex. Clements, James MGay, George Bruce, A. C. Junkin, Alex Knox, Robert Biggart, James Thompson, T. B Tallman, James Dickson, James B. Whitten, John J Palmer, Hugh Downs, James Dinsmore, Henry Harrison, Wm. Frazer. David Douglas, New York, March 22, 1858. To the Ministers, Elders, and Members of the Associate, Associate Reformed, and Reformed Presbyterian Churches, to meet in Xenia, March 24, 1858, the undersigned sends greeting : Present engagements in Muskingum College render my bodily presence among you impracticable ; but my spirit shall be with you. Brethren, my heart's desire and prayer to God is, that your united prayers and delibera- tions may be so influenced by the Holy Ghost as to bring a large revenue of glory to the Lord and much good to our Church. The ten topics contained in the circular, and on which prayerful study and conscientious deliverances are respectfully asked, are pertinent, sug- gestive and important. In reference to most of them, I would much rather receive instruction than attempt to instruct my brethren. Each of us may edify himself in some degree, by meditating prayerfully upon these momentous topics. By throwing our thoughts together as common stock, we may edify one another. Let us, then, dear brethren, look at these topics, severally, in the light of divine revelation. In that purest light we may see clearly. A revival, such as we would gladly see produced, and desire to be in- strumental in effecting, must be in its nature religious. Neither supersti- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 233 tious nor fanatical. We think that reverence for divine authority, and an earnest desire to acknowledge the Lord in all our ways, enter largely into the nature of a true revival. A truly religious revival must be spiritual. " Not by might, nor by power, but by my Spirit, saith the Lord." To each, newly regenerated soul, as well as to every lively and rejoicing believer, it may be said, "you hath He quickened" There are sinners, by thousands and tens of thousands in our land and other countries, yet dead in their trespasses and sins— also many profes- sors of Christianity whose graces are languishing, and who do little, in- deed, for the honor of the Great King. Awful indications of the pressing need for a true revival of religion throughout Christendom, to be extended to earth's remotest bounds, and to ocean's wildest shores. As for encouragements, what stronger ones could we wish for than those set before us in the prophecies and promises of the true and faithful word, viewed in connection with the doings of the Lord, which are now marvelous in our eyes? Is there not a noise among the dry bones of Is- rael? Will not this noise be followed by a shaking and a gathering? Should we not prophesy unto the wind and say, "Thus saith the Lord God ; Come from the four winds, breath, and breathe upon these slain that they may live." Every angel that hath the everlasting gospel to preach to them that dwell on the face of the earth, may with incredible velocity speed his way from city to city, and from land to land. And what one laborer does in the great field of the world, may be telegraphed almost in the twinkling of an eye, to another distant laborer in the same wide field. We are encouraged to hope for a real and speedy revival. Hindrances to a revival are earthly, human and Satanic, but not insuper- able. The Lord reigns. He can bring light out of darkness ; and order out of confusion ; and good out of evil. Let us realize the necessity of the influences of the Holy Spirit, while we prayerfully, patiently and perseveringly employ the means of divine appointment for the conversion of sinners and the comforting of saints. Seeing that everything which glitters is not gold, let us apply the Scrip- tural tests to revivals, and endeavor to separate the precious from the spu- rious. See the fruits of the Spirit— love, joy, peace, etc. Men do not gather grapes of thorns, nor figs of thistles. By their fruits ye shall know them. Sinners converted in a very remarkable manner, will likely make the best missionaries. Dear brethren, what we find to be done, let us do it in the name of Christ, and do it with our might. Yours fraternally, Benjamin Waddle. New Concord, March 23, 1858. 16 234 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Devotional exercises resumed. Sung Psalm xlv, 3. Prayer by Rev. Gracey. Sung Psalm lxxii, 16, to end. Prayer by Rev. Mr. Hutchinson of Reformed Presbyterian Church. The President read the Ix chapter of Isaiah. Sung Psalm cxxvi. Prayer by Dr. Rodgers. Took up No. 4 in report of business committee. Rev. J. Clokey spoke on this point. He said, sin, in whatever form found, lies at the foundation of this deadness. There may be, there are particular forms of sins, some within and some without the Church, but this deadness all comes back to ourselves. He offered the following resolution as expressive of his views : Besolved, That the defective application of the gospel, will account for the present deadness in the Church. He said : We neglect to apply the means of grace as the proper remedy, and as the proper means to restore growth and vio-or. This misapplication appears when we compare what we are with what we ought to be. Here he showed that life, activity, and entire self-consecra- tion should characterize us, instead of the deadness everywhere prevalent. It appears also comparatively with what we appear to be. We are not so lively as we appear to be. Too much like Sod- om of old, having a name to live, but we are dead. Had min- isters been on their watch-tower all the while, so much Sabbath- breaking and other like sins had not occurred. We have been watching sins in our sister Churches more than those coming in on us from the world. In the charge given to Sardis, she is di- rected to "strengthen the things that remain." This is the duty of the minister — to strengthen the weak. If ministers were instant in season and out of season, the present state of things could not exist. Here lies the minister's great responsibility. We ought to watch the signs of the times more closely, and fall in more carefully and faithfully with the movings of Providence in the world around us. We have not done our duty. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 235 Rev. Mr. M'Clure seconded the resolution. He thought the remarks of the brother were true and to the point. His expe- rience in observing the results, confirmed the truth of the re- marks. We had been neglecting our duty, and it was now time to perform it. Rev. IT. IT. Blair said : We must wait on God, and not trust too much to self. We must not go out of the means He has instituted, and substitute some ancient tradition or new inven- tion. We must use the right means, and then wait in faith and patience on God. There are two great sins of the day for which we do not exercise discipline, viz, pride and covetous- ness. Pride of sect, and personal pride. Pride cast down the angels that fell. Our hearts and the hearts of our people are full of pride. Covetousness, which is idolatry. Who ever thinks of disciplining a man for this kind of idolatry? We are a nation of idolaters. We worship gold ! We will not wor- ship a golden calf, but we will worship a golden guinea. God has smitten our idol, and, I trust, is now pouring out his spirit to turn us to Him. Rev. R. IT. Pollock said this topic was of the first importance, and it would be well to inquire into the fact expressed in the resolution — a defective application of the gospel — in direct ref- erence to ourselves. We manifest a want of faith in God's means as applicable to all grades of society. When we see a respectable man coming into Church, we have hopes of him ; but the poor, despised and degraded we look on as hopeless, and in our pride disregarded. We forget that the gospel can reach down to the lowest and bring them up to God. Another reason for this condition of things was to be found in our covetousness. That covetousness which is idolatry has reached the ministers of the gospel as well as the farmers and business men of the land. Another reason was the backwardness and want of zeal among Church members in making personal effort. In these respects we have fallen far behind even Spiritualists and Universalists. 236 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Rev. Dr. "William "Wilson said that as these resolutions are to be printed, they will assume something of the importance of theological principles. He would be constrained to vote against the resolution as it now reads. It seemed to deny the need of the Holy Spirit, which he was sure was not intended. He moved to amend by inserting after " will account," the words " in a great measure." The amendment was accepted by the mover of the resolution. It was, on motion, resolved that the Convention meet this af- ternoon at 2 o'clock, and adjourn at 5 o'clock. Prayer by Rev. Blair. Adjourned until 2 o'clock P. M. Two o'clock r. m. — Convention convened; Dr. Rodgers presiding. Sung Psalm lxxxv, 5-10. Read lxi chapter of Isa- iah. Prayer by Rev. Russell, of the Presbyterian Church, Clifton, Ohio. A telegraphic dispatch from Philadelphia was read, and is as follows : Philadelphia, March 25, 1858. Mr. J. C. McMillan: Large meeting last evening — three bodies for united prayer in concert with Convention. Three meetings this evening, Wylie's, Cooper's, and Sterret's. Send immediately full dispatch about Convention. Work reviving all around. With you in spirit, Geo. H. Stuart. Rev. T. "W. J. Wylie, J. C. McMillan, and H. II. Blair made some remarks in response to the dispatch. Rev. T. W. J. Wy- lie was instructed to send a dispatch in behalf of the Conven- tion to Philadelphia and New York in response to the dispatches received. Devotional exercises continued, and sung Psalm lvii, 7, to end. Prayer by Mr. Finney, Ruling Elder, of Mansfield, Ohio. Minutes of former sessions read and approved. The resolution under discussion at the time of last adjournment was taken up. Rev. J. M. Henderson said the want of an intelligent faith in God produces deadness in the Church. He mentioned sev- eral things in illustration of this, viz, ministers' distrust of God THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 237 to give them a support or comfortable livelihood. The awaken- ing now shaking the land has resulted from pecuniary embar- rassments. Men have been stripped of the means of gratifying their carnal desires, and God has made use of it to turn their hearts to higher enjoyments. The want of discipline through fear that there will not be an increase in numbers. Members were admitted into the Church without giving satisfactory evi- dence of a change of heart, and the want of a proper estimate of the value of the human soul. Immense multitudes of souls are going to perdition, and we are asleep. Rev. Blair said: A want of faith lies at the root of a defective application of the gospel. God had brought the bodies here represented together, and it was a sign they ought to be one. We have not prayed together — such meetings are new. For forty years such meetings have not been witnessed. They mean that we have been in error heretofore, and teach us that we should be united in future. Another fault in the ministry was, that they preached too much in an abstract way. Religion has been too much regarded as an algebraic equation. Too much attention has been paid to abstract questions calculated to divide the Church. Religion has not been made a personal matter and brought home with sufficient directness and earnestness to the consciences of sinners. Devotional exercises resumed. Sung Psalm lxviii, 7-11. Prayer by Rev. Davidson. Remarks continued. Rev. Bradford said: Worldly mindedness is a great cause of deadness in the Church. Ministers love large salaries. The people labor for riches. Gain is the fond theme of discussion among Christians, instead of the interests of religion. The great wealth now in possession of the members of the Church is more for our shame than honor. Our Master had not where to lav his head. Should the servant fare better than the Master? The Church, the ministry and members of the Church, have been trying to serve both God and Mammon. 238 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Dr. Beveridge suggested as an amendment the insertion of the words " exhibition and " before " application." He thought there was a want of proper exhibition of the grace of the gos- pel, and that this was a fruitful cause of deadness. The amend- ment was accepted. The resolution, as amended, reads : Resolved, That the defective exhibition and application of the gospel will in a great measure account for the present deadness in the Church. Devotional exercises resumed. Sung Psalm cxxii, G, to end. Prayer by Mr. Jno. Euwer, of Newcastle, Pennsylvania. Took up the fifth item in the report, viz, The sins of the day as impeding the progress of religion, — Sabbath desecration, worldly mindedness, slavery. The understanding being that each speaker should name any other sins he thought proper du- ring his remarks. Dr. H. McMillan said : More than eighteen hundred years ago the Saviour declared to his disciples, all power in heaven and in the earth is given unto me. It is needless to say how partially this commission has been fulfilled. Who is now preach- ing the gospel to the Jew ? How can we have a revival when God's own Israel is neglected ? We are next to go to the Gen- tiles. We are commanded to preach to many nations and in many tongues, yet we have sinfully failed in our duty. A revi- val consists in leaving off our sins and doing our duty. There are corruptions in the Church. We are to carry the doctrine of the gospel in its purity. We are under the sixth trumpet. We must measure the temple and the altar of God as well as preach the gospel, before the Church is revived. Schism is a sin of the day. A divided Church is a weakened society. The stand- ard of piety is so low among us that if we did not see men bap- tized at the Church, or see them at the communion table, we would not be able to tell who are Christians and who are not. We cannot distinguish them from men of the world in the mar- ket or other places. We are not careful enough in admitting members into the Church. He commended the seeking of Zion THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 239 better than all gold ; but a little wild-fire may sometimes get up. We would teach them to count the cost. I would take Jew or Gentile, or I would lift a man from the gutter if he says he loves the Lord Jesus Christ with all his heart. But if a good man, he will not be offended if I should warn him of the deceitfulness of the humm heart, and ask him to pause and examine. Rev. R. A. Brown said : There are three millions of human beings in bondage in this land to whom the word of God cannot be preiched. Our fearful complicity in this giant wrong is one great reason why God has made the heavens as iron and the earth is brass. These bondmen are God's poor. If we cannot reach he victims of this wrong, we can batter against the doors that shit us out. Cruel tyrants sometimes put out the eyes of their victims, but this system puts out the eyes of the immortal soul. It may grant a glimmer of light, as Popery does, but it is onlj a glimmer. This system claimed not toleration merely, but wis a ruling power in the land. A dram of whiskey might procure the passage of a law which nullifies the law of God. We should utter our protest against this crime, and pray against it whenever two or three of us are met together. The eyes of m;ny are on us to-day, looking up from every corner of the land tosee whether a Presbyterianism can rear its standard in behalf of the poor bondman. Through all the religious and political reations of this day, this is a vein of poison that corrupts and dadens the conscience — that whilst men should speak in thun- de tones, they only whisper. Mr. Brown offered the following reolution : lesolved, That in considering those sins which separate between us and or God, and justly shut up from our land the influences of His Spirit, this Covention feels called to utter its protest against the institution of Amer- icn slavery as a crime against Christ, our country, and humanity; and in- ve the cooperation of Christians of all denominations to labor and pray fiits limitation and final extinction; and that God may pour out the s rit of repentance on those who directly or by complicity in ecclesiasti- cs or political relations, are involved in the fearful guilt of this sin; and, Dreover, that God in pouring out His Spirit as floods upon the thirsty 240 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. ground, would visit the three millions of His poor in our land, to whom the word of God is bound, hastening their emancipation and enfranchise- ment with that liberty wherewith Christ maketh his people free. Rev. M'Clure said he would vote against the resolution, be- cause it would do no good, and that he did not believe slavery had that deadening influence on the Church that the resolution represented. It was outside of our Churches represented here. He was opposed to slavery ; all his feelings were against it ; but he did not think we were called upon to take action on it here. Mr. Finney, R. E., spoke warmly in favor of the resolution, insisting that the Church was involved in the sin, and that it had a deadening influence — that it counteracted the law of Gcd, the Higher Law, and forbid him to feed the poor and hungry who came to his door — and that we must not forget the poor ii their distress, if we expect God to hear and revive his work among us. Dr. Beveridge suggested that the substance of the resoution would be in the address to the Church. Mr. Perkins, editor of the Christian Leader, said he thought if the resolution had not been offered, we might have put it fa the address ; but having been brought before the Convention its non-adoption would produce a false impression. He referrd to the remark that it was outside the Church. Even if it wis outside, Christ came to preach His gospel to the poor — but t is not outside. The Federal Government, in protecting it, ail giving it a legal existence in the District of Columbia and els- where, makes us a part of the whole in our responsibility. Co- gress holds those slaves there, and as Congress has its represev- tatives partly from us, slavery then is ours. We must, $ Christians, be correct politicians. He then mentioned an ino dent connected with a prominent politician of the day. He fui ther delineated the crushing influences of slavery in what he an others had suffered; he could not be permitted quietly and peace fully to occupy a home on the Kentucky side of the Ohio rivei THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 241 because he was known to be anti-slavery. He alluded to the bonds under which a member of the Associate Reformed Church in Cincinnati is now lying, for being suspected of hostility to this giant wrong. Dr. Kerr thought the resolution should not have been intro- duced into this meeting on individual responsibility. That what- ever was brought before the Convention should come by consul- tation, or by the Business Committee. Expressed his hostility to slavery, but thought this resolution could do no good. Several other members briefly remarked, that whilst they were favorable to the matter of the resolution, it seemed to give un- due prominence to slavery as one of the sins of the day, to press a resolution on the subject, whilst the others were the subject of remarks only. The Convention did not seem willing to take a vote on the resolution then, and was adjourned to 7 o'clock. Prayer by Rev. Dr. Kerr. Seven o'clock p.m. — Convention met; Dr. Kerr presid- ing. Exercises commenced with singing the one hundredth Psalm. Chairman read the xiii chapter of 1 Corinthians. Prayer by Rev. Wm. II. Andrew. Took up item second — The indications that the Church needs a revival of religion ; when Dr. Rodgers addressed the Conven- tion at length in accordance with previous arrangement. He began by quoting the language in the beginning of the cxxvi Psalm, " When the Lord turned again the captivity of Zion, we were like them that dream," etc. He then referred to what he would call a modern revival that occurred in Scotland in 1742. The Secession had separated from the Established Church. Wil- liston and other godly men were sleeping in the dust when this revival commenced. How unlikely, under such circumstances, that a revival should occur. And how did it commence ? A worldly minister that cared nothing for his flock was amusing himself by fishing. A man, who was a member of his congre- 242 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. gation, came to him to borrow his horse. After some persuasion the man was induced to inform him of his purpose, which was to go to a Seceder minister to get him to baptize his child. He told the minister his reason was, that his congregation had no confidence in his piety. He was struck, went home and prayed, and found his old sermon designed for the next day would not do. He preached that day as he had never preached. There were no sleepers there that day. Conviction reached the hearts of many. As he came from the pulpit, the people crowded around him, and inquired what they should do. This was the beginning of that great work that went over Britain and ex- tended over our own country. When God's ministers and peo- ple become dissatisfied with the present state of things, and feel their need of a revival, it is a sign of a better day coming. If they are satisfied because they have a sound Catechism and Con- fession of Faith — yes, and Bible too — what good are they doing if the Spirit is not in them ? They are like the Church of Lao- dicea, in a most unfavorable state. One favorable symptom of the time is, a general dissatisfaction both in and outside the Church. They feel that there is something wrong. This is the feeling not of one, but of all — not in one locality, but in all lo- calities. I have heard it said, that it can be traced to the pecu- niary embarrassments of our time. I remember others, yet there was nothing like this feeling pervading the land. It is an indication of the designs of the Most High. Our meeting together is an evidence of this. A prayer meeting to which brethren have come from so great distances ! There is a feeling of dissatisfaction with self, and one object should be to deepen this feeling. I shall then call your attention to this point, the indications that we need a revival. We might take an ex- tensive view — even to the heathen world. But the heathen will not be revived except by a revived Church. Other nations once enjoying the gospel, have now given it up. Theo. Beza says that at one time there were 2,000 Protestant Churches in THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 243 France, and where are they now ? Look, too, at the state of matters in our own land. Have you felt alarmed at the increase of crime in our land? We might refer to all to show we need a reviving time. Civil rulers like Nehemiah are needed, and we might then have such, to restrain all forms of iniquity. But we must confine ourselves within narrower limits. Look at home — in every man's heart let him begin. 1. Home evidences. Small number of candidates coming to the ministry. We need many, no other country where they are so much needed. Our population is constantly and rapidly in- creasing. Fifty years ago, the Scotch Presbyterian influence had a controlling power, now rationalism, infidelity and skepti- cism abound. What have we to meet this? Take all the Churches represented here, and Old and New School Presby- terians, if you please, and there is a decrease in the number of theological students, whilst our population is increasing. A famine, not of bread and water, but of hearing the word. What is the cause ? Some say because ministers are kept at starvation prices. Parents turn their children to some lucrative employment. This is a very business-like view of the matter. One that is prevalent, and ministers give strength to it — the secular press takes it up, and even fiction lends its aid, all warn- ing our youth against entering the ministry. After all this is not the cause. Offer them such salaries as bishops of England receive, all would be vain to raising up ministers in the Church. The cause is the declining, dead state of matters in the Church. Show us a revived Church, and you will find plenty offering themselves to the work of the ministry. See how it was after the day of Pentecost. They ordained elders in every city. Isaiah is an illustration — A seraphim touched his lips with a coal from the altar; that coal was love: when he had touched his lips, a voice from the throne on high said, whom shall I send and who will go for us ? The Lord reads to him his commis- sion. All terrors from poor salaries not to be compared to the 244 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. terribleness of that commission. There was no drawback when the call had touched his lips and heart. Here is what we need ; we need our young men prepared as Isaiah was. People will come up to their ability, and even beyond their ability. I fear the consequences of the candlestick being removed is not felt. What did the Saviour say of such a ministry : "The harvest is great and the laborers are few, pray ye the Lord of the harvest that he would send send forth laborers into the harvest." We have but little of such prayers. One fact I can tell you of our own Church. Large and flourishing Churches grow in wealth, but do not feel that they ought to devote their children to the Lord — not like Hannah devoting her only child to the Lord. He here showed the danger of the candlestick beins removed from its place. 2. Brethren, a few words in respect to ourselves, and I take it all to myself. Let me ask you to look at our want of suc- cess. The gospel ministry is for the conversion of sinners, and for the perfecting of the saints. How little has it accomplished in our hands ! You have felt this subject, every renewed heart has wept over it ; sinners shun our ministry. How many in a year follow you to your closets ? The most of us will have to say, not one. And what advancement in holiness in our re- spective congregations? In self-denial and that godly life which should distinguish the Christian ? We have not been success- ful. What has been the cause ? Will not the Spirit give the blessing? True, but can a ministry under the influence of faith be so unsuccessful ? Lookback to the day of Pentecost. As long as the Pentecostal spirit remained, there was continued success. When the reverse came, there came a reverse effect. The want of success may be the result of disqualifications — not baptized with the Spirit. Success of unconverted ministers is the exception, not the rule. The rule well laid down by the apostles was to be reconciled to God, and then seek to reconcile others. It may be objected, again, that some have been quali- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 245 fied, and yet failed of success. For instance, the case of Jere- miah, and even of the Saviour himself. Jeremiah was, in a measure, unsuccessful, but before we claim to be qualified as he was, let us try, if we feel as he felt. " O that my head were waters, and mine eyes a fountain of tears, that I might weep day and night for the slain of the daughter of my people." See, too, how when the Saviour came to the place in which His min- istry had been unfruitful, he wept over it, saying, " If thou hadst known, even thou, at least in this thy day, the things which belong unto thy peace ; but now they are hid from thy eyes." And where is our tenderness? Paul could appeal to the elders at Ephesus that he ceased not to warn every one night and day with tears. 3. A want of directness and explicitness in our ministry. He narrated an anecdote of Baxter and Bruce, showing their devo- tion to their work, and unwillingness to go to the pulpit without Christ's felt presence. Let us begin at home and get Christ to go with us to our pulpits. Can anything save us but an out- pouring of the Spirit of God on High ? The standard is so low that a man can be a Christian without self-denial, in order to increase the number of members. We are all aware that there are Christians in other Churches. In some of these they have run to an extreme, and on examina- tion require the applicant to tell even the place of his conver- sion. We have run into the opposite extreme. We have something more to do than simply to inquire whether a man is ignorant and scandalous. He ought to be able to tell us some- thing of the work of the Spirit. Are we safe in admitting a man that knows nothing of the work of the Spirit on the heart? Try conversation with these Christian professors, and see how little they know of the inner sanctuary of the soul. When they meet one drowned in distress, can they drop a word to such ? They can talk on everything else, but not a word about the Saviour. 246 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Family conversation too must not be mere catechetical exer- cises, but family talk on religion. Another matter. How diffi- cult a thing it is to keep up meetings for prayer. Is religion prospering among us when we cannot meet and pray and talk over the interests of our souls ? Another indication is, there is so little personal influence, one on another, or on an unconverted world. A revived Church will be a working Church. He referred, in illustration, to a British naval battle, where the watchword was, " England ex- pects every man to do his duty." Never will the Church pros- per until the watchword is, " Christ expects every man to do his duty." Is it necessary to name the grasping and worldly- mindedness of Church members ? Let me mention an incident. An agent stated he called on a certain non-professor, and asked him to contribute to send the gospel to the heathen. He said he would give $5 — it makes men better. He then asked to look at his subscription. Then he asked the agent, " Will the heathen perish without the gospel ?" He replied, " They would." " Do Christians believe that?" He answered, " Yes." He then said, " They were hypocrites ;" and pointing to a five- dollar subscription, he said, "That man paid five hundred dol- lars for a carriage, and now subscribes five dollars to send the gospel to the heathen ! Can that man believe there is a hell, and that the heathen will perish ?" Surely there is tainted Christianity. The speaker said, he knew a man worth fifty thousand dollars, and he gives only one dollar to the Bible cause. What will his infidel neighbors say ? The Church is taken possession of by the world. He closed with an earnest appeal to seek the Spirit of God to revive our own hearts, that we may be centers of illumina- tion. Let us feel more than ever the necessity of the work of Christ in our hearts, that we may be fitted for the work coming on, and that we may have reason to bless God for the revival of His work. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 247 Sung Psalm lxxvi, 7-11. Prayer by Rev. R. IT. Pollock. The Convention adjourned, to meet to-morrow morning at 9 o'clock. Friday, 9 o'clock a. m. — Convention met; Rev. Rev. T. W. J. Wylie presiding. Sung Psalm cxlv, 1-7. Read the 14th chapter of Hosea. Prayer by Rev. G. D. Archibald. The minutes were read and approved. Dr. Black moved the reference of the resolution on slavery to the committee on the address, for them to use as they saw fit. Rev. D. H. A. M'Lean said, if this was done with the de- sign to give the resolution the go-by, he should object. There was nothing fanatical in the resolution ; and if we were not prepared to speak thus far we were not prepared for a re- vival. He had listened to the discussion without being in the least excited or disturbed in the equanimity of his mind, and would not now speak on the subject, were it not that he thought remarks had been made condemnatory of Bro. Browne for introducing the resolution that should not have been made. However great other evils are, this one had a deadening influ- ence on the Church. We were of one mind with other evan- gelical Churches in respect to Sabbath-breaking and the other great evils of the day, but on the subject before us we stood almost alone. Ought we not then to give a more distinct utter- ance on this than on other evils about which there was a unity of sentiment ? There was nothing fanatical in the resolution. It asks us to pray for the slaveholder as well as the slave. And shall we expect a revival and yet not proclaim to men, under the present awakening, all their sins ? If men are awakening all over the land, even in high places, does it not call on us to show them their sins when there is some hope they may be made to feel that they are sinners ? He hoped the resolution would receive the sanction of the Convention. Dr. Black remarked, that he supposed the members of the committee could be trusted as anti-slavery men, and he did not 248 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. mean by his motion to treat the resolution with disrespect ; that he had no objection to the resolution ; he only thought that that was the proper direction to give it. Mr. M'Lean replied, that he did not oppose the motion through distrust of the committee, but preferred to have the Convention vote on it. Dr. Rodgers moved that the resolution be first adopted and then referred. Rev. H. H. Blair thought Sabbath-breaking was as promi- nent a sin among us as slavery, and we ought to have a resolu- tion on that and other sins as well as slavery. We were giving this an undue prominence by treating it different from other sins on which we had no resolutions. Dr. Kerr said it was due to the mover of the resolution to state that he had been requested to prepare and offer a resolu- tion on this subject. This justified his action in the matter — and that slavery was one of the sins named by the committee under the topics discussed at the time. Dr. Rogers withdrew his motion. Rev. Archibald moved that the resolution be incorporated in the address, and thus make the same disposition of it as had been made of other resolutions. Dr. Wilson, of Xenia, insisted that the Convention commit itself either for or against the resolution, and asked that its ac- tion should be distinct and definite. It was then moved that " the resolution be referred to the committee to prepare an address to the Churches, with instruc- tions to incorporate it into that document, as the sense of this Convention." In this form it was adopted unanimously. Resumed devotional exercises. Sung Psalm cxliii, 6-11. Read the xliv chapter of Isaiah. Prayer by Rev. Prugh, Ger- man Reformed, of Xenia. Extracts from letters from George II. Stuart, Esq., of Philadelphia, were read. Rev. Dr. Ilerron here introduced to the Convention a colored THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 249 man, by name Reuben Howard, who having purchased the free- dom of several members of his family, is now soliciting aid to remove them to a free State. Dr. Herron spoke of him as a man whom he had long known, and for whom at one time dur- ing his ministry in Virginia, he had performed the marriage ceremony. That he was a man of good moral character, and worthy of any aid that friends could give him. It was on mo- tion resolved that a collection be made at three o'clock this af- ternoon for the benefit of Reuben Howard. Proceeded to the consideration of topic sixth, viz : The means of promoting a revival of religion. Rev. Pollock said: Nothing but Divine power can render means effectual, therefore all means should be such as command the Divine approval. All would admit that those means were most efficient which Christ had appointed. He referred to the fact that the great revival under Edward's ministry had begun when he was preaching on the doctrine of election. We must have our hearts imbued with the love of Christ. He that preaches must feel what he preaches to others, and he must un- fold the doctrines of the cross, having his own heart warmed with the divine power of the Spirit. He did not believe it was right for ministers to make head-preparation on Sabbath morn- ing. Having previously made such preparation, he may study his sermon as closely as he can in connection with his own heart. He warned against public meetings carrying us away to the neglect of family and secret prayer. Nearly all revivals can be traced to private prayer. Rev. Clokey : We want information, so that we will know how to do when we return home. We are not so remiss in the use of the ordinary means, but probably we are in the small ones, the crumbs. He spoke of the case of the Eunuch. Philip was directed to join himself to him — and he directed him in journeying by the way. We should get up our prayer-meet- ings in the lanes and alleys, wherever we can get a chance. 250 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Rev. Davidson : "What is a revival ? It is the Spirit ope- rating with means. How is such a revival brought about ? Some men and women who could not restrain prayer, com- menced preaching everywhere. We must pray. The day of Pentecost was a day of prayer. All plans that can be laid down by us are worthless when the revival comes. The direc- tion to the apostles was, " Take no thought what you shall say in that day." So here we must pray for the outpouring of the Holy Spirit. The body grows from the inner life ; we have members that minister, but the cause of the growth is the inner life, that moves from the heart, sending forth its power over the whole body. So is the inner life of the soul, the life implanted and cherished by the Spirit. We need prudence and wisdom, but he would trust the Spirit. Rev. J. K. Andrew said : I can say in all honesty there is no other thing on which I have thought more than on this sub- ject. He would now say but a few things. What course should a pastor and people pursue to have a revival ? 1. Humiliation and prayer ; fasting before God. 2. Get their minds specially directed towards this subject. No rule can be laid down for preaching. Get acquainted with the workings of the Spirit of God in the heart. He said he had made four unsuccessful at- tempts at the General Synod of the Associate Reformed Church, and two or three at the meeting of the local Synod, to get a day of fasting appointed. He still thought we need to observe such times. Ministers are not without their faults. They need more devotedness to their work. The babe that is born in the Church must be cared for. We need the influences of others. We need to have conference, and get others to keep alive the spark kindled within the soul. He w r ould be glad to see a brother or sister call upon him in his study, even if it was on Saturday, with tears in his eyes, asking what shall we do for some poor soul? Mr. Russell, a lay member, expressed his satisfaction in being THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 251 here. Quoted the passage, " Iron sharpeneth iron, so a man sharpeneth the countenance of his friend," (Prov. xxvii, 17,) and made a few remarks on it illustrating the effects of the present meeting. He believed that this meeting was called of God. When the circular was read in his congregation, he felt he was ordered of God to come here, and he had come under this im- pression. He thought we ought to speak a little of our feelings. Dr. Black said he had been carried away with brother David- son's description of the Spirit's work, but he thought we wanted something more. The Spirit works by means. He related an incident of a revival work begun under a Mr. C. They held a series of meetings, he asked the people to pray for him, he preached on the expository plan, and the consequence was, a revival followed. The people had been very careless, and at first thought their pastor was bringing in new things, but under the plain exhibition of the gospel they soon began to look at things in a different light, and willingly cooperated with their pastor. He remarked, we must preach the doctrines of salva- tion to sinners. Plain, faithful, expository preaching, is needed. Mentioned what he had heard in a great convention, (under- stood to refer to Berlin.) One of its members had said that they had plenty of beautifully concocted sermons, but no exposi- tory preaching. The consequences were very apparent — a life- less people. Rev. J. H. Henderson said, prayer and preaching the gospel are approved measures. These ordinances should be observed privately as well as publicly. He said there were two great faults with us — spiritual indolence and false modesty. We must put off our spiritual indolence or slothfulness. It is the duty of ministers to deal with souls ; this is their appropriate business, and men are accessible, more accessible than we gene- rally think — they know it to be our business. We must also lay aside our false modesty. We must not be content with pul- pit exercises, but work all the while. He narrated an anecdote 252 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. of the late Dr. W. They were traveling together in a stage coach, and having stopped for a change of horses, when about leaving, he observed the Dr. busily engaged talking to a little girl: he drew near to hear what he was saying to her, and found that he was talking to her about her Creator. He thought such instances afforded lessons we should learn. Dr. Rodgers said, the text "Receive ye the Holy Ghost," although addressed to those now dead, was addressed also to us all, and to be regarded as the standing command to the Church. It must be received willingly, and we must have a revival on God's terms. I use this term in an evangelical sense for a gos- pel instrumentality. Every man must begin with himself, and put away all hindrances to the reception of the Holy Ghost. And you must work ; put not only your hands but your hearts to work. We must labor outside our own congregations, and not confine all our time to them. He thought we had erred in this respect. Rev. R. A. Brown spoke of the revival as already begun. It is here, and what we need is the appropriate means to carry on this work. It is not your and my opinion a dying sinner wants to hear, but it is what God says ; Christ's promises brought to his particular case is what he wants, and what he needs. He spoke of the necessity of being baptized with the Spirit and love of the Divine Word, and not draw near to God with the lips whilst the heart is far from him. [Mr. Orr, ruling elder, made some judicious remarks on the means to be used, the preaching of the gospel, faith in prayer, etc.; but unfortunately we were so situated at the moment that we could not report him.] Mr. Finney, ruling elder, said, there is much in this. Do your ministers and elders sufficiently expect an answer to their prayers ? He spoke of the anxiety with which men waited for an answer to a message sent to a friend, and applied it, showing how we ought so to wait on God for an answer to our prayers. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 253 Rev. Cummings would make a suggestion. Usually we dis- miss our congregations after the most solemn appeals. Ou^ht we not to invite them to tarry for a time at Jerusalem until the Spirit is poured out upon them. He thought much good might be done in this way, especially when meeting in our school- houses and more private places for public worship. Rev. Harper presented the following resolution from a ruling elder, asking what measures should be pursued to advance the revival of true religion : R- solved, That it is the duty of this Convention to give an expression to our Churches in regard to the specific measures which should be adopted by our Sessions and members, so that a proper direction may be given to the present awtikening on the subject of religion. This was referred to a committee consisting of Messrs. Rodgers, Black and Clokey. Adjourned : the benediction having been pronounced by the President. Two o'clock p. m. — Convention met. Rev. Dr. Samuel Wilson presiding. Commenced with singing Psalm li, 7-15. Prayer by Rev. John M'Millen. The presiding officer read from Isaiah, chapter lxi. Minutes read and approved. Rev. G. R. M'Millen made some remarks, stating what they had been doing in Newcastle, Pa., and the favorable condition of things there. He expressed his belief in the necessity of ministers following the example set us by politicians, and preaching from "the stump." He delivered a message from the Rev. Bradford, of the Free Presbyterian Church, Newcastle, expressing a desire for our success, and praying that God might be with us, as he believed it was the most important Convention of the age. Rev. D. Blair made a few general remarks in regard to the state of religion in his section of the country. He stated that the soil was poor, but good enough to grow Christians, and 254 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. asked brethren to pray for them. Expressed his opinion that it was the best meeting he had ever attended. Rev. H. H. Blair spoke of the great demands of New York, and asked brethren to remember it and other great cities of our land. Whilst they were first in commercial importance, they were also first in wickedness. The committee appointed at last sitting now gave in their re- port. The report w T as adopted, and ordered to be published in conjunction with the address. Took up item seventh — The necessity of the influences of the Holy Spirit in promoting a revival. Dr. Wm. Wilson (who had been previously invited by the committee) spoke on this topic at considerable length, showing that without the Spirit nothing ever had been or could be ac- complished. Dr. Wilson said : The work to be done is the restoring the lost image of God to the soul. We are nothing, absolutely nothing, in this work. The only effectual agency in the conver- sion of sinners is the Spirit of God. Sinners often make a handle of the fact that there are divisions in the Church. But is it not an evidence of the power of God's grace, that the Church has been preserved, distracted as she has been ? This meeting testifies that there is faith in the Church, and faith is necessary to the outpouring of the Spirit. Man cannot approx- imate to the strength necessary to the saving of sinners — God only has it. He must be supreme in this work. The necessity of the Spirit is shown by the fact that the apostles were com- manded to tarry at Jerusalem until they should be baptized from on high. After this, how glorious was their success ! It was not long until the flag of Christ was waving triumphantly over the Eastern and Western Empire of the Caesars. We do not discourage the use of means. This position is not against their employment. No sensible man would embark in a mis- sionary enterprise without faith that this aid would be afforded. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 255 I am willing to join Associate and Associate Reformed brethren in protesting against sin, and in imploring the outpouring of the Spirit upon the Church and the world. [The above report of Dr. W.'s remarks we take from the Xenia Torch-Light. We were otherwise engaged at the mo- ment, and did not make a report. His address was a good one.] He offered the following resolution, which was the basis of his remarks : Resolved, That the influences of the Holy Spirit are absolutely, univer- sally, continuously and perpetually necessary to the existence and the entire success of the religion and the Church of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ. It was referred to the committee on the Address. Took up item ninth, viz : Revival of religion essential to the success of the work of missions. Rev. J. B. Johnston, Reformed Presbyterian Church, (0. S.) being called on, addressed the Convention at considerable length. He thought this proposition might be regarded as almost an axiom. If he was not mistaken, the present is a time of great want of success in foreign missions. He related an incident told him ten years ago, when exploring the mission field in the West Indies. At one place fifteen years labor had been ex- pended, and only one convert. There is something wrong. We may take the Pentecostal period as our stand-point. In a short time from that event the Roman Empire was run over with the heralds of Christianity. A baptized, revived Church at work. Within that little time more work was done than has been done for hundreds of — shall I say sixteen hundred? — years. Du- ring a part of this time the Popish Church made some converts, but the age that followed was a dark age for the Church. A few retained the Pentecostal spirit, but they were the Wal- denses, found in the valleys of Piedmont, and other kindred spirits, manifesting a true missionary spirit. The same spirit was seen and felt in the time of the Reformation and in the 256 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. days of Knox — then the Church was in a reviving condition, and missions revived. He gave an account of the stirrings up of Infidelity and Ger- man skepticism, and at that very time the Christian spirit was stirred, and the British Bible Society formed. He then took up later periods, to show that as the Church revived, missions re- vived. He came to our time, just now. The wonderful facil- ities furnished for missions, and yet missionaries mourning the want of fruits. He named some of the facilities. We have men, and the means of making more fitted for the work, and wc have schools all over the land, but mammon has our sons. We have money. The Churches represented here could support one hundred and fifty foreign missionaries, beside the home ma- chinery. The gold and silver abound, but they have not been consecrated to the Lord. We have a pure gospel to send, but we disgrace it. If our Christianity was in pure hands, it would be effective. But we have in our land covetousness, drunken- ness and slavery. They to whom we would send the gospel hear of these things, and they mock us. In addition to this, we will send out our own spirit with the gospel, which will beget a like spirit in others. Again, we are so divided at home as almost to paralyze our efforts abroad. We cannot form a solid phalanx before the heathen with a hand or an arm gone. I hail every honest effort at union. That good day will come, " Not by might nor by power, but by my Spirit, saith the Lord of hosts." This must be true, however pure the means. The head of the Church has given us no evidence that he will work without an instrument- ality of his own appointment. And what is this instrumentality ? A revived Church. That is the only instrumentality he will fully bless. He will bless those who have an abiding love for the salvation of sinners. See how it was with Paul, whom Christ ordained to evangelize the Gentile world, " My heart's desire and prayer to God for Israel is, that they might be saved." THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 257 And the language of our Lord Jesus, "O Jerusalem, Jerusalem, how often would I have gathered thy children together," shows what an abiding love he felt for the salvation of sinners. Until we are brought to feel like the Samaritan, who did not follow the footsteps of either Priest or Levite, we cannot be successful in missionary operations. He illustrated the interest we ought to feel in missions, by the kind of feelings we cherish for friends when surrounded with or under a fatal epidemic. See, said he, the tens of millions going down to the grave without hope. They are our brethren — their souls cost as much as ours. Un- less we feel an interest in missions, how can we feel for them ? There are many reasons why Christ took our nature ; one is, that he might have a fellow-feeling for us in our infirmities. And when Christ was fitting his disciples to go as missionaries, he sustained them with the promise that the Father would be with them. If we cannot look for the Spirit in the promise, I fear we do not enter into the spirit of missions. The prediction that the gospel will be preached to every creature, must be fulfilled. Then will come the millenium. He narrated an incident, and concluded by saying that, whenever the Church is revived, she will send the gospel to the world ; and whenever a revived Church sends the gospel to the world, we will have a millenium. Dr. Beveridge, chairman of the committee on the Address, stated that they were ready to report. He moved that as Rev. Milligan was not present, the Rev. J. B. Johnston, who had examined and approved the document, be substituted in his place. Unanimously agreed to. The report was then read, and after some remarks by Rev. Mr. Adams and Dr. Pressly, unanimously adopted. [See page 2C2.] Sung Psalm lxvii. Prayer by Rev. S. W. M'Cracken. Ad- journed until 7 o'clock. 258 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Seven o'clock p. m. — Convention met, Rev. J. B. John- ston presiding. Sung Psalm cxxxiii. Prayer by Rev. Lari- mer. Rev. Harper read a communication from Rev. A. G. Wal- lace, expressing deep interest in this Convention. Took up item third of the report, viz : The encouragement to hope for a revival. Rev. T. W. J. Wylie (by arrangement) proceeded to address the Convention. He said we had great encouragement — 1. Because we have a faithful God. God the Father has given his Son to save an elect world. God the Son has accom- plished his work of redemption for them, and God the Holy Spirit is our ally in this work. Under such aid we must be vic- torious. 2. The very object for which we live is an encouragement. Too much disposed to think we live for our own salvation. We do not live for this alone. One hour of the heavenly world would advance us more than a lifetime here. And if this were the only object, we would soon be translated to that kingdom. No, no ; it is for the conversion of a dying world. Then we have this encouragement, that we live not for ourselves but for Him who died for us. 3. The exceeding great and precious promises in His word give us encouragement. These are a string of gems as present- ed to us in the word of God. Go back to Moses. Israel had departed far from God, yet his promise is that he will gather them from all nations whither the Lord their God had scattered them. So all through the book of Psalms the promises abound, and our hearts have been revived by them. So, too, Isaiah, when his lips were touched with fire, " in a little wrath I hid my face from Thee for a moment, but with everlasting kindness will I have mercy on Thee, saith the Lord, thy Redeemer. For this is as the waters of Noah unto me : for as I have sworn that the waters of Noah should no more go over the earth, so THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 259 have I sworn that I would not be wroth with thee, nor shake thee." Dark as the firmament of Providence may sometimes be, it is studded over with stars to guide our way. Not only has he given us his word, but also his oath. 4. From our very organization. Evangelical truth in pos- session of our Churches in reference to the evils of the day. I have heard it said that we need not expect the Reformed Churches to grow much, they are so rigid in doctrine and dis- cipline. The very reverse of this is true. The doctrines of the Bible are blessed for the conversion of the world. He re- ferred to the great champion (Spurgeon) of Calvinism in Lon- don, whom tens of thousands flock to hear. It was when Peter preached against human ability, and charged with distinctness their sins upon them, he converted so many. So with our truth, our modes of worship, cleaving to an inspired psalmody, expos- itory preaching, all give us a moral power and reason to expect the blessing of God on His own appointed instrumentality. I have thought that the Reformed Churches have been kept in existence like a spark in the midst of the ocean for such a day as this. If not, why have we not been absorbed by larger bodies ? I think we have been kept as custodians of the truth for such a time as this. Then we stand clear of those stumbling- blocks that lie in the way of others. Slavery we have not in the Church, and to a great extent we are clear of the Sabbath- breaking of our day, and less of covetousness with us, although we have too much of it. But let us not indulge spiritual pride ; we are far below the standard. Still I think that these things show that our position is favorable — we have our Catechisms, our pastoral visitations, etc., and thus, we think, in a position ecclesiastically to expect that God will bless and revive us. One influence of these and similar Conventions is, to make the Reformed Churches see that they have the machinery, and instead of standing back as if the world would be converted by 260 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. a miracle, they will go forward. They shall grow not from the children of the Church alone, but from the world around us. We have no reason to think that conversions under our min- istrations may not be as numerous as they were under Whit- field's. We have not dared to believe this, therefore our words fell lifeless and cold to the ground. Otherwise, under the Spirit of God, it would tell in its effects. 5. From the very signs of the times we have reason to be- lieve that it is not long, it may not be more than ten years, until the millenium will come. There will be a conflict with the powers of darkness before that time comes. The hosts will be arrayed. The Spirit is gathering His own elect from all cor- ners of the world. Such meetings as this one are encourage- ments that the day of their redemption draweth nigh. That day will be to the redeemed as Noah's ark in the flood. All who are not in that ark will be destroyed. I need not refer to the workings of Providence — every country in the world is open to us. Surely, from all these signs we have an encour- agement to believe that God's "set time" has come. G. From such Conventions as this. Here are Christians assembled from different parts of the land to pray together. We have one faith, one hope, etc., etc. For years we have been resolving, now we seem to be ready to declare, we are one — so much unity of heart, of sentiment, of faith. All are brethren, and others are coming nearer to us. We are one, and we ought to act on this, and declare ourselves one. All these things give encouragement to expect the blessing, and we have felt that God is with us. Rev. II. II. Blair made some additional remarks. He re- ferred to the identity of the different branches represented here : in passing from one to the other, members are not required to change their views. He exhorted to cultivate the spirit of brethren in unity. Rev. Dr. Pressly moved that when the Convention adjourns, THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 261 it adjourn to meet in Allegheny city, at 7 o'clock the Monday evening preceding the 3d Wednesday of May. This was unanimously agreed to, and the Associate Church (Dr. Rodgers's) designated as the place of meeting. Rev. Shaw moved that a day for fasting, humiliation and prayer be named by this Convention, and that it be recommended to all our Churches to observe it. After some time spent in an exchange of views, some seeming to prefer a day of thanksgiving and prayer, and others a day of prayer simply, the resolution finally passed unanimously, and the fifteenth day of April was designated. The business committee further reported a series of resolu- tions expressive of the sense of the meeting on the various topics discussed, which were adopted. The thanks of the Convention were tendered to the citizens of Xenia for their hospitality. Sung Psalm cxxvii. Prayer by Rev. Mr. Gordon. The chairman said that, by request, they would again sing the cxxxiii Psalm. Prayer by Rev. P. Montfort. Sung Psalm cxxvi. Father Montfort arose and said he wished to say a few words before adjournment, He was an old man, and had been through three or four seasons of a general awakening. Satan was full of devices, and in all these seasons had spread the idea that the millenium was coming. The same idea, was beginning to pre- vail now. He begged the Convention not to be deceived by it, and lay their armor by. They would yet find full use for it. He fervently exhorted all to labor, watch and pray, for the end is not yet. Father Blair made some remarks. Closed with singing the last two verses of Psalm Ixxii. The Convention then adjourned to meet in Allegheny city, at the time above mentioned. 262 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. The Apostolic blessing was pronounced by the President. The large assembly then slowly and with evident unwilling- ness withdrew. ADDRESS To the Members of the Reformed, the Associate, and the Associate Reformed Churches of the United States. Dear Brethren: A convention of the above named branches of the Presbyterian Church having met in Xenia, Ohio, to consult respecting the present state of religion, and measures for promoting a true and scrip- tural revival, have concluded to address you on these most important sub- jects. The position we have occupied among the Churches of Christ has been of a conservative character. We have been suspicious of innova- tions, and have stood aloof from those excitements which about the mid- dle of the last and the beginning of the present century have been gene- rally characterized as signal revivals of religion. While we do not doubt that the Spirit of God was to some extent carrying on a good work on these occasions, yet even the greatest friends of these revivals have gene- rally admitted that they were attended, especially toward the close of them, with a fanaticism calculated to expose religion to reproach. Still we ac- knowledge that Christ has in different ages and places granted special seasons of refreshing to his Church, and that such seasons are earnestly to be desired. That such a season is much needed at the present time, we think all serious persons who reflect on the signs of the times, will readily admit. We can however do little more on this and some other topics, than suggest some things for reflection. In proof that true religion has been declining, and that we much need a revival, a few evidences, out of the many which might be adduced, may be noticed. There has been for years past a manifest withholding of the influences of the Spirit. When the cause of religion has prospered, we have been told of hundreds and thousands being turned to the Lord under single sermons, and of ministers who were never known to have preached a sermon with- out being the instruments of bringing some to Christ. We have been told of ministers going to places where nothing was to be witnessed but drink- ing, swearing, fighting, and kindred vices, yet in a few days these same people were formed into congregations as distinguished for faith, good or- der and good works, as they had been for wickedness. We see not such evidences of God's presence in his ordinances now. Ministers often labor for years without satisfactory evidence of being honored as instruments of THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 263 a single conversion, or of their being to any great extent useful in promot- ing the faith, the holiness, the comfort, or hope of God's people. Another evidence of the decline of religion we rind in the prevalence of pernicious errors. The Churches of the Reformation, though of different lands, and called by different names, were to a remarkable degree one in the faith of the gospel, but now many of them are overrun with Socinian- ism, Universalism, Rationalism, Puseyism, and kindred errors. We fear, too, it may be said of the purest of them, that they have not been holding fast what they had attained, but have left their first love. The ordinances of worship have been in many instances corrupted, or so overshadowed with worldly pomp that they are assimilated to the car- nal ordinances of the Judaical dispensation, or the weak and beggarly elements of the world ; and are stripped of that simplicity which becomes the gospel of Jesus Christ. Through a desire to increase the numbers of the Church, admissions to her communion have been made without due care; and for fear of giving offense, and causing her members to with- draw, the ordinance of discipline has been grievously neglected. It has been slightly employed by the rulers, and brought into contempt among the people. The will of the people has been substituted as the rule instead of the law of God; and so no doctrine must be preached contrary to the public mind, no sin rebuked contrary to popular practice. Another unfavorable sign of the present time, is the levity which is man- ifested in respect to divine things. That word of God which he has exalted above his great name, is treated as a common thing. Instead of men's carefully searching the Scriptures, that they may know the truth, they are neglected, and their wholesome, sanctifying doctrines are often character- ized as mere matters of opinion or of unprofitable controversy. Many are ready to justify their sins or make light of them. Ordinances are lightly esteemed. Men say of the table of the Lord, that it is contemptible. There is a similar levity in respect to religious profession. People make light of their covenant with God. They vow, and afterwards for reasons of no weight, they make inquiry. This insincerity and unsteadfastness in covenant are frequently mentioned in the Scriptures as sins provoking God to forsake his people, and an evidence that they have forsaken him. The divisions which prevail in the Church are an indication of a decline of religion, and of God's controversy with us. If the Spirit were poured out upon us, one fruit would be the healing of these divisions. Ephraim would not vex Judah, and Judah would not vex Ephraim. But God has not been pleased to shine upon the counsels of His people so as to bring them all to see eye to eye. We may too justly say in regard to such coun- sels, " We grope for the wall as blind men; we grope as those who have no eyes ; we stumble at noonday as in the night." The angel of the Lord 264 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. has divided us, and His favor has not yet been shown in gathering the dispersed of Israel into one. One of the deplorable effects of these divis- ions has been the weakening of the hands of the Churches in their mis- sionary operations, and impeding their success amongst the heathen. The field to be occupied is immense, the laborers are few, and the fruit of their labor is small compared with what might be expected if the Churches could all cooperate in this great work. In connection with these things may be noticed the general disregard of Divine judgments. Though punished less than our iniquities deserve, we have not altogether escaped some tokens of the Divine displeasure. Many of our chief cities have been burned with fire, portions of our country have been visited with pestilence, our pecuniary affairs have been de- ranged, many who were rich have been reduced to poverty. There has been in many instances a fearful destruction of life among our citizens, and this frequently in a remarkable connection with the desecration of the Sabbath. The missionaries of different Churches in Hindostan have been exposed to great dangers, and many of them inhumanly butchered. The councils of our nation have been distracted. Corruption reigns almost unrebuked in high places. The holy law of God has been scornfully placed below the law of man. Our liberties have been threatened by atrocious and openly fraudulent attempts to impose the protection of slave-holding upon our free States, and to introduce this curse into our territories, and that in defiance of the well known wishes of the peo- ple. And, what is even to be deplored more than all these evils, though we feel them as evils, we do not regard them and deplore them as the judgments of God. Many who make profession of Christ's name are either silent respecting these things as tokens of God's displeas- ure, or take part with those who are doing what in them lies to bring down God's curse upon us. This is particularly true in regard to the oppression of the slave. And we can regard no revival as genuine which leaves the subject of it with the lash of the oppressor in his hand, and his bleeding victim at his feet. "'Therefore thus saith the Lord ; Ye have not hearkened unto me, in proclaiming liberty every one to his brother, and every man to his neighbor: behold, I proclaim a liberty for you, saith the Lord, to the sword, to the pestilence, and to the famine; and I will make you to be removed into all the kingdoms of the earth." (Jer. xxxiv, 17.) In consideration of the alarming increase of this in- iquity, and the desperate attempts made to extend it, the Convention, among other proceedings, directed the publication, in connection with this address, the following resolution as expressive of the mind of the Convention : Besolved, That in considering those sins which separate between us and our God, and justly shut up from our land the influences of His Spirit, THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 265 this Convention feels called to utter its protest against the institution of American slavery as a crime against Christ, our country and hu- manity ; and invite the cooperation of Christians of all denominations to labor and pray for its limitation and final extinction; and that God may pour out the spirit of repentance on those who directly or by com- plicity in ecclesiastical or political relations, are involved in the fearful guilt of this sin ; and, moreover, that God in pouring out His Spirit as floods upon the thirsty grounds, would visit the 3,000,000 of His poor in our land, to whom the word of God is bound, hastening their emancipa- tion, and enfranchisement with that liberty wherewith Christ maketh His people free. Perhaps no evidence is more against us than the prevalence of a worldly spirit. This appears in the love and anxious pursuit of the riches of the world, conformity to its maxims and fashions, and lusting after its hon- ors and pleasures. '"For the iniquity of his covetousness was I wroth, and smote him ; I hid me and was wroth, and he went on frowardly in the way of his heart." Any sin, especially when persevered in, in spite of reproof, will separate from God, and cause Him to hide His face from us; but as no sin is more displeasing to God than covetousness, which is idol- atry, or more likely to beset the people of God, so no one appears to be more prevalent in our country, or to call for more special notice. It is this sin which lies at the root of slavery, Sabbath-breaking, and most of the evils which abound. There is among us little of that spirit which would dispose us not only in name, but in fact to forsake all for Christ. This evil is not confined to men of the world or to the private members of the Church, but we fear that it prevails to some extent among the watch- men. Some of the evils named may characterize the world more than the Church, yet if the zeal and purity of the Church were what it should be, their iniquities would be ashamed and hide their heads. Yet, dear brethren, amidst all these sad tokens, there are many things which may encourage us to hope that the Lord may return to us, and in his great mercy revive us. The very fact that such a general impression of our need of a revival prevails, is encouraging. Does not our meeting, and similar meetings throughout our land, and do not the religious awak- enings in foreign lands all indicate a sense of apostacy from God, and a desire that he would return to his heritage? And is not the earnest desire for a revival some evidence that the work is begun, that the Spirit is breathing upon these slain 1 ? While people are in a dead state, they are insensible to their true condition. They think themselves rich and in- creased with goods, and know not that they are wretched, and miserable, and poor, and blind, and naked. It is only when they are awakened, and 18 266 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. begin to return to God, that they begin to see from whence and how far they have fallen. In the earnest breathing of the soul after God, we have to some extent the thing which we ask. It is encouraging also to reflect that the Spirit by whom alone we can be revived, is a free, a gracious, and all-powerful spirit. He is the gift of God, and will be given to them that ask him, and can work with an energy which the stoutest heart will not be able effectually to resist. He is as able now and as ready as ever he was, to gather up guests for Christ from the highways and hedges. He could soon fill our Churches with the profane swearers, Sabbath breakers, drunkards, and other vile persons who abound amongst us, and make them as eminent for grace as they have been for wickedness. And what hinders our seeing such indications of his power and rich grace ? He only waits to be asked to do for us such great things, and greater things than we ask. The time long looked for appears also to be near at hand, when God will pour out the vials of his wrath upon his enemies, and the bitter persecutors of his saints. It would seem as if both the beast and the false prophet were soon to go into perdition ; and the day of vengeance against these enemies will be the year of God's redeemed. God is evidently giving deep and fatal wounds to the anti-Christian, the Mahommedan, and Pagan su- perstitions, and thus leading us to hope that their end is at hand. Recent events in Italy and other countries under the dominion of the Pope, in Turkey, in Hindoostan and China, appear as if the way were preparing for that glorious period when the kingdoms shall be turned to the Lord, and shall become the kingdoms of his Christ. On this subject the following resolution was adopted, and ordered to be published in connection with this address : Besolved, That the influences of the Holy Spirit are absolutely, univer- sally, continuously and perpetually necessary to the existence and the entire success of the religion and the Church of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ. And now, dear brethren, what is our duty under these peculiar circum- stances ? Should not each of us seek a revival of the work of God in our own hearts? Should we not make sure that when the Spirit is visiting others, he does not pass us by 1 Let us seek the Spirit with all our hearts, and seek him after the due order. We are not first to seek the Spirit, and then through him endeavor to gain an interest in Christ, but our first duty is to believe on the name of Christ, and then receive the Spirit from him who has it without measure, and who alone can impart to us this blessing. We must not first seek by repentance to please God, and obtain a right to Christ, but we must come at once to Christ, without waiting to repent, to prepare ourselves, or fulfill any condition of interest in him. We must THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 267 cast ourselves on the mercy of God in Christ as persons who are ungodly sinners, enemies, without strength. For it was for such that Christ died and such he justifies. Let us be well established in the great doctrine of the gospel, that all our salvation is of grace through the cross of Jesus Christ. It was by this doctrine that the Church was reformed in the days of Luther; and it is only by this doctrine that the Church will be revived. Be much engaged in prayer that God would pour out his Spirit, for till the Spirit is poured out from on high, nothing but thorns and briars will come up in the heritage of God. Let us look, not every one on his own things, but as we have opportunity let us do good, in spiritual as well as temporal things, to all men, and especially the household of faith. Let us as the bride of Christ be ready to unite with the Spirit of Christ in calling sinners to come unto him : '• The Spirit and the bride say, Come." Search out in your neighborhood such as are neglecting the great salvation, and seek by kindness, by persuasion, by your example and prayers, to bring them to seek after God, and to believe on his Son Jesus Christ. Be espe- cially attentive to the young. Seek first for those who are your flesh, first for all under your care, first for all that are near, and first for all that are afar off from the kingdom of God and his righteousness. Let the hearts of the fathers be turned to their children, and the hearts of the children to their fathers, lest the Lord come and smite the earth with a curse. Be- ware of resorting to any measures of your own invention, and trusting in them to carry on the work of God. He will bless nothing as a means to an end except that which he has appointed as a means to attain that end. His own ordinances will be without effect, if He do not accompany them by the power of His Spirit, and the Spirit will not be granted if we rely on or- dinances of divine appointment, much less if we employ ordinances which have no such authority. " In vain do ye worship me, teaching for doc- trine the commandments of men." In a word, be earnest in your prayers for your own never dying souls. Pray for the ministers of Christ, and thus lift up their hands, and encour- age their hearts. Pray that the Lord would heal the divisions of his Church, by bringing all to walk by the same rule and mind the same thing. Pray for the peace and prosperity of Jerusalem. Pray for the perishing heathen at home and abroad. Pray for the children of Abraham accord- ing to the flesh. Pray for the defeat of every scheme intended to advance the cause of iniquity and oppression. Pray for the young, and especially for tho^c in our institutions of learning who purpose to devote themselves to the ministry of the gospel. Pray for all classes of society, and for all nations. Pray that the word of God may run speedily, that a resistless power may attend it, and that the whole earth may be filled with his praise. u And now, brethren, we commend you to God, and to the word of his 268 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. grace, which is able to bnild you up, and give you an inheritance among all them that are sanctified " By order of the Convention. Thos Beveridge, 1 HM'Millan, \ Committee. J. B JoilN-TON, { Alex Young, J JOHN T. PRESSLY, Pres't of the Convention. A. W. Black, Secretary. RErORT OF SPECIAL COMMITTEE. Resolved, That it is the duty of this Convention lo give an expression to our Churches in regard to the specific measures which should be adopted by our sessions and members, so that a proper direction may be given to the present awakening on the subject of religion. The committee to whom was referred the above resolution, would re- spectfully report : That we have no new measures to recommend for the purpose of pro- moting the end contemplated in the above resolution. Such measures, we are confident, would utterly fail— excitement might be produced by them in the case of the uninformed — while disgust and dissatisfaction would be as certain to follow in the case of the opposite class ; and what would be worse than all, the Holy Spirit of God would remove far away from such measures. He has appointed the means of revival as well as of conversion— let us confine ourselves to these means. If He docs not work in connection with his own means, it is silly, to say the least, to expect that He will work in connection with man's mean?. If He does not work in connection with his own means, the fault is in us, and our duty is to remove this fault, in- stead of making haste from the Spirit's means, and thus proving that we have not faiih. But while we have no new measures to recommend, it may be proper for us to set about the use of God's measures and means with new life and vigor ; these are the faithful, direct preaching of the Word, earnest prayer to God, in the closet, in the family, and in the social meeting, the faithful exercise of discipline, the putting away of all sin, family visitation, and conversation with the old and the young, with Church members and the careless, as well as with one another, that we may thus correct what is amiss, and stir up one another in the work of the Lord. But are there any specific measures which can be recommended for the purpose of using these means with more efficiency than has hitherto ex- isted among us? This, as we understand the resolution is the point on which we are called upon to report. And let us say in reply to this in- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 269 quiry, that it is not possible for us to recommend any measures which would suit the circumstances of all— all that can be expected of us is, to give some general directions, and let the hearts of God's ministers and people once be revived — let them glow with new love to the Saviour and compassion for the ignorant and for them that are out of the way, and there will be no difficulty in finding out ways in which God's means can be brought to bear with more efficiency for the accomplishment of the grand ends for which these means have been appointed. For the purpose then, of furnishing some general directions, we would respectfully suggest the following, leaving it to Christian prudence and faithfulness, to modify them so as best to suit particular circumstances : 1. More pungency and directness in the preaching of the Word — bring- ing the truth to bear upon the conscience for the awakening of those that are at ease in Zion, as well as the conviction and conversion of the care- less. 2. That ministers of the gospel, in whatever way they may judge best, furnish the inquiring the opportunity to converse with them about the concerns of their souls and even go to them as well as to the careless, for the purpose of awakening in them a concern about their souls, and direct- ing them to the Saviour. 3. Extending the exercise of their ministry so as to reach the neglected — for this purpose going out into the highways and hedges, and compell- ing them to come in. 4. Opening our Churches for prayer through the week, where the cir- cumstances of our people, and the need of the community render such a measure expedient. 5. Establishing meetings for prayer and conference in as many localities as possible — urging upon our members and elders the duty of taking au active part in these meetings. G. And above all, because we need it more than anything else, stirring up the members of our Churches to exert a direct, personal influence in bringing the world to believe. For this end conversing with them, pray- ing wuli them whenever the opportunity offers; visiting them, not for the purpose of vain conversation, but with a like design as the woman of Sa- maria, urging their attendance upon the means of grace, and setting them the example of a strict, conscientious attendance upon the same: "Thus saith the Lord of hosts: It shall yet come to pass, that there shall come people, and the inhabitants of many cities : and the inhabitants of one city shall go to another, saying, Let us go speedily to pray before the Lord, and to seek the Lord of hosts; I will go also." (Zech. viii, 20, 21) Oh, what glorious times might we soon expect, if all who belong to our Churches only felt their obligation to exert such an influence as this upon 270 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. others! But, alas, what an amount of unemployed power exists in all our Churches. Brethren, the best measure we can take for bringing about a better state of things, is to devise ways and means for drawing forth this unemployed power. This an outpouring of the Spirit of God will ac- complish, and this also will be found one of the best ways of securing and prolonging his gracious visits. All of which is respectfully submitted to the Convention. Jamrs Rodgers, A. W. Black. Joseph Clokey. report of business committee. 1. Resolved, That we regard the Word of God as the standard of the Church's measure and perfection in doctrine, holiness, and practical opera- tion, and that in proportion as she falls below this standard, she needs the reviving of the Spirit of God. 2. Resolved. That the true idea of a revival, is the Church's elevation in doctrinal purity to the standard of the Word of God ; the exctement and invigorating of the life of God in the hearts of her own members; the in- creased activity and energy of her ministers and members in the direct work of Christ, and as the fruit of all this, the conversion and ingathering of sinners to the faith of the gospel. 3. Resolved, That we regard as indications of our need of a revival, the acknowledged fact that in all these respects we fall far below the measure of the Church's perfection. 4. Resolved, That as causes of the present deadness of the Church, we regard as not the least, the ineffective application of the means of grace ; our use of those means in a manner too mechanical, without faith, or ex- pectation of benefit flowing from them ; we have not looked after the fruit of our labor as the husbandman would for the precious fruits of the earth. 5. Resolved, That whilst there are many sins of which our people and land are guilty, and for which we should be humbled before God, we rc- ga-(l Sabbath desecration, intemperance, slavery and covetousness, as spe- cially impeding the progress of the gospel. 6. Resolved, That whilst there are many causes on account of which we feel a necessity for a revival of God's work among us, we would mention the following as making it specially imperative: 1st. The neglect of the Church to educate her children for God. 2d. The prevalent indifference to religion on the part of our (the Church's) children, and the recklessness of the youth of our land in general. 3d. The fearful indications that the can- dlestick may be removed from among us, and our land left without a living ministry. 4th. The fearful innovation which the world has made upon the Church. 5th. The condition of our missions, to the success of which a THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 271 revival of religion at home is indispensable. 6th. The unsettled and fluc- tuating state of our own congregations. 7th. The healing of the unhappy divisions in the Church. 7. Resolved, That in order to the promotion of a revival of religion, we regard a resort to any other than Scriptural means as only ruinous, and these means should be employed in such manner and frequency that one may not trench upon another, but all receive due attention. 8 Resolved, That the aspects of Divine providence toward the Church and world are of an awakening and encouraging character, and call for vigilance, faithfulness and increased activity on the part of God's people. 9. Resolved, That we are encouraged to hope for a revival of God's work aiiong us : 1st, From the goodness of God's Spirit; 2d, The many precious promises of God's word; 3d, The hearing and answering of prayer in past days when God has granted a little reviving to his people in their bondage, and again has poured upon them plenteous rain, whereby they have been refreshed; 4th, From the fact that the minds and hearts of God's people everywhere seem to be waking up to a sense of their need, and their duty in this matter. 10. Resolved, That in the employment of all the ordinances of Divine appointment, we should ever recognize the indispensable necessity of the Spirit's influence, and feel that except the Lord build the house, they labor in vain that build it; except the Lord keep the city, the watchman waketh but in vain. XII. — Convention of the Associate, Associate Re- formed, and Reformed Presbyterian Churches, held in Dr. Rogers's Church, Allegheny City, May 17, 18 and 19, 1858. monday evening. The Convention met at 1\ o'clock, and the exercises were introduced by Dr. Pressly, the President, by reading a part of Psalm xc, from the 13th verse to the end, which was sung by the congregation. He then read Psalm exxxii, and offered up prayer. On motion, Dr. Guthrie, Reformed Presbyterian (N. S.), who had been previously invited by the committee, delivered the fol- lowing address : 272 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. The history of the Church furnishes abundant evidences that she needs the continual outpouring of the Holy Spirit. For her consolation this is promised ; and Christ, her glorious and ex- alted head, in whom dwelleth the residue of the Spirit, never fails in the fulfillment of his promises. The Apostles, the fish- ermen of Galilee, required peculiar qualifications for the work to which they were called and consecrated : and on the day of Pentecost they received ample power from on high for the pur- pose of founding Christ's Spiritual Kingdom. The Mediator of the Covenant, though possessed of all power, does not, without the employment of human instrumentality, found and establish his Church. He chooses the weak and foolish things of this world to confound the wise ; and when the spiritual power vested in the ministry of reconciliation is exercised aright, he grants spiritual success. On the day succeeding the Pentecostal baptism, Peter was very successful in the exercise of his minis- try ; under the preaching of the Gospel, by this devoted ser- vant of Jesus Christ, three thousand souls were converted and added to the fellowship of the Church. At the feast of Pente- cost devout men from all parts of the Roman Empire were as- sembled in the city of Jerusalem, and on them the Spirit rested, through the preaching of Peter and his associates ; and they rejoicing in the salvation of the crucified but risen Redeemer, carried the glad tidings of salvation to the different provinces of the Roman empire. The apostles every where appear to have been very successful in winning souls to Christ, and extending the boundaries of Messiah's empire. They met often with stern and powerful opposition from the enemies of the cross ; but they were armed with the whole panoply of heaven, and thereby fitted for their spiritual warfare, notwithstanding the opposition of heathendom, and the often exhibited instability of converts to the Christian faith ; yet the apostolic age may be viewed as one of continual gospel success. Under the gospel ministrations of that century, the proud Pharisee, the opulent and haughty THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 273 Sadducee and the voluptuous Gentile bowed together at the same altar ; and forgetting and forsaking their former courses of sin and debasement worshiped in sincerity and truth the only liv- ing and true God. An unquenchable and burning zeal for the glory of God characterized ihe ministry and membership of the Church. They lived for the promotion of her interests as their chiefest joy ; and they were permitted to see the pleasure of the Lord prospering in the land of the Mediator. But every thing under the guardianship and control of human agency is unstable. The progressive action of the gospel, for the first 150 years, did not continue. The heavenly zeal of the apostles and their im- mediate successors abated in the third generation, or latter half of the second century. A gradual decline in heavenly- minded- ness was accompanied by speculative theories in theology, which mars the harmony of the Church till the present day. The end of the third century presents the Church in a lifeless and inac- tive condition. About its close, the mutterings of an awful storm of persecution were heard by the Church in the distance, and some excellent defenses of Christianity were written and presented to the chief rulers of the Roman empire, but all of no avail. The Church must be aroused from her slumbers, and shine as a light in a dark place. She had for more than a cen- tury neglected to improve her mission, and the end of her or- ganization, and she was then ripe for the correction of her worst enemies. Galleriaus and Dioclesian unsheathed the sword of persecution against the followers of the Lamb of God in the be- ginning of the fourth century ; and it was never put up until wrenched from the hands of these bloody monsters by the pow- erful grasp of Constantine the Great. During this terrible per- secution there were many noble testimonies for Christ exhibited; and which contributed greatly to place the claims of religion before the conqueror of the Pagan power of Rome. A state of prosperity, however, is hard to guide to a proper issue. Con- stantine cherished and established the Church, and placed her 274 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. in a condition of great worldly prosperity; but with her prosper- ity there was little evidence of real practical godliness. Forms of religion there were in abundance ; expensive and gorgeous palaces were erected for divine worship ; and heathen temples were demolished ; but the presence of Christ, which gives vital- ity to his own ordinances, was not there. Contentions, instead of brotherly love, moved the peace of her councils and brought reproach upon the profession of religion. For one thousand years after the apostles and their immedi- ate successors passed from the stage of life, history is silent re- specting any remarkable outpouring of the Spirit. In the fourth century Pagan Rome was destroyed; but from a corrupted Christianity another power equally hostile to the kingdom of Christ sprung up and persecuted the saints of God. According to the Constantinian establishment, a final appeal in all matters Ecclesiastic might be taken to the Emperor, and he might re- view and set aside any Ecclesiastic enactment, or add to it his sanction ; and then, in the latter case, it had the force of civil law. This power claimed and exercised by the successors of Constantine, was dangerous to the liberties of the Church; but it often restrained the grasping power of unprincipled ecclesiastic courts. In the seventh century, however, after a busy conflict between the civil authority administered at Constantinople and the ecclesiastic at Rome, the former yielded, and the Pope be- came the supreme dictator, and commanded the civil authority to execute his orders. This is the foundation of all Papal per- secutions ; while the Pope has not formally the power to perse- cute, yet by the established order of Popish countries, he may command the civil authority to be employed in doing his pleas- ure. Thus the saints of the most high are given into the hand of the Papacy for persecution and destruction. The exercise of this despotic power reduced Christians almost to silence respecting the thraldom and oppressions of the Roman hierarchy, and produced what is generally termed the dark THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 275 ages, when darkness covered the earth and gross darkness the people. But amidst this darkness there were Churches entirely separate and distinct from nominal Christendom, which shone as lights amidst the surrounding darkness. Among the sects of dissenters from and protestors against the usurpations of Papal supremacy were the Waldenses. They experienced a powerful revival of religion, commencing in the year 11 GO, and which lasted for about three centuries. In the Revelation xiv, G, this revival is predicted: "And I saw another angel fly in the midst of heaven having the ever- lasting gospel to preach to them that dwell on the earth and to every nation and kindred, and tongue and people." The lan- guage employed is descriptive of the Waldensian revival. Angel is a term of office, and represents the collective body of messengers from God to his people — pious ministers of the gospel. Flying is the symbol of speed. Heaven is the Church. The everlasting gospel is the message which the angels bear to fallen man ; to wake him from his spiritual slumbers and induce him to engage in the active service of the Church. During the dark ages vital godliness had almost disappeared, and instead of worshiping the true God, images and dead men's bones became objects of veneration. From this condition of spiritual deadness Christ determined to arouse the inhabitants of the Roman Latin earth, and he chose the obscure dwellers in the valleys of Piedmont as his honored instruments in the work. The design of that revival was to propagate the gospel in its pu- rity and power, in opposition to the idolatry and heresy of Papal Rome. For this purpose, in an astonishng manner he poured out his Spirit upon his persecuted witnesses, to qualify them for the great work of extending the knowledge of Jesus Christ to those sitting in darkness and the shadow of death. In this great and glorious work, the Church's Head raised up many able and worthy co-workers with the Waldensian Church. And among these Peter Waldo, an opulent merchant of Lyons, 276 • THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. in France, stands preeminent. Having his lips touched with a live coal from the heavenly altar, he forsook his merchandise, and entered upon active service in the Church, as a herald of the cross. By his instrumentality the Bible was translated into the living language of his native country — many Churches of great moral power were formed in France ; and these Churches became one with the ancient Churches of Piedmont. By their combined energies, the gospel, in its power and purity, says Archbishop Usher, "was preached in every kingdom of the Beast." The first thing accomplished in this first revival, in the dominion of the Bestial power, was the union of those to be employed in the work. The French converts and the Piedmontese cooperated in car- rying the gospel to the different kingdoms of Continental and Insular Europe. They were true and earnest Christians, and the Lord, in a remarkable manner, heard and answered all their prayers for the advancement of his own kingdom, interests and glory. But the beast into whose power the saints were delivered, was angry, and gnashed his teeth with rage at the unexpected multi- plication of the witnesses of Christ. The inquisition was estab- lished — the warriors of Rome in every country where the gos- pel prevailed were enrolled — and every diabolical art for the suppression of a pure gospel and a true godliness, was resorted to, in obedience to the commands of the chief Pontiff. The per- secutions — the indiscriminate slaughter which followed this first revival from Popish superstition, are too awful for the human heart to contemplate, without uttering an involuntary ejaculation, how long, Lord God Almighty, till thou avenge the blood of thy dear saints ? The second revival is described in the prophetic visions of John, Rev. xiv, 8 : " And then followed another angel, saying, Babylon is fallen ; is fallen, that great city, because she made all nations drink of the wine of the wrath of her fornication." THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 277 This revival is the reformation of the sixteenth century. It included all contained in the first, and in addition announced the fall of Babylon — Rome Papal. As the angel of the preceding revival — though the first of the three introduced in this connection is called another to distin- guish him from the Angel of the Covenant — the Lamb at the head of the 144,000; so is the angel of this revival called an- other to distinguish him from the first. The principal object of the excitement which was given to Christendom by the ministry of the Waldenses, was simply the restoration of purity in doc- trine and worship, and of piety in the room of lifeless forms and superstitious ceremonies. The work of this second angel is an additional revival, including all the attainments of the first, and aiming at the actual overthrow of the Church of Rome. The former predicted judgments on account of the rejection of Christ as king and lawgiver in Zion. This predicts the degradation of the haughty foe — Babylon is fallen, is fallen. The Protestant Reformation, as one great and grand event, is thus characterized. It is the second general revival of true re- ligion. It effectually degraded the Roman superstition, and gave an excitement to talents and piety which was felt through- out the world. The work commenced under the ministry of Zuinglius, in Switzerland, in the year 15 10. This illustrious reformer communicated to his people the idea of a general revi- val of religion, while Luther had advanced no farther in his op- position to Rome than the sale of indulgences. The names, however, of Luther and Calvin, are sufficiently celebrated in history ; and the magnitude of the work which they, their coad- jutators and successors accomplished, is universally acknowl- edged. The Churches of the reformation since their organization and establishment, have in many localities experienced times of re- vival or refreshment from the presence of the Lord. Those denominated Lutheran, however, do not appear to have experi- 278 TIIE CHURCH MEMORIAL. enccd any general or national outpouring of the Spirit in an extra- ordinary manner; while the Churches called Reformed have, in many places, and at different times, experienced the reviving influences of the Holy Spirit. The Reformed Churches of France and Britain have repeat- edly enjoyed precious opportunities of reviving; and on the other hand, they have suffered much for the name of Christ. The year 1G38 is memorable in the annals of Scottish history as one of peaceful revivals. The National Covenant of Scot- land entered into in that year under the frowns and threats of a treacherous monarch, is evidence of the nation's and Church's dependence upon the Lord of Hosts. " The time of the Protect- orate of Oliver Cromwell," says Kirkton, " was a period of great revival in Scotland in true practical godliness." The times of reviving in the days of the sainted Livingstone, under whose ministry at once in the kirk of Shotts five hundred souls were born unto God, an evidence that God heard and answered the prayers of his own people. The revival which commenced under the ministry of the pious and sainted M'Chene, and which terminated in the disruption of the Established Church of Scotland, in 1843, was hallowed in its inception, and is glorious in its results. The Protestant Churches of the Reformation, whether Luthe ran or reformed, have, generally, however, declined from their first love to Christ. Religion languished, and corruption abounds. The Spirit of God is withholden, because he is not sought in the exercise of a true Abrahamic faith. We are barren under the hidings of his countenance. The threatened forsaking of an- cient Israel, " I will go and return to my place, till they ac- knowledge their offense, and seek my face : in their affliction, they will seek me early," (Hosea viii, 15,) is experienced by us. The intellectual and religious training of the present age is not sanctified generally in the conversion of youth. The reason is, it is not accompanied with the prayer of faith. The Churches THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 279 need a general revival, and a third is predicted, Rev. xiv, 9-13: " And the third angel followed them, saying with a loud voice, if any man worship the beast and his image, and renew his mark in his forehead or in his hand," etc. This revival is future, and immediately precedes the vintage. It includes all the attain- ments of the first and second, and in addition thereto its power will be executed for the overthrow of every form of iniquity. Whatever is contrary to the power of godliness it will be the work of this great reform to overthrow. Mohammedanism and Popery, Sabbath breaking and slavery, drunkenness and gamb- ling, lying and profanation of the name of God, heresy and error in things divine, the substitution of human authority for regu- lating the conscience instead of divine law, and the neglect of the Bible, in giving undue weight to theological dogmas under the names of creeds and testimonies, shall all, with their kindred evils, be, during this third and last revival of religion, tried at the bar of unerring truth, and receive condemnation of the wit- nesses of Christ. Instrumentally, the redemption of the world from its moral degradation belongs to the Church ; and in order that she may be prepared for the great work of the world's evan- gelization, she must receive from on high a power which she does not at present possess. But blessed be God, that power is promised, and the time of its bestowment. The Pentecostal baptism is near at hand, and the present excitement in Christen- dom is doubtless its prelude. The time for temporizing is past. United by one spirit, Chris- tians everywhere are about to feel that their power is from God alone. They will act in concert, and become terrible to their enemies as an army with banners. The power of divine truth, wherever felt and experienced, will unite the people of God in this last religious excitement, to prepare them for a powerful onset upon the Prince of Darkness. They will be united, not only in spirit, but also by their brotherly covenant, in the bonds of ecclesiastic communion. By the grace of God they will for- 280 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. get sectarian names, but holding fast to the truth as witnesses for Christ. Judah shall not vex Ephraim, nor shall Ephraim be any longer a stumbling block to the cause of God. Such will be the characteristics of the revival of religion immediately before the vintage or third woe, which shall destroy the great anti-Christian systems. Brethren, your religious Convention here and now, is auspi- cious. Resting entirely upon the divine promise, if you seek a true revival of religion that its fruits may redound to the glory of God, it shall be given. But if you come before God with no more exalted aims than to seek a revival so that sectarian purposes may be promoted, your Father in heaven will disap- point such aspirations. Building up sects is not the primary work of the Church at the present day. The bringing together into the bands of holy fellowship the people of God, who are already united in spirit and truth, and thereby remove a stum- bling block out of the way of the men of the world, and pre- pare her for acting with more zeal and energy in the cause of God, is the first and most appropriate business of Zion's child- ren. The opposers of religion are confronted by your assem- bling together. They have often asserted that it was the want of Christianity that kept different sects from cooperating with one another. But in the true spirit of Christianity, I trust you have conquered your prejudices, and obeyed the injunctions of your exalted Redeemer, saying one to another, " Come and let us pray before the Lord in Jerusalem." The object of your revival, as well as the means to obtain the outpouring of the Spirit, must not be overlooked. I trust you will not calculate upon simply praying together, exhorting one another, and " speaking to yourselves in Psalms and Hymns and spiritual songs, singing and making melody in your heart to the Lord," (Eph. v, 19,) but as the result of such heavenly exer- cises, you will press upon your respective Synods the unspeak- able duty of taking the lead in healing the wounds of the THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 281 daughters of Zion. Such conclusions would be early and im- perishable fruit — would be worthy of yourselves, and the occa- sion of your assembling together. A revival of religion is a proper time and occasion for union in the Church. She must, and soon will be, one. The An "-el of the Covenant, who stands on Mount Zion with the one hundred and forty-four thousand, is about to break open the last seal of his eternal purposes. The seventh trumpeter is about to receive orders from the Mediator of the Covenant to sound the alarm of war, in collecting the hosts of despotism and freedom to the field of deadly conflict. The seventh angel, with his vial full of the wrath of God, stands ready to pour out its contents into the air. But these judgments do not directly promote the glory of God ; and before the vial is poured upon the wicked world, Christ's witnesses will be united — sanctified for their work and labors of love, and act a most important part in destroying the powers of darkness, and introducing the millenial reign of Christ over all the earth. O Lord, revive thy work in the midst of the years ; in the midst of the years, make known ; in wrath remember mercy. Devotional exercises resumed by singing Psalm Ixxxv, 5-8. Prayer was then offered by the Rev. David Blair, Associate Presbyterian. Sung Psalm cii, 13-17. Prayer by the Rev. Dr. Douglas, Reformed Presbyterian, (N. S.) Dr. Pressly then said : This is the confidence we have ; if we ask anything agreeable to His will, he will hear us. What, friends, is the blessing we have assembled to ask ? It is that God would pour out His Spirit upon us, and revive His work in our hearts. Now is not this agreeable to His will ? He has said, " I will pour water upon him that is thirsty, as floods upon the dry ground." " I will pour out my Spirit upon your seed, and my blessing upon your offspring." Here are the precious promises in which he has made known his will, and if we ask for those which are agreeable to his will in the exercise of faith, 19 282 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. he will graciously hear us. Then let us endeavor to look to him in the exercise of faith, believing that he is able and wil- ling to grant what we desire. Sung Psalm xlvi, 1-5. Prayer by Rev. Mr. Clokey. It was on motion resolved that when the Convention adjourn, it adjourn to meet at nine o'clock to-morrow morning. On motion of Dr. Rodgers a committee was appointed to pre- pare business for the Convention. In accordance with this mo- tion, the President appointed Revs. D. II. A. M'Lean, John M'Millan, J. G. Brown, Dr. Rodgers, Dr. Douglas and J. Clokey. Convention adjourned. Benediction pronounced by Dr> Rodgers. SECOND DAY. Convention assembled at 9 o'clock A. M., Dr. Pressly in the chair. Opened by singing Psalm c. Dr. Pressly read the xl chapter of Isaiah. Prayer by the Rev. James Brown. Sung the cxxxviii Psalm from third verse. Prayer by the Rev. Mr. Peacock. Sung cxxii Plalm, beginning at the sixth verse. Rev. Mr. Stewart, of the Reformed Presbyterian Church, led in prayer. The Rev. D. II. A. M'Lean of the Associate Church, chair- man of the committee to prepare the order of business, reported adversely to any formal organization by the election of a Board of officers, and in favor of the presiding officer at the close of each session calling on some other to preside at the next meet- ing. They thought this arrangement would be in harmony with the object of our meeting — that the meeting was for prayer, and not for the transaction of business. They reported the topics contained in the call as all before the Convention, but recommended the omission of three of them, the 5th, 6th and 11th, as the first two of these had been largely discussed in the Convention at Xenia, and the last in the open- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 283 ing address of last night. The following is the list of topics presented : 1st. The true idea of a revival of religion. 2d. The indications that the Church needs a revival of re- ligion. 3d. The encouragement to hope for a revival of religion. 4th. The causes of the present deadness of the Church. 5th. The sins of the day as impeding the progress of religion ; Sabbath desecration ; worldly -mindedness ; slavery. 6th. The means of promoting a revival of religion. 7th. The necessity of the influences of the Holy Spirit in promoting a revival. 8th. Evidences of a true revival. 9th. Revival of religion essential to the success of the work of missions. 10th. The aspects of Divine Providence towards the Church and the world. 11 th. The history of revivals. 12th. The preaching of the gospel as connected with the re- vival of religion. 13th. The influence of a true revival on the Church and the world — on literary and political institutions and, on the press. The committee recommended that the second be now taken up for discussion. They also reported that no person was spe- cially engaged to speak on any topic at the present meeting, but they requested that as Dr. Pressly was engaged to speak on the twelfth topic at the late Convention, he be requested to favor this Convention with his address, which there was no opportu- nity then to hear. Also, that all the ordinary exercises be lim- ited each to ten minutes. This report was adopted. On the recommendation of the business committee the second topic was taken up, and is as follows : " The indications that the Church needs a revival of religion." Before proceeding to re- 284 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. mark on this question, it was suggested that the Convention en- gage in prayer. Sung Psalm cxxiii, 0, thou that dwellest, etc. Mr. Stuart said he had no formal address to make. The in- dications that the Church needs a revival of religion, are the thoughts of a world lying in wickedness, and millions in our own Christian land unconverted. This thought almost crushes us. In his own congregation what he looked upon as a subject of deep interest, was a revival of religion — a deep desire to con- vert the world. It was his experience and that of every pastor present, that in the workings of their own congregation, a few had done the work. How few of the members could be got to attend the weekly prayer meeting ; a few attend to the financial work generally. In a true revival, every individual member will feel that he must rest alone on God. Those who would not work, thought that others should work who had more time. We need God's Spirit poured out as it was on the day of Pente- cost. If we had our own Church revived in this manner, the world could not withstand it. We have enough people in our Churches to convert the world in ten years. Let us lift our voices Knd prayers, and beseech the Lord before we leave this house, that he would come into our hearts and lives, and all our members, and then God's Church would be filled on the Sab- baths. Then there would be no lack of money, no lack of men to carry on His work. Rev. Mr. Clokey said the neglected condition of the temple in the days of Haggai, was an evidence that the Church needed to be awakened to a sense of her obligation to the necessities of God's Church. We should have our attention called more to the spiritualities of the Church. The fact that the attention of God's people has been directed to their own worldly prosperity, gives evidence that the Church is in a condition requiring a re- vival of religion. He said we were prepared to adopt the Ian- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 285 guage of the Psalmist, when speaking of Jerusalem, " Let my tongue cleave to the roof of my mouth if I forget thee, my chief joy." He asked what could more clearly indicate our mistake than to make the concerns of the body of more importance than the interests of the soul. The Church has given evidence that she needs a revival of religion, from the fact that she had been so low in all that concerns the spiritual interests of God's Church in the world. Rev. A. Murray said he did not come forward with a view to enlighten the brethren on this subject, but just because he felt a deep interest in the object for which they had assembled. He said the remarks just made were proper. One evidence was want of knowledge of Divine truth, and a want of relish for the Christian truths of the gospel. The great means of sanctifica- tion are what is wanted. He said for them to look to this, and at the state of the Church at the present day. Does it show- Christ and the glories of salvation, or are the sermons got up to display the rhetoric of the preacher ? What is the great object of many of the ministers of the gospel? Is it not to amass wealth — to live at ease? Again, there is a want of the search- ing into the prophecies concerning the Church which are to be fulfilled in the history of the Church. We look on many of these prophecies as sealed ; we must be imbued, before we can be revived, with a knowledge of the Divine word. Dr. Pressly said he thought this was one of the topics which deserved special attention, for unless we are deeply impressed with a sense of the necessity of these things, we are not likely to seek for it in such a way as to obtain it. It is, therefore, im- portant that we should know the indications of the necessity of a revival, and that we should be deeply concerned to remove those evils which exist and indicate its necessity. And in addi- tion to those things to which members have already adverted, he would remark that there are two things which seemed to him in a particular manner to indicate the necessity of the revival of 286 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. the power of godliness in the hearts both of the ministry and of the people. The circumstances to which he referred, in so far as the min- istry is concerned, was the little interest they took in preaching the gospel. lie thought this might seem a strange remark, that men whose business it is to preach the gospel, should yet mani- fest but little interest in preaching that gospel. Now how is this manifested ? By the backwardness to embrace the many opportunities which present themselves to them to preach the gospel to the poor and perishing. How few are there of our young men who think of anything but to supply their oavii pul- pits on the Sabbath. How does this compare with our fathers, many of whom preached every day in the week ? How many of them when traveling stop at public houses and are not known to be ministers of the gospel ? They do not let their light shine wherever they go. They do not evidence that they are en- gaged in performing the work of their Master. We need a re- vival of the power of religion in our own hearts, that we may preach Christ in earnest; and if we would do this, the salutary effects would soon be visible among the people. Among the people there is an indication of a necessity, a great necessity of a revival, which results from this: the neglect on the part of the parents to instruct their children in the truths of the gospel. How many members are there in all our congregations who re- ally do not know whether their children are acquainted with their Catechisms or not ? How many fathers, when asked does a child know its Catechism, will ask mother if it does ? He said his father examined every member of the family, servants included, every Sabbath evening, in the Shorter Catechism — that admirable form of sound words. If all our children were carefully instructed and made familiar with it, there would be fewer examples of going away from the faith once delivered to the saints. These influences indicate a necessity of a revival of religion. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 287 Rev. J. Niblock, of the Associate Reformed Church, said : There are a variety of reasons why the Church ought to be re- vived. Some evidences which strike my mind are the follow- ing. My brethren, who are acquainted with me, know that I am not in the habit of making addresses ; but I may remark of this work, that I know I need to be revived in my own heart. I know it, that there is not a minister in the house but believes without a doubt that the Church of Christ at large needs to be revived, especially the Churches that are represented in this meeting. In the first place, it is manifest that there is very lit- tle vital faith among us. We give very little evidence of pos- sessing that faith that purifies the heart, that works by love, that overcomes the world. Why, we are babes instead of being men. Instead of rising in our dignity as ministers of Jesus Christ, we manifest to the world that we are babes. I mention this as one reason why our Churches need to be revived. Our ministers, our elders, all our members, need to be revived. We must be revived before we can carry out the great principle of religion. But another reason is, the little vitality of love in our hearts. There is a lack of love manifested by ministers, by members of the Church of Christ generally. The love of many among us is waxing cold. Is there a brother here now, that will stand up and say, that we come up to the measure of gos- pel love ? He lacks love, the love of Jesus Christ, as it came into the world 1800 years ago ; came and removed the barriers that stood in our way to glory. Another reason : we want zeal. Our ministers, and elders, and people, want zeal. Where is our zeal when compared with the zeal of the apostles and reformers of old, and with our fathers ? Nearly forty years ago they rode fifty miles to supply a small vacancy. They would endure the summer's heat and winter's cold. They loved the Church and the truth. We have lost our Christian zeal. But there is an- other reason. We are leavened with worldly-mindedness. Mam- mon has got into the Church, and is working like leaven into 288 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. the hearts of all the members of the Church. There is no use of talking about the lack of members ; the ministers have been loving the leaven of mammon, and seeking their own things and not the things of Christ. There is another reason why the Church of Christ ought to be revived. We love the world more than we love Christ. If any man love the world, the love of the Father is not in him. We must carry out the great prin- ciples of the Bible. Talk about the orthodoxy of the head ! Let us have the orthodoxy of the heart. Point me to a man in any department of life, elders or ministers, who are now found carrying out the great regenerating operations of the Bible. Many of us who should be lights are dark-lanterns. It is nec- essary for the Holy Spirit to regenerate and revive us, so that our souls be stirred up to magnify the Lord. Dr. Rodgers was called on, and said he had spoken on this subject before, about an hour and a half, at the Convention at Xenia, and had said on that subject nearly everything he could say. He liked the way in which the remarks had been taken, and said this was the way we must speak and feel if our meet- ing would come to anything — not mere empty talk. This is the way we must do — we must begin at home. There has been a great mistake on the subject of revivals. We have talked, and properly, too, on the circle out of the Church, and the heathen at home, and we have been preaching on the necessity of a re- vival among the heathen, but we have forgotten that we need a revival at home. It is useless talking in this way unless we have this particular object in view — a revival where it is so much needed — among the ministry. Look at the ministry in the apostolic age. He said that he never read " James's Earnest Ministry " without shedding tears. Let us keep this in view in all our prayers — it is the ministers of Christ's gospel who need a revival. It is from us that the effect must go. Let us all look up to God for His Spirit, that we may feel more deeply than we have ever felt, the necessity of ministers being revived. This is THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 289 beginning at home. He said that there was in the South, in Tennessee, a people who had been left destitute, without a minis- ter, in the midst of a people in favor of slavery, and who had held firmly to their views — anti-slavery. They had come from year to year asking for persons to preach the gospel. How have we treated this people ? We have about sixty ministers without charge on our list now ; take superannuated men off, some forty or forty -five, who have solemnly given themselves to the work of the ministry. Here is a place very needy. What is the re- sult ? We have to go back from one to another, and very sel- dom can get one to go there. What is the reason? Our young men wish a settlement. There are promising places, and they wish to be settled in such places. He said this fact presented itself prominently to his mind from year to year. Then let us feel that we need the reviving influence of the Spirit of God, and oh, what a blessed meeting will this be, and we will go forth from it with a deeper sense than we ever felt of the neces- sity of a revival of the Spirit of God in our hearts. Rev. J. Law would correct Dr. Rodgers in one particular. When Prof. Carson left this people he said, " Oh, who will take care of the poor flock in the wilderness." He knew that people, and had spent six years with them since that prayer was offered in 1834, and proposed going there this summer. Rev. James Prestley said the need of a revival of religion will be ascertained by a comparison of the state of the Church in need of it with the vast good that is accomplished by it. A re- vival of religion, wherever it occurs, in any part of the world, is evidence that a lower state of religion has heretofore existed there. It also supposes the existence of true religion ; for where there is no true religion there cannot be a revival. You cannot revive that which does not already exist. A revival of true re- ligion comes from the Spirit of God alone. For the attainment of the gracious influences of the Holy Spirit prayer is the proper means. " If ye, being evil, know how to give good gifts 290 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. unto your children, how much more will your heavenly Father give the Holy Spirit to tJicm that ask him" But this prayer will be in vain, and the end sought will not be attained unless God pour out his Holy Spirit. When God does pour out his Spirit, then his people are revived ; prayer is revived ; the word of God is perused with new zeal ; all their graces are revived ; "They dwell under his shadow;" " He is as the dew unto Is- rael;" "They revive as the corn, they grow as the vine;" " They cast forth their roots as Lebanon." The evidence of a revival of religion is to be found in the at- tainments which the people of God make in the graces of the Holy Spirit. Wherever grace abides not in the heart of the individual or Church, there is a need for the reviving influences of the Spirit of God. The apostle tells us what these graces are : " The fruit of the Spirit is love, joy, peace, long suffering, gentleness, goodness, faith, meekness, temperance." Whenever these influences become weak none doubt that a reviving from the presence of the Lord is needed ; but not only so, a constant reviving influence is also needed to cause them to increase and grow. I agree in general with what has been said on this subject by those who have preceded me. I would only add that I fear that individuals, and Churches too, are sometimes prone to rely too much on the profession which they make, and are too little careful to possess the true religion which they profess. My mind has been directed to this phase of the subject by a recent study of one of the parables of our Lord. "A certain man." said he, " had two sons, and he came to the first and said, Son, go work to-day in my vineyard ; and he answered and said, I will not, but afterward he repented and went. And he came to the second and said likewise ; and he answered and said, I go, sir, and went not. Whether of the twain did the will of his father?" The Saviour evidently intends by the former to rep- resent the publicans and harlots, of whom he speaks immediately THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 291 after ; and by the latter the chief priests and pharisees to whom he was addressing himself at the time. Our Lord says the pub- licans and harlots would go into the kingdom of heaven before them. The difficulty with these chief priests and pharisees was this, that while they made a very great profession, and had an external show of great piety, they were not careful to possess that which they professed. Whereas the publicans and harlots, having no external profession to trust in, were more likely to repent of their sins, as they did in the days of John, and go into the kingdom before the others. Now none will deny that a confession of Christ, by a public profession, is the duty of every believing child of God ; but it is equally undeniable that such a profession of religion may be made ; that the person may stand square on the platform of orthodoxy, just like these chief priests and pharisees, and, like them, not possess the root, alone the growing, flourishing plant of true religion. I have not one word to say against orthodoxy — not one ; but it would be a sad thing to profess without the possession of true religion — to trust in the shadow while we are destitute of the substance. Is there not reason to fear that many are thus trusting — that think be- cause they are in an orthodox Church they are safe? We need a revival of true religion to guard us all from such a pernicious error. Mr. Win. Getty said he thought that the indications were rather strong that we needed a revival. He thought that when the ministry began to awake up and feel the necessity of a revi- val, the elders would warm up, and then it would come to the people, and all would take fire. He would not say a word against the ministers who had condemned this movement. The time has come when they will have that fire which will extend to ministers, elders and people. He said the work, left to a few faithful ministers and a few elders, can be revived in the Church. Where there is an elder who is willing and ready to work he will gather around him a 292 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. part of the lay members who will do any work. Those are be- ino- reached now who have never been reached before. He hoped they would go on and discuss this matter, so that they would feel, and resolve to work as they had never worked be- fore. In our families the children are coming out and seeking the Saviour and the parents do not know it. Let ministers, then, speak to the young. He thought this was where there had been a great failure. Let the elders speak to the young men and the young women, and not wait till the world gets hold of them, or you will lose them forever. This will secure the lire and zeal to the Church that we want. Rev. Mr. M'Neill said : We must feel our need of a revival before we can have it. God has promised his Holy Spirit to those who ask him, and those who feel their need of him and ask in faith. He said we had been too much engaged in looking at those in whom he had evidently poured out his Spirit. But now when God has been marching through the land, so that none can mistake his influence, we are waking up. We should begin at home, in our own hearts. He asked them if they did not feel the need of a revival of religion. A lack of faith, as a moving principle, is manifested every where. If we believe the principles we profess, and believe in the realities of a future world, with all its glories, how could we mingle with sinners from day to day and not speak to them on the subject of the eternal welfare of their souls. If you saw your neighbor lying senseless in a snow-pile, would you not feel yourself guilty if you did not try and rescue him ? And why ? Because you believe it. But here are realities infinitely more important than this, and vet we mingle with sinners from day to day, with whom we have been in intercourse for a long time, yet we have never brought this subject of the interest of the soul particu- larly and specially before them, and the necessity of their com- ing to Christ for salvation. Rev. J. G. Brown felt constrained, by the circumstances in THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 293 which he was placed, to offer a few thoughts on this subject. God in his providence had prevented him from being present at Xenia, but he blessed God that he had been permitted to be present this day. He said, Ave have talked about the subject among ourselves — for reformation, like charity, must begin at home. He said he took the opportunity, although a young man, as he might not have the opportunity to speak again. I feel one indication of our need of a revival in our sectarianism. Our adherence to truth is not for the love of the truth ; our love to party is for party sake ; our love to denomination is for denomination sake, not for the sake of Jesus Christ and perish- ing man. Oh, if there is a reason why we as different battalions in the army of Christ, should not know our true position upon the walls of Zion, it is because the shibboleth of party is heard so long and so loud in the camp of the faithful ; it is because sectarianism has reared its walls even in the temple gate. This is one indication of the Church's need of a revival. Christ never forgot in all his ministry that he had other sheep in another fold. Take the example of the woman at Jacob's well in Sychar. That woman knew all the distinctions between Jew and Samaritan. He asked her to give him water to drink, when she said, " How is it that thou being a Jew, askest drink of me, which am a woman of Samaria ?" But Christ would not suffer this to pass without a rebuke, and said, "If thou knewest the gift of God, and who it is that saith unto thee, give me to drink, thou wouldst have asked of him, and he would have given thee living water." Oh, my brethren, if we had asked, he would have given us living water, water springing up to everlasting life. We are called to encounter Infidelity, Popery, etc. Mr. Brown spoke at some length of the army of Christ under different leaders, and they must all work in harmony. He said they must all seek the glory of Christ as their first object. Mr. John Finney, ruling elder, said he was encouraged when 294 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. the ministers of Christ arose in such a meeting and acknowl- edged they were babes. Now when the}' acknowledged they were babes, here was the blessed milk of the word for babes. If they are babes, and desire the sincere milk, there will be a desire to grow in all the graces of children of Christ Jesus. Sung Psalm lxviii, 7-9, Prayer by Rev. Waddle. Dr. Rodgers moved that the brethren — ministers, elders and members — in the vicinity, of other evangelical denominations, be invited to sit and take part in the proceedings, which was agreed to. Ilex. B. H. Pollock suggested that the Convention remember in its prayers the brethren in Damascus, India, and elsewhere, who are absent as missionaries. Convention adjourned till 2 o'clock P. M. Rev. J. S. Easton was appointed to preside in the afternoon. Benediction by Dr. Rodgers. AFTERNOON SESSION. Rev. J. S. Easton, presiding. Sung Psalm lxxxv, Gth verse, to the end. Read lxii chapter of Isaiah, and prayer by Rev. S. M'Arthur. Sung Psalm lxxii, 15th verse, to the end. Prayer by President Wallace, of Monmouth. Sung Psalm lxvii. Prayer by Rev. G. II. M'Millan. A motion was made to pass over the topic which was under discussion this morning, which, after a few remarks, was agreed to. Took up the fourth item, "The causes of the present deadness of the Church." Mr. Waddle said : The causes of the present deadness of the Church was a topic which takes it for granted that the Churches are, to a lamentable extent, dead — spiritually dead. The question then is, What causes it ? We may arrive at one cause, and that is sin. This is the cause, he thought, of the spiritual deadness of Zion. Many of the causes mentioned in THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 295 the former part of the day as evidences that the Church needs a revival, are evidences or causes of the existing deadness of the Church. He thought that one reason was, that some persons of religious and sound ecclesiastical bodies apologize for sin. Soon after our first parents violated the covenant of works, they apol- ogized for sin. When God came into the garden to walk in the cool of the day, he called Adam and Eve, but they were hid, for they were ashamed. God put the question to Adam, " What hast thou done?" He commenced by apologizing, and said, " The woman which thou gavest me, gave me of the fruit." The woman was then asked, and she said, " The serpent beguiled me, and I did eat." There have always been those who at- tribute evil as well as good to God, but the apostle corrected the error. There are those in our day who attempt to apologize for sins on a large scale : the apologies which parents make for not assembling with their families around the family altar, and the apologies which ministers make for not preaching the word as they should. But let us have done with our apologies, and do our duty to God and our fellow-man according to the circum- stances in which w r e are placed. Dr. Beveridge said he did not intend to say much on this subject. One general thing he thought might suggest several causes for this deadness. We are represented as in a dead state. We inquire what are the causes of death in the natural world. One thing is imprudence in regard to food. So in the spiritual world, one of the causes is the bad food. He said we had no such sermons now as we had in the days of the Erskines. This was one of the bad signs of the times. He thought there was a great degeneracy from the sermons of a former age. Compare such sermons as you see published now with those of a former day. How little do we hear of our sins in modern sermons, compared with what we have in sermons of a former age ! How little of Christ crucified, how little of the Marrow doctrines, and how very little of the very grant of Christ to 296 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. sinners ! This is even considered in many quarters as a great disparagement to preachers and publishers, that so much is taken from the Scriptures. He said he thought there was a good deal of resorting to many means other than divine. He said they had Prima Donnas and all other kinds of donnas, to conduct the singing. The building of fine churches, and other things of that kind. He did not intend to speak, but only to make a suggestion. Rev. A. M. Stuart said he was much pleased in the former part of the day in discussing this question, for the second topic and the fourth were virtually the same. One cause, among others, was the fact that there were so few young men coming forward to preach the gospel. In carrying out the great mission of Jesus Christ, we have made a practical failure. Our mode of Church extension in this land is, we have a number of mem- bers of our Churches who go far away, and send a petition for preaching, and it may be that they get it after a long time. We often talk of sending missionaries to the heathen. We have a missionary among the heathen for as many people as we have in Pennsylvania, one for Ohio, and one for New York. We ought to be ready, and we are able to send away and support ten times as many, to spread the gospel. What are we doing ? There are hundreds of young men in our congregations, but how many of them are brought forward to preach the gospel ? Perhaps not one ! They dribble into God's treasury fifty or one hundred dollars for missionary operations, but not one soul for God's ministry. This is surely one reason why we need a revival. He believed that God's Church was able to carry out in ten years almost practically the command : " preach the gos- pel to every creature." He believed all God's people in this land could support one hundred thousand young men to preach the gospel for ten years, and pay each of them six hundred dol- lars per year. He had penciled this out, and knew it. He said, we need a great baptism of God's Holy Spirit. When we THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 297 get the spirit of carrying out the command to preach the gospel to every creature, will it make us any poorer, will it make any leanness at home ? O never, never. Those who do this, are always more prosperous. The more good is done abroad, the more good is done at home. We must get more of God's Spirit, and then we will be revived at home. Rev. David Blair's impression was, that the Church's sin was the mind being withdrawn from the great principles of salvation. No man can tell the region, scarcely, where some doctrines came from, nor what they are. The great doctrines of salvation are plain matters. What we have has been from the beginning; what we have seen and what our hands have handled of the World of Life. The Saviour has answered all just expectations ; he has gone to heaven to finish the work his Father gave him to do. Caviling at the small matters which divide the Church does nothing to withdraw the mind from them. Devotional exercises resumed by singing Psalm xli, 1-5. Prayer by Rev. Mr. Sproull. Resumed the consideration of the topic under discussion. Rev. Dr. Black said he thought one reason was the neglect of the subject of discipline. He thought carelessness, which be- longed to the Churches in this matter, was a cause of the dead- ness. It is regarded as one of the reasons of the progress of a body which we do not consider very orthodox, that they are strict in their discipline. He referred to the Methodist Episco- pal Church. He spoke of God's people as an army, and asked, what is an army ? and is not God's people an army ? No mat- ter how just the cause of an army unless controlled by a guiding spirit, or some one they will follow, it would not be successful. Are they the army of God unless they feel that God Almighty requires of them to conform their actions to the requirements of his holy and just laws? He thought they had become sadly cold in taking care of the conduct of their people. He only mentioned this as one of the causes of the deadness in the Church. 20 298 . THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. He hoped that brethren, if they desired to see the cause of God prospering in his house, would revive the Bible institution of discipline in his house. Rev. J. P. Smart said : Mr. Chairman — The subject directly before us is, What are the causes of the present deadness of the Church? As our ob- ject is mutual profit, it may be as well for us sometimes, at least, to give utterance to our feelings and the thoughts and exercises of our own minds without restriction to the precise topic under consideration. There is a fact which is the basis of the ques- tion before you, which, I fear, has not been sufficiently weighed, or at least has not sufficiently affected us. That is, are we in a really dead or dying condition ? Until we are convinced of this, we will inquire carelessly after the causes of our deadness. When we are once truly and seriously convinced of it, we soon see the causes. I think it then of the first moment to get our minds affected with this truth, that we, not this or the other peo- ple, or the Church here or there, but we ourselves are in a spir- itually lifeless condition. The evidences we have before us. A state of death is a state of inaction. The dead man can neither act nor speak. And I could not but remark this morning, that there was no one to open his mouth in this Convention on these interesting topics until the chairman called out brother S. In death, all interest in the things around us is lost ! And how is it here ? how came these empty seats ? Why is it a prayer meeting, in which ministers and people from all parts of our country are assembled, awakes no more interest ? Why is it that any house in either of these cities is found sufficient to contain those drawn together by it ? Simply because we are dead to these great concerns. There is a spirit of cold indif- ference that marks all our exercises, and we will never apply ourselves properly to the remedy until we first are satisfied our case is desperate. The man on whose vitals disease is praying, is careless and easy THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 299 until he is satisfied that, unless arrested, it must soon end in his dissolution. Then it is he applies to the earthly physician ; then it is he urges with earnest entreaty his speedy, constant attention. Just so it is with the Church : when she becomes truly convinced of her danger, she will apply earnestly to the Great Physician of souls. So that, though deadness is not in itself a ground of rejoicing, yet if this Convention, if the Churches here represented, are really aware that they are in a dying con- dition, the more desperate the better, and we may now begin to lift up our heads, for our redemption draweth nigh. This is the time for God to work, when all earthly hopes and prospects fail. When, from ourselves, we have no hope, such have been the times in which God has wrought for his people, and such are the times in which he is promising still to work. The Lord said, " I will bring again from Bashan, I will bring my people again from the depths of the sea." Just so often as she comes into the depths, so often will he bring her out again. But again, our case is hopeful if we are made truly sensible of our deadness, because that very sensibility evidences the be- gun revival. There must be some vitality where there is even sense of danger. And when the Church begins to feel her spir- itual deadness, it is evidence the Lord is returning to her with favor. Painful as it may be, yet this sense of what we really are, is good and favorable ; and in proportion as we feel it, so will we apply ourselves to remedy those things which have brought on our calamity. The first and manifest influence of the Lord's work among us in Xenia, after the Convention which met there, was the freedom with which we could talk with sin- ners about the interests of their souls. Before, we could talk about common matters and abstract doctrines of theology, but we feared to accost men about their own personal interests, and to press upon them privately the duties of personal piety. But after that Convention, we found 300 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. no difficulty in the matter of addressing men directly, and we were astonished to find that all this time we were really fearing to talk thus with men, they would have been pleased if we had done it. An instance of this kind came under my own observation : A gentleman, whose family was connected with my congrega- tion, had himself attended for a time on my ministry, and after- ward ceased to hear me altogether. Though he was always friendly with me, and treated me with great personal respect, yet I was always afraid his absenting himself from ordinances was because of some dissatisfaction with my ministry. I never accosted him directly in regard to his own state or exercises. Having understood that he was feeling deeply on the subject of personal religion, I visited him, and oh, what a sense of shame and sorrow I felt when he told me that during all the time of his carelessness, he would have been glad if I had talked to him thus directly. We found that we had been afraid when there was no cause of fear, and that those we regard as careless sin- ners, are really more willing to talk about their spiritual inter- ests than we had supposed. All these things should impress us with a deep sense of our want of spiritual vitality, and when thus impressed, we will wrestle more earnestly with God for the reviving grace of his Holy Spirit. Prof. Young said : The spirit of inspiration makes known a cause of deadness in the Church. Because iniquity shall abound, the love of many shall wax cold. The same truth is contained in the heathen maxim, adopted by the same spirit. Be not de- ceived ; " evil communications corrupt good manners." There are illustrations of the truth of this principle in every associa- tion of life. If we look around us we see its influence in every community. If we could see any evil from which society suf- fers, as a new thing, and in all its enormity, would we not all combine to put it down ? Because evils productive of great injury to society, are common, because we have been accustomed to them from childhood, we look on their effects as a matter of THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 301 course, and become apathetic. Are not the Church and Chris- tians, as individuals, too much under this influence? This disposition shows itself in all the affairs of life ; and in enterprize and industry men are far below what they ought to be. They are satisfied with the old way of doing things, and we cannot get them out of these old ways until we can show them a better way. This principle affects men both in the bus- iness of life and in their religious interests ; hence there is a great deal of deadness in the Church, both among ministers and members. If these things be so, what shall be done to break up this in- difference ? There must be a clear apprehension of the fact, and a calm consideration of its effects, in order that there may be action corresponding to the wants of the Church and her condition. This train of thought had been suggested by an incident that occurred at a meeting he had lately attended, whose object was to put down the traffic in intoxicating drinks. After an address had been delivered, some person inquired of the president wdiat should be done next ? His reply was, He thought we had bet- ter reflect on what we had heard to-night. In my own mind, I inqured, What has the world gained by earnest thinkers reflect- ing on flagrant evils ? I thought of the time when men, women and children were torn from their homes and sold into hopeless slavery ; and when Christian men reaped the gains of this traf- fic; and although they were not ignorant of the evils chargeable to their conduct, no one thought about them in their number and enormity. Custom made the slave trade familiar, and men ceased to feel about its evils. How was the evil broken up? The Chancellor of an English University offered a prize for the best essay on the African slave trade. A student, who competed for the prize, visited the sea coast. He learned from men engaged in the traffic the horrors connected with it. His soul was filled with amazement. After 302 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. gaining the prize for which he competed, the truths it contained still remained in his mind, filling it with anxiety. The question would come up, Are these things true ? and if so, what must be done to get rid of them? Some one must devote himself to the work, and if no other, he must do it. Thus he went on reflecting, until he concluded to give up his life to efforts for putting an end to the traffic in human flesh and blood ; and the effects of his devotedness will extend until there shall not be a slave on the earth, and the name of Clarkson is a memorial to all, showing what an individual can do. Much about the same time another man began to reflect. The heathen world, in all its pollution and degradation, lay before his mind. He thought of the millions going down to death, and of means to secure their salvation. He loved Christ, and the souls of his race for Christ's sake. He took pieces of leather of different colors, and with these he covered a globe, marking on it the various religions of the world, and the moral condition of the people. As he sat on his work-bench, with his eye on the shoe that he was making, his mind was full of the subject that engrossed his thoughts, and he would stop and turn his globe, and as his eye fell on the dark spots indicative of the moral condition of the heathen world, his lips would exclaim : "And these are Pagans — and these are Pagans, and these are Pagans" — and with the sadness of heart caused by reflecting on their miseries, came the thought, Who will carry the gospel to these heathens? and following this, the resolution, If no one else, I will do it. This led to his preparation for the ministry, his entrance on the missionary field afar from his native land, and to an extensive personal usefulness; and the influence of his example has animated others, and will continue to do so, until the earth shall be full of the knowledge of the Lord, as the wa- ters cover the sea. How great has been, and will be, the influ- ence of Carey in bringing about this glorious day. An individual did this, and shall \vc not believe that individ- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 303 uals can still do much ? Have we not the same promising God ? Is his hand shortened that he cannot save ? If we do not be- lieve it is, why such backwardness in his work ? The men of the world do not so act ; nor do Christian men so act in worldly things. The great modern conqueror knew no impossibilities in the accomplishment of his plans. When told that anything could not be done, Napoleon's reply was : " Impossible is the adjective of fools." Even in the use of human means, men see no im- possibilities in securing natural ends by natural means ; and when they undertake to do anything, they lay their plans, and prosecute them with energy. And now, what lessons are we taught by these examples ? We have the history of the Church before us, and instrumen- talities of divine appointment wherewith to conquer, and there is nothing done in vain in the Lord's work. As ministers, what have we done ? Go back to Augustine, and see the fervency of his love, his zeal and devotion, and the ardor of his labors. So of Luther. How confident was he in the belief that he was simply an instrument in the hand of God ! He ever felt con- scious that he sought not his own glory, but the glory of God, in doing his work. So was it with Calvin and Wesley, and with every man that has ever made his mark in the world in doing good. Such is the divine arrangement ; and God will bless those who zealously and devotedly work for him. How far may this agency be carried ? I will answer by men- tioning a single point. A brother referred to the discipline of the Methodist Episcopal Church as the secret of its success. It is not the discipline of the Church in its application to offenses against immorality that peculiarly characterizes that Church, and has given it a rapid growth, but its discipline as embracing its working machinery — properly the organization of that Church. The secret of the success of that Church lies in giv- ing every man and woman a work to do, and setting them to the doing of it. We can do that too. Ministers can instruct their 304 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. people in reference to their peculiar work. Our people need not instruction of the head only, but a calling out, and a putting forth of all the energies of the man into activity in the service of the Lord. It was never the divine intention that all the work should be done by ministers ; it is their duty to instruct others, and the duty of all to be workers in their several fields of labor. No wonder we are dead — not because there is not life in the soul, but because there is not proper employment to develop the capacities of the soul. There is a dwindling of the spiritual faculties for want of exercise, as there is in the muscles of the body from a similar cause. Let every brother see to it, that the proper force be put to work in his own neighborhood, and let him not be discouraged by difficulties. Carey was not discour- aged by the difficulties in his way. The Christian simply asks, is he doing his duty ? There was a time w T hen a land w r as to be possessed, and it was a good land. Men were sent to examine it, and all brought back an evil report, except Caleb and Joshua, who said : " If the Lord delight in us, then will he bring us into this land, and give it us." They had not the feelings of the people with them. With a glorious prospect before us of enjoying the blessings of which the land of promise w r as only the type, let us see that we are such as God will own and bless in the great w r ork in which we are engaged in his service on the earth. Ivev. J. M. Henderson said he felt somewhat diffident in speaking at this time, as remarks similar to those he was about to make may have been made in the former part of the day be- fore his arrival. But he wished to say a i'cw things. It has occurred to every mind, that one cause of deadness is the di- vided condition of the Church of God. A house divided against itself cannot stand. All are familiar with the declara- tion, united we stand, divided we fall. This is true when spoken of an army, and generally true when spoken of an army broken into factions. What general does not know this ? What soldier does not know this ? THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 805 When an army is broken into parties which exert themselves against each other instead of against the common enemy, it must be vanquished, and it is often self-vanquished. There is another idea here in reference to an army, united we stand, di- vided we die. The consequence of such divisions is the slaughter of the army. It is also true of the Church of God. Death reigns because there are divisions among us. It is true of any body. It is true of the family. When the husband and wife are in battle array against each other, brother against brother, sister against sister, confusion and deadness to all affec- tion and to all family prosperity are the consequences. You have all witnessed these things. It is equally true of the Church of God. They indulge against each other in denomi- national strife, losing sight of the great interests of religion. We may apply the figure to a building. Cut it down and re- move its parts to a distance from each other, and what will be the result ? The Church is like a building cut in pieces ; and individuals thrust themselves into the chasm, separating the parts further and further from each other. That is the reason the Church is in so pitiful condition. We may apply it also to the vegetable kingdom. When a vegetable is cut into parts, it withers away. The branch is cut off and then it dies. Cut away the branches and there is no verdure on the vine. You may apply the figure to the body. Christ is the head, and the Church is the body. It presents to us the picture of the beauti- ful head and a body torn to shreds. No wonder that there are appearances of death on that body. A wonder that it was not dead long ago. It produces a denominational pride to outstrip each other in numbers. This temptation to increase in numbers has caused the admission of men who should never have been admitted. Because of their wealth they can support the Church ; others by their position will give character and influence to the Church, but no inquiries whether they have grace or not. Those who 306 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. are excluded for scandalous offenses from one party, another is tempted to receive. Will God thus bind and loose ? That per- son who is bound on earth and repents not, and then loosed, will God bless ? These things cause deadness, and denomina- tional pride. Persons are brought into the Church and kept there who ought to be excluded. Dead branches here and there on the tree destroy its vitality. That is the state of the Church. Divided and distracted instead of gathering together, and prop- ping the building, each runs to little squads of denominational parties, and with trembling hands clings to the frail tenement. I do not say we should cement without regard to truth, but we can do it on scriptural grounds. Mr. Dawson, ruling elder, said our cause of deadness was so little time spent in religious exercises. We can tell why a man is alive to the world; cannot we tell why he is not alive to spir- itual things ? He wished to address himself particularly to elders, as the ministers had addressed themselves particularly to ministers. My brethren, what are our vows ? How many members have we visited and sought their salvation ? We have met a few times to decide on cases of discipline. What gathering and visiting have we done ? What knowledge of our families have we had ? Can we give an account of our stewardship ? There has been a want of faithful administration of God's means. We have no reason to doubt that these means he will bless. Nor have we reason to expect the Spirit without the use of means. At this important time I hope we will come out and take higher ground, both doctrinal and practical. Elders must en- courage the ministers, the ministers the elders, and both the people. We hold the truth, but have trusted too much to a sound creed ; we will take higher or lower ground before we get through. The Church never stands still, her course is onward or backward. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 6Vl Rev. W. Davidson said we sometimes specify effects rather than the cause. We may run over and state many things that are wrong and yet they be only effects. If we want to find out the cause we must philosophize ; and to discover the law of cause and effect, men have been since going about observing facts and find them related as cause and effect. Unless a cause has been revealed by God we must find it by its effects. Every effect has some operative cause. In the matter before us, as in all others, every effect has its cause. Deadness has one cause. I must look at facts over a large area, and a long time and in other circumstances, and put them together; then if I find this has always been produced by that and another, then I have found the cause of this thing. The Church has been often dead and revived again. Deadness has followed one thing, and life has followed one thing. Disobedience to the command of Christ is the cause of our deadness. It is our failure to carry out his last great com- mand, " Go ye into all the world," etc., accompanied with the promise, and " Lo ! I am with you always." He is with us as a wall of defense, as our guide and counsellor, as a pillar of fire. As the Church has obeyed, she has always lived. See how she flourished under the apostles. By-and-by she turned aside because of orthodox contendings for doctrine, because of large congregations, and men began to inquire, not where they could do the most good, but where they could get the best congrega- tions. Love was the principle impulse with God's servants. The Spirit did not leave them till they turned aside. While the reformation Church preached and practiced the great doc- trine of justification by faith and its affiliated doctrines, God did not forsake her, but as soon as they quarreled, God left them. If you observe facts seen for a long time, you will see when the spirit of missions revived the Church, and where not, the Church died. You may hold Conventions, engage in prayirg and sing- ing, but all will do no good until you rise and convert the world. 308 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Go to your neighbor and try to convert him, and do not re- proach him, but hold him up. A man who has a work to do and will do it, God will go with him. We have been turning aside to wranglings. The Episcopal Church has given herself up to con- tend for the succession ; the Baptists to go straight down into the water, and come straight up again; the Associate Reformed Church to the singing of the Scripture Psalms; the Reformed Presbyterian Church for the Headship of Christ ; and the As- sociate Church to the subject of covenanting. I am orthodox, and by no means undervalue the importance of cleaving to the Scripture Psalms ; but these are not our only things. If we preach Christ and embark in the conversion of man according to his command, he will take care of his Headship and doc- trines of his word. Rev. E. Cummings said we must look at things in natural life. The body is sustained by food. Let us return to the bread of life. We find that there is a thirsting after what is in periodicals and papers of our time, but little searching after the bread of life. The scriptural rule is in Deuteronomy. This is the true source of life. No active people, until we betake our- selves to a more diligent use of the bread of life. Is it with us as our daily bread ? We probably read a chapter, sing a psalm, but there is scarcely a word dropped — do not teach it to our children as we go out, and as we come in — as we rise up, and as we sit down. If we would return to the method in the early age of the Church, we might expect that life and vitality would follow such a daily feeding on the bread of life. EVENING SESSION. At 1\ P. M., the Convention met, Rev. Dr. Guthrie presid- ing. Commenced by singing Psalm cxix, 9-17. Prayer by Rev. Dr. Beveridge. Sung Psalm exxx, 5 to the end. Prayer by Rev. Dr. Dales. The President called for remarks of brethren on topic under consideration at last session of the Convention. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 809 It was moved that devotional exercises be continued. Agreed to. Sung Psalm cxxxvii, 1-15. Prayer by Rev. Mr. Paxton, Presbyterian Church, (0. S.) Sung Psalm xl, 1-13. Prayer by Rev. Tlieo. Wylie. Rev. McArthur moved to pass the topic under discussion and take up the eighth. Agreed to. Rev. J. R. Doig said one cause of the Church's being in her present condition, is our selfishness. Our condition is described by the prophet Ilaggai, in the first chapter. We, like the Jews, have taken out much and brought in little, because the Lord has blowed upon it. We are standing each in the way of his own consecration to God, and this is a hindrance to the gospel. The people when plowing, merchandizing, etc., do it for themselves, not for God. When we turn back to God we will have a real revival. He would therefore connect the two topics in the dis- cussion. Rev. S. McArthur said it is in accordance with the word ef God that we should look for a revival. He has said that he will pour out his Holy Spirit. With all the evidences of the necessity of a revival, we are encouraged to hope that a revival has commenced. We have been much encouraged at a Throne of Grace. These assemblies are the result of secret, family and social prayer. And prayer is an indication of life, it is the life- breath of the Christian. Prayer, real fervent prayer, the result of the pouring out of the Spirit of God on the heart. If this is not an evidence, then is there no evidence of true revival. We may have discussions and no revival ; but if we pray, not only those here, but those wrestling throughout the Church shall be encouraged, and we will prevail. Then may this work go on till the knowledge of the Lord cover the earth. Rev. Pres. B. Waddle : Brethren and Christian friends, we are all here. We see each other, and have no doubt that we 310 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. are alive. One evidence of natural life is sufficient. We look out of the window and see two men working in a field — we con- clude that they live — dead men cannot work. We look out again and see them standing, and we still are sati^-fied that they are alive. We look out again and see them neither working nor standing, but sitting, and we believe them alive. So again we see them lying, one singing sweetly and the other crying, we know they are alive. Again they are lying, but neither singing or crying — we draw near, they breathe, and therefore we know they live. Each one of these evidences is sufficient to prove the existence of natural life. The same holds good in spiritual life. If like Paul he breatheth, life is there. Let him cry and sing, walk to and fro and work, then there is evi- dence that there is life and that it is vigorous. If we see a man working for his Divine Master and the salvation of the souls of men, we can draw our own conclusion. Rev. Church : " I thirst for God, the living God ; when shall I appear before God." When there is real prayer, containing principles of faith, then is the Church revived. We are apt to draw nigh with a cold heart; but when God breathes His Spirit into us, we return not as we went. Let the revived ministers of God's word preach in faith ; and it is as necessary to pray in faith. If God revive them, it will be manifested by more of love to God and to our fellow men. When truly revived, they become eyes to the blind and feet to the lame. Such love is always operative. When revived, they will breathe a spirit of true Christian philanthropy. His name will be glorified in us and by us. Rev. II. II. Blair said: ''To be carnally minded is death, but to be spiritually minded is life and peace." It is the life of God in the soul of man, so that we are alive unto God through Je- sus Christ our Lord. It is not working alone that is evidence of this life. Many work the work of darkness. A man may be a missionary when the crowning glory of his work is to con- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 311 vert men from one name to another, and his zeal for this will cause him to compass sea and land. This is no evidence. The way of the soul revived is onward and upward. If you want a history of revivals, we may refer to your own address last night, Mr. Chairman (Guthrie's). And as in olden time, so now. The rubbish must be removed, and Zion must be re- built. There will be a separating from the nations. So it was in the Pentecostal. Ministers disconnected themselves from everything else. They would not even consent to distribute gold and silver, but deacons must be chosen for this very work. Look at the result. The people came forward and laid their possessions at the apostles' feet. A man would be accounted a madman in this land who would do as these did under the apos- tles' ministry. Let us take up our cross and follow Jesus. Dr. Pressly said, it is admitted on all hands that it is by the power of the Spirit, godliness is revived in the soul. Note the fruits manifesting this revival. We have love placed in front — love to God, and love to our fellow man. In the first instance, by acting according to the divine will, and in the second, in doing good to all men, especially to the household of faith. Love prompts us to kindness toward all, great or small, rich or poor. Our love will be to all, especially to the household of faith. Let our love be revived, and it will remove those bar- riers which lie between us, and it will revive its fellow. When such a reviving time arrives, you cannot prevent their fellow- ship. It is gratifying to have this evidence of godliness in the heart. There are various departments of the household of faith, all animated by the same spirit. Ministers uniting to- gether in the same song of praise, and lifting up their voices together in prayer. This is an omen for good. Let us take encouragement to hope that the set time is come when God will manifest his favor and dispense his grace, so as to gather us into one. Rev. A. M. Stewart said : The next fruit of the Spirit is 312 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. joy. Of all evidences we need this most. The prayer of the Psalmist regarded this as a token of a revival, " That in Thee may thy people joy. Wilt thou not us revive ?" And we ought to make it our prayer. Joy, the least sought of all the fruits of the Spirit. On the day of Pentecost they were filled with joy, and went with singleness and gladness of heart, breaking bread from house to house. I say, we need it most. The joy of sins forgiven, of hope in glory — these fail in most ; we hear of it the least of all the evidences of God's love. O that we may jo3 r in God reviving us. Rev. D. Blair: There is an evidence of a true revival in this assembly. Why have we come here ? What is this anx- iety for? Can it be without prayer? For what? Why for the communion of saints ; that for this God would revive us. The same that runs down the apostolic creed, and from the be- ginning. There is a desire to have this article of that creed revived. It may not be so expressed in words, but that is the meaning of all this anxiety. If this is not an evidence of a true revival, I know nothing about it, and I care nothing about it. The eyes of the Church are looking on to see what will become of it, as the mother of Moses, with joy and fear mingling to- gether, looked upon her child in the water to see what would become of him. Could all have been here that would have de- sired to come, all the Churches in Pittsburgh would not have held them. We could have filled a train from Indiana, but knew all could not be accommodated. And we knew our eyes were on you, and we would hold you accountable at the bar of God, whether this communion of saints be hastened by your action, or this rubbish all remain. Rev. E. Small: My heart's desire and prayer to God for Israel is, that they may be saved. I think this evening an evi- dence of the state of many of our hearts. The Xenia Conven- tion was a new era — "delight thyself in God, he'll give thine heart's desire to thee ; thy way to God commit, him trust, it THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 813 bring to pass shall he." We are beginning to realize, I trust, more than a form, a mere form — even a power of godliness. I was glad to hear that there was a warming up from mere for- malities. Formalities, reading the Word, catechizing, and our Lord's Prayer are useful, but they are not mere formalities — and the warming up by the Spirit of God will change these from forms to become powers. From remarks of others, and my own experience corroborat- ing them, heart religion is wanted. We must turn from formal- ities. " The habitation of thy house, Lord, I have loved well," must be the language of our hearts. All Protestantism proves the value of those Psalms. Rev. James Prestley said : The language of the topic, " Evi- dences of a true revival," taken strictly, is redundant. All revivals of true religion (the religion of which we are speaking in this Convention) are true revivals : spurious ones are not re- vivals. But the language of the topic begets the idea that there are spurious revivals of religion, so called, and calls upon us to discriminate between revivals of true religion and those that are not revivals at all. All mere sentiment is not religion, and the increase of it is not a revival of religion. All mere religious feeling, however deep it may be, is not true religion, and the in- crease of it is not necessarily a revival of true religion. Con- viction of sin, and a high sense of the character and offices of Christ, is not religion, and the increase of these may not be either a quickening of the Spirit, or a revival of his work in the soul. All religion that does not bring the sin-stricken soul to Christ, to trust in him and rest upon his merits alone for accept- ance with God ; that does not cause him to hate sin, and to cease its practice, and to be conformed to Christ in holy living, is spu- rious. True religion consists in conformity to Christ, to embrace his teachings and to reduce them to practice, in humble depend- ence upon the aid of the Holy Spirit, in a holy conversation and a holy life. The more close this conformity is, the more religion 21 314 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. there is. To accomplish this, the apostle tells as, was the great object God had in view in sending his Son into the world, " That we might be conformed to his image, that he might be the first- born among many brethren." He is the image of God, and all God's other children are to be in the image of the first-born, that there ma}' be a family likeness. Christ's character, as dis- played in the gospel, is for our imitation. "Let this mind be in you which was also in Christ Jesus." In proportion, then, as the mind of Christ is in us, is religion powerful in the soul : and as this conformity grows and increases, we have evidence that good work is living, and being revived and increased. The question to be answered is, Have we more of this conformity to Christ, this mind that was in Christ, this year than we had last year ? more to-day than we had yesterday ? These questions every person must answer for himself: and in proportion as he can, by divine grace, answer them in the affirmative, will he have reason for holy joy and gladness. The apostle tells us that " pure religion and undefiled before God and the Father, is this : to visit the fatherless and widows in their affliction, and to keep himself unspotted from the world." The teachings of this verse may be embodied in this : Pure religion consists in a life of charity or love and purity : that charity which the Lord Jesus Christ tells us consists in loving the Lord our God with all our heart, soul, strength and mind, and in loving our neighbor as we love ourselves, which the apostle tells us is the fulfilling of the law ; and in that purity of heart which in its exercise overcomes the flesh and the world. Where shall we find such an example of this love and purity as in our Lord Jesus Christ? Wherever it exists in the soul, there exists evidence of likeness to Christ ; and, as in him, so in us, it will develop itself in the desire to do good unto all men, and especially to those who are of the household of faith. In this, again, we are imitators of Christ, and in proportion as it exists, grows and increases, have we evidence of the pos- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 315 session of true religion and of its revival. We may be assured that as these great principles were in Christ, and manifested themselves, their strength and power, in his life, so in propor- tion as we possess them, and they grow stronger and stronger, and more and more active in us, will they develop themselves in our conversation and life. The more we grow up into him, the more active those great principles in the soul will become, and the more fully will the inner man be developed in the ex- ternal conduct and life. Rev. Prof. Wallace : An evidence of genuine reviving in a dead Church, is repentance. When brought under a sense of sin, and to see that it is exceedingly great, and in looking back over sins of the past, Ave sorrow, and are filled with indig- nation against them, and crawl in the dust to obtain pardon by the blood of Jusus ; and when by the grace of God, with the power of the Holy Spirit, we have said we will serve the Lord, this is repentance, and this is evidence of genuine revival. Forgetting the past, anxious for the glory of God and salva- tion of souls, then persisting, persevering evenly, calmly to the end, are evidences of a soul revived. How deeply have we sinned ! how indifferent have we been to souls while dying all around us, and careless ! When all this is changed, and we be- come careless to everything but the glory of God and the sal- vation of souls, there will be a great revival indeed. Rev. James Thompson said : There are two kinds of evi- dences, one internal and the other external. The first is known to ourselves. If there is a revived spirit, the exercises named will be put forth — the internal must be answered by ourselves. It is God's prerogative to work, mine to know it. It is true, external evidences may be false, but if the grace of God is in the heart, it will have external evidences. One design in re- viving the Church, is to develop her strength — to bring those resting under the law, to trust in Christ. We devote ourselves to God. His language is, He is mine, and I am his. It is no 316 THE CHUKCH MEMORIAL. longer from the heart alone, but from the heart by the utterings of the tongue. If we have revivals in our hearts and in our congregations, there will be a development of those powers. Have we these evidences ? Our want is not grace to get num- bers, grace to get wealth, but to be like the primitive Church, when great grace was on them all. According to our grace our life will be not only for ourselves, but to save others. Rev. J. P. Smart said : I will not detain you long. I have always learned that the blessings of Divine grace were of that character, that the more they were tasted the more they were wanted — that they tended downward as well as upward — in hu- mility as well as love to Christ — that the believer sees his own weakness as well as Christ's greatness. Then he sees more of his own destitution and Christ's fullness — wants more grace, and does not believe he is revived. If there is one thing which has thrown a damp over this solemn assembly, it is the beginning to talk as if we were already revived. If we feel its influence we will give Him no rest. There is a solemn and awful responsibility resting on this as- sembly. We hope we have enjoyed some refreshings ; but it remains to be seen whether these are the results of a true revi- val, or only a little feeling. If we return to our homes and do not pour out our heart to God, it were better that we had re- mained at home. If such should be the result, I can say for myself that it would have been much better for me to have been at home among my people, in such exercises and enjoyment as I have had since our late Convention. Don't let us begin to boast, brethren. Some think they see a revival — and I hope they begin to see it — but not yet that revi- ving that the people look for here. Rev. Prof. Findley referred to love in the soul. One mani- festation referred to an apostle says, " We know we have passed from death unto life, because we love the brethren." Wherever an increase of grace in the soul, there is an increase of love to THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 317 brethren. How revived, and the soul not go out tenderly and yearningly ! How shall this reviving be accomplished ? In many ways. One I name. To have those barriers removed that interrupt our fellowship, and we brought into intimate com- munion together. We need to be more earnest. Then difficul- ties being removed, the long-desired union shall be consummated. I fear the cause of religion is about to receive a heavy blow. I fear there may be disappointed hopes with many of us, and all over the Church. Religion is, we fear, to receive a blow from failure of the long desired union. I have one hope that this disaster may be avoided, viz, by successful and importunate prayer. Sung Ps. xl, 8-10. Prayer by Rev. D. H. A. M'Lean. Dr. Guthrie remarked that he hoped there was no ground for the fears expressed by the last speaker in regard to the union of the Churches so negotiating. He believed that if they allowed this measure to fail now, that all the devils in hell would hold a jubilee, whilst saints would weep. He trusted that brethren would not allow themselves to be instrumental in such a disas- trous result. Sung Psalm Ixxvii, 8 and 9. Prayer by Rev. Dr. Swift, (0. S. Presbyterian Church). Benediction by Presiding Officer. Adjourned to 7| P. M. WEDNESDAY MORNING. Convention assembled at 9 o'clock. Pres. Waddle, Associate Reformed Church, presiding. Sung Psalm xx, 1-5. Read Isaiah, chapter xii. Before proceeding to prayer, Dr. Pressly announced that he had received a telegraphic dispatch from the Reformed Churches in Cincinnati, requesting an interest in the prayers of the Con- vention, and stating that they met daily for prayer and conference. Prayer by Rev. J. T. Cooper, D. D. Sung Psalm cxix, 129— i^;j. 318 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Dr. Pressly stated that he had received through the post office a letter from a lady about sixty miles distant from the city, de- siring an interest in the prayers of the Convention, in behalf of her unhappy family. She is the mother of seven small children and the wife of an intemperate husband. Her request is, that this Convention would remember her afflicted case ; that God would sustain her by his grace, and enable her to perform her duty in her trying situation ; that he would have compassion upon her dear children, and preserve them from the paths wherein destroyers go ; that he would have pity upon her poor husband, restore him to his right mind, and rescue him from everlasting destruction. She adds, "Our pastor is laboring hard in the pulpit and in the prayer meeting for our good, but he never visits the down-trodden and the oppressed." Prayer by Rev. Mr. Taggart. Sung Psalm cxlvii, 1-3. Prayer by Rev. D. Dawson. Sung Psalm xcvii, 10 to the end. Prayer by Mr. John Finney, ruling elder. Rev. H. H. Blair announced that he had received a letter from New York this morning ; also, one from Rev. Mr. Revel, from Piedmont. Mr. Blair also read a letter which had been sent to the Convention at Xenia, but had not been received until the Convention had adjourned. After the reading of the letters, resumed devotional exercises. Sung Psalm xlviii, 11, to the end. Prayer by Rev. Dr. Elliott, (O. S. Presbyterian Church.) Dr. Rodgers requested that, if agreeable to the Convention, the chairman would read the intercessory prayer of the Saviour, in the 17th chapter of John, and asked the Convention to be- lieve that they were offering up this prayer at this time, and that Christ was presenting that prayer now on our behalf. Mr. Brown suggested that the Convention take the posture of prayer while reading this prayer. It was also suggested that after that prayer was read, the Convention unite in singing Psalm xlvii. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 319 Pres. Waddle said : Indulge me, ray Christian brethren, with a few remarks before we read. Herein is love ; not that we love God, but that God loveth us. Beloved, if God so love us, ought we not to love one another ? God is love. Each person of the adorable Trinity cherishes for the other two love, even infinite love. They are dwelling in love, and will forever dwell in unbroken and undisturbed love. And the angels, the unfallen angels, though their numbers may be innumerable, archangels, cherubim and seraphim, have no malice, no jealousy ; and the spirits of just men made perfect on high, though gathered from the east, the west, the north, or the south, love there as breth- ren — love pours from the heart. Now, brethren, would it not be well for us to follow this example ? If men will wrangle and quarrel about political and other questions, would it not be well that Christians who really wish to be followers of the Saviour, if they wish to demonstrate or evince a respect for this doctrine, cherish the same love for their brethren, of whatever denomina- tion ? Then they may dismiss their fears. The President then read, in a very solemn manner, the audi- ence standing, John xvii. Sung, as suggested, Psalm xlvii. Prayer by Rev. J. R. Doig. Rev. G. R. M'Millan suggested that the President read Ro- mans xiv. This was seconded by Rev. J. Van Eaton, who remarked : It may seem presumption in me to venture a suggestion in the midst of so much assembled age and wisdom. But if you are sincerely engaged in these services you will cheerfully ac- cept the suggestion of the humblest disciple of Jesus. All seem disappointed here. The exercises have not met the ex- pectations of m^any. I must confess that the Conference has not come up to my own feelings as to what it should be. What is the reason ? What is it that arrests so often the growing inter- est ? What is it that dampens so often the rising fervor of de- votion? It is the inordinate concern about an event anticipated 320 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. in the future. Many have come charged with speeches to be delivered on some future day in connection with that contem- plated event. Some have high anticipations and cannot contain them. Some have painful forebodings and cannot conceal them. It is the invasion of this anxious concern about matters in the future that disappoints us. I felt before I left home the en- croachment of this deep concern. I dreaded its injurious in- fluence upon myself in this Convention, and against it I have struggled and prayed. Now, we should leave what concerns the future of the Church in the hands of the Head of the Church. The future is God's, the present is ours. He will take care of the interests of his Church in the future ; we can trust him with these interests. Why not then at once dismiss all this anxiety and just throw ourselves, heart and soul, into the duties of the present time, prostrating ourselves at the Throne of Grace — pouring out our whole hearts before God — cherishing a spirit of brotherly love — feeling that we are breth- ren — forbearing one another in love — praying God to keep our hearts and guard our lips, and, confiding in him, who will take care of all our interests in the future. After which the President read the chapter above suggested. The President read also according to suggestion from 1 Kings, viii, 37-39 ; also from Romans xiv. Sung Psalm xviii, 28-30, on suggestion. Prayer by Rev. Mr. Lorimer. Read, by request, chapter xiii of 1 Corinthians. On motion, resolved that the Convention meet at two o'clock. On motion, it was resolved that the afternoon session of this Convention be held in the Associate Presbyterian Church, on 7th St., Pittsburgh. Rev. H. II. Blair made some excellent remarks, but as we were engaged at the time, we could not report it. Sung Psalm cxxxiii. Prayer by Dr. Guthrie. Convention adjourned. Rev. J. P. Smart to preside in the afternoon. Benediction by the President. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 321 AFTERNOON SESSION. Two o'clock P. M. — Convention met. Rev. J. R. Doi"\ in absence of Rev. J. P. Smart who had been appointed, presided. Sung Psalm lxxxi, 8-10. Read chapter xv, of the gospel by John. Prayer by the Rev. Jos. Clokey. Rev. Smart appearing, presided during the remainder of the session. Rev. R. H. Pollock said : No sword cuts like the sword of God's own Spirit. That he thought the truth of this was felt during the forenoon exercises. " For the word of God is quick and powerful, and sharper than any two edged sword, piercing even to the dividing asunder of soul and spirit, and of the joints and marrow, and is a discerner of the thoughts and intents of the heart." Approving as I do, the portions of the Scripture read and sung in the Convention this morning, I desire to turn the attention of brethren to the necessity of more humble con- fession of sin. It will be in this way that our hearts will be prepared to receive the blessing. It is necessary for us to dwell on our condition, if we would understand our need of being re- vived, and be prepared to receive it, like the earth prepared to receive the rain. Jehovah will pour out his Spirit upon those who ask him. I ask you to read the ninth chapter of Daniel, and sing Psalm xxxii, and that our prayers have a special ref- erence to the confession of our sins. Sung Psalm lx, 1-3. Prayer by Rev. J. Brown of Keokuk. Rev. G. W. Gowdy requested that the Convention make " the lost sheep of the house of Israel " a special subject of prayer. He said : Though the Jews have been long cast off from being a peculiar, a holy people, because of their many aggravated sins, especially the rejection of the Messiah, yet towards them God has gracious purposes. They are " beloved for their fathers' sakes." Upon their ancestor, Jacob, the bene- diction was pronounced, " Cursed be every one that curseth thee, 322 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. and blessed be he that blesseth thee." Histoiy records that God has dealt with nations and the votaries of various systems of religion in accordance with the manner in which they have treated the Israelites. The infidel Frederick of Prussia had the sagacity to remark : " I have learned by the experience of ages, that no man ever touched that people, but he smarted for it." Whilst it is true that they have become "an astonish- ment," " a reproach and a proverb, a taunt and a curse in all places whither they have been driven," yet God has " not made a full end of them." But he has " made a full end " of their ancient oppressors. To this day, they in few countries en- joy the rights of their fellows. Many nations at the present time are incurring the divine displeasure by their evil treatment of the children of Abraham. The Church in timea past has vied with the civil power in casting obloquy on the Jews. She has supposed it to be the will of heaven that they should be anath- ematized by her, because their ancestors had uttered the impre- cation on the occasion of the crucifixion of our Lord Jesus Christ, " let his blood be upon us and upon our children." Be- cause of her unkindly bearing towards them, God has in great measure withheld his favor. She is now beginning to perceive her error and is changing her demeanor. The design and promises of God are that the Jews shall ex- perience covenant mercies. In each successive generation some according to the election of grace have been led to confess Christ, and have obtained salvation by him. The time is ap- proaching when they will as a people return and receive Jesus as their Saviour. That will be a revival period when they shall be brought into the Christian Church. Then will the Spirit be poured out in copious effusions, and all God's heritage will be reanimated and cheered. " If the casting away of them be the reconciling of the world, what shall the receiving of them be, but life from the dead ? " The Church would secure the divine favor, would promote her own interests and the wel- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 323 fare of the world, would honor God, show her faith in his prom- ises and sympathy with his purposes, by cherishing a ardent zeal for the conversion of the Jews. They shall prosper who love them. He made some interesting remarks in regard to the work o-oing on among the Jews. He alluded to the missions to them established in the East by one branch of the Church represent- ed in the Convention. He thought we had been neglectful in not praying for others who were absent. We had forgotten our brethren in other lands. If we only labored in behalf of the Jews, the Church would be successful. The Church of England lias missionaries, colporteurs and teachers among the Jews, con- verted by themselves. There is one of their bishops a convert- ed Jew. There are now twenty-eight missionary societies in the world on behalf of the Jews. A matter for encouragement was that in the city of London alone there were last year 2,500 converted Jews. There are 20,000 Jews at the present time in the world who are converted. Read by request Psalm li. Prayer by Rev. R. A. Pollock, Associate Reformed. Read Isaiah, chapter xxv. Prayer by Rev. J. M'Millan, Reformed Presbyterian, (INT. S.) Sung Psalm cii, 16-18. Read Isaiah, chapter lxiii. Prayer by Rev. M'Kinstry. The hour for adjournment having arrived, the President pro- nounced the apostolic benediction, and the Convention finally adjourned. XIII. — Missions of the Associate Church. TRINIDAD MISSION. This mission was the first enterprize in the work of foreign evangelization that engaged the attention of the Associate 324 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Church. At a meeting of the Synod in Philadelphia, May 24, 1843, after having in the previous year sent Rev. Joseph Banks to survey the country, and having received from him a favora- ble report, the Synod appointed Rev. Joseph Banks and D. Gordon as missionaries to Trinidad, and resolved to use their ef- forts to raise three thousand dollars for missionary purposes the ensuing year ; and at the same meeting they resolved to ap- point a Board of Missions, which was accordingly done. On the 14th of the following July, Mr. Banks, and Mr. Gor- don with his wife and niece, Miss Margaret Ann Beveridge, set sail for Trinidad, where they arrived after a voyage of about twenty days. They chose Savanne Grande as the place of their operations. Here they erected a Church and a dwelling house, and the mission was for some time in successful opera- tion, when Mr. Gordon was called away by death on the 24th day of December, 1844. His death was soon followed by that of Mr. G. Kerr of Allegheny, who had gone to Trinidad as a far- mer, with a view to subserve the mission cause. At the following meeting of Synod held in Xenia, May 28, 1845, Rev. John Scott was appointed by Synod to supply the va- cancy occasioned by the death of Rev. D. Gordon, Mrs. Gordon and Miss Beveridge having returned. Mr. Scott remained but a short time in the field, having felt it to be his duty to return. He was accompanied by Mr. Banks. At that meeting Mr. Banks was reappointed, and the Board authorized to appoint a mission family in connection with Mr. Banks. Mr. Banks returned to the Island alone in the follow- ing October. Prior, however, to the meeting of the Synod in 1847, Mr. Andrew Thompson of Pittsburgh, was appointed by the Board as a teacher, and arrived at Trinidad with his wife on the 20th of June, 1847. Prior to the next meeting of the Synod in 1848, Mr. Banks again returned to the United States. The Synod at that meet- ing expressed by a vote, their entire satisfaction with the past THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 325 labors of Mr. Banks, and reappointed him to the station, and also appointed Rev. Isaac Law as an additional missionary, and nominated Messrs. John Scott, R. H. Pollock, Wm. H. Andrew, Moses Arnott, J. W. Logue, James C. Herron, J. P. Smart, and J. M. Henderson, any one of whom was to be chosen by the Board in case Mr. Law should decline the appointment. The Board during the next Synodical year, were unsuccessful in obtaining the services of another missionary. In the meantime, Mr. Thompson returned to the United States, Mr. Banks being left alone upon the field, who at that meeting, in consequence of ill health, obtained leave to return after the expiration of six months. At the same meeting, the Board were directed to obtain, if possible, one or two mission- aries. This was not done by the Board, and before the next meeting of Synod, Mr. Banks returned, the station being left in charge of the Rev. Francis Cluch, a minister of the Free Church of Scotland at San Fernando, a station seven miles dis- tant from that of the Associate Church. It was not until June, 1851, that another missionary set sail for Trinidad. This was Rev. W. II. Andrew. He was ac companied with his wife and sister-in-law, Miss McCall — the latter of whom went in the capacity of a teacher. This brother returned to the United States in October of the same year, leaving the mission under the care of Rev. Mr. Cluch. By the action of the Synod at its next meeting (1853), the mission was continued under the care of this brother, who labored there until some time in the next year, when he came to the United States, leaving the mission under the care of Rev. George Bro- die, a missionary of the United Presbyterian Church of Scot- land, in Port of Spain. Of course it could only receive the occasional services of Mr. Brodie. After some time, brother Church felt it to be his duty to resign his charge as a missionary of the Free Church of Scotland. The mission thus being left entirely destitute, with the ex- 326 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. ception of such care as Rev. G. Broclie was able to give it, the Synod, at its meeting in May, 1855, instructed the Board of Foreign Missions to propose to the Colonial Committee of the Free Church of Scotland, a contribution of four hundred dollars annually, towards the support of such missionary as they would send to San Fernando, on condition that the one-half of his time should be given to Savanne Grande, and on the condition that the missionary would use exclusively the Scripture Psalms, and with the proviso that if at any future period it shall be the wish of the Associate Church to occupy this station exclusively, the Free Church will resign it wholly to their care. This propo- sition was cordially accepted by the brethren of the Free Church. It was not, however, until November, 185G, that a missionary could be obtained by them. Since that time, Rev. George Brown has been laboring under the direction of the Colonial Committee of the Free Church and the Board of the Associate Synod, and from the intelligence received from time to time, the labors of this devoted brother are productive of the most happy results. He resides at Savanne Grande, the station of the Associate Church. This mission has been an exceed- ingly expensive one to the Associate Synod. It has met with many reverses, and experienced many severe trials, but it is believed to have exerted a most happy influence, and has not been without special tokens of the divine favor. CALIFORNIA MISSION. This mission was established by the Associate Synod in 1852. The Rev. James C. Herron was appointed by the Board of Foreign Missions as a missionary to that country. He set sail with his wife and child for San Francisco, on the 19th of Feb- ruary, 1853, at which place he arrived on the 20th of March, He remained there, however, but a short time, and after preach- ing in different places in the State, he finally settled in Napa, about .fifty miles from San Francisco. He there succeeded in THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 327 gathering a congregation, which after some time erected a very neat place of worship. He continued to be their pastor until January 17th, 1858, when, in consequence of his opposition to the introduction of a melodeon by the congregation into the worship of God, the relation between him and the congregation was dissolved, by what the Board regard as an illegal vote of the congregation. The congregation has since formed a con- nection with the Old School Presbyterian Church. Brother Herron is still in Napa, and engaged in preaching in different places in the vicinity. It is believed that he has been instru- mental in doing much good there. INDIA MISSION. The Associate Synod, at their meeting in Pittsburgh, May, 1853, agreed to establish a mission in Hindoostan. At that meeting several persons were nominated by the Synod, from whom the Board was directed to make a selection. The Board, however, did not succeed in securing the services of any of the nominees. The Synod, accordingly, at its meeting in 1854, elected Andrew Gordon and John T. Tate. Brother Tate declined the appointment of Synod. Brother Gordon accepted the appointment, and having been previously ordained by the Presbytery of Albany, set sail on the last Thursday of Septem- ber, 1854, for Calcutta. He was accompanied by his wife and child and also his sister, Miss Elizabeth Gordon, who was sent by the Board as a teacher. They arrived at Calcutta on the 13th day of February, 1855. They proceeded immediately to Saharunpur, the station occupied by the missionaries of the Ee- formed Presbyterian Church, by whom a kind invitation had been extended to them. There brother Gordon remained until the following August, when he proceeded to Sialkot, a city of the Punjaub, in Northern India, containing about twenty thou- sand inhabitants, and within a mile of the military canton- ments, containing a native population of more than nineteen 328 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. thousand inhabitants. It lies about 32 cleg. 30 min. north lati- tude, and in longitude 74 deg. 30 min. east. This place he se- lected as the field of missionary operations. At the meeting of Synod in Xenia, preceding the arrival of Mr. Gordon in Sialkot, Rev. E. H. Stevenson and Mr. John Harper were appointed to proceed as missionaries to India, as co-laborers of Mr. Gordon. Mr. Stevenson accepted the ap- pointment, and brother Harper declined it. The Board elected Rev. R. H. Hill, formerly of the Reformed Presbyterian Church, in place of Mr. Harper. These two brethren — Mr. Stevenson with his wife and child, and Mr. Hill with his wife — set sail for Calcutta on the 22d of August, 1855, and reached that city on the 22d day of January, 185G. They both pro- ceeded to brother Campbell's, at Saharunpur. There Mr. Hill remained during the hot season, and Mr. Stevenson proceeded immediately to Sialkot. These brethren were in due time joined by Mr. Hill, at Sialkot. On the 18th of December, they were constituted into a Presbytery called the Presbytery of Sialkot. A congregation was soon afterwards organized, con- sisting of eleven members, four of whom were natives of India. Suitable buildings were erected, and since that time, with the ex- exception of the period of the late mutiny, when a stop was put to their operations, they have been laboring in the prosecution of their Master's work, in which they have met with much encouragement. They had, at the latest intelligence, under their care a school, in which the Scriptures are read, and all receive regular re- ligious instruction daily. The school consists of seventy scholars in regular attendance, sixteen of whom are studying English. It is under the immediate tuition of a Christian teacher, who is a good English scholar, and was formerly a student of theology, under the direction of Rev. Mr. Hunter, a missionary of the Established Church of Scotland, who was murdered at Sialkot during the late mutiny. They have also seven orphan children, whom they are supporting and educating at the expense of THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 329 Sabbath Schools and congregations in this country. The con- gregation consists of fifteen persons, five being added to the eleven of whom it originally consisted, one of these five having since died. Taking all the circumstances into consideration, this mission has thus far enjoyed the smiles of the great Head of the Church, and presents very encouraging prospects of future usefulness. XIV. — Missions op the Associate Reformed Church. Though slow in engaging as a denomination in the work of Foreign Missions, the Associate Reformed Church has always felt a deep interest in this cause. As early as the year 1796, a large portion of this Church associated themselves with the Presbyterian, the Reformed Dutch Churches, and others, in or- ganizing the New York Missionary Society, with special refer- ence to the evangelization of the American Indians. And for the formation of the " American Board of Commissioners for Foreign Missions," in 1810, many of the members of this Church were liberal and active cooperators with it in spreading the gospel among the heathen. It was not however till the year 1835, that any court of the Associate Reformed Church formally entered upon this work. In that year the Synod of New York resolved to commence missionary operations in northern India, and on the 16th of No- vember the Rev. James McEwen, of the Presbytery of New York, set sail with his wife in the ship Charles Warren, from Philadelphia, for that field. In a few years, however, his health failed and the part which the Associate Reformed Church had in the work was given up. This was a trial, and was soon fol- lowed with petitions from various portions of the Synod for a renewal of the work. 22 380 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. In 1844, the General Synod of the West resolved, after much deliberation, to undertake a mission to Syria, a country endeared by many tender associations and containing a population of about 2,000,000 of people. In the autumn of that year accord- ingly Rev. James Barnel, of the First Presbytery of Ohio, and Dr. J. G. Paulding, a physician, were sent out with discretion- ary power as to the choice of their particular station. They fixed upon Damascus, a city containing about 120,000 inhab- itants, of whom from 5,000 to 10,000 were descendants of Abraham ; and they began their work with reference " to the Jew first and the Gentile also." Of the founding of this mission, and the departure of these brethren to it, the Jewish Chronicle of that year says : " It is with no ordinary degree of satisfaction that we record this most interesting fact. To the Associate Re- formed Church belongs the honor of being the first body of Christians in the United States — and as yet the only body — that has sent forth these messengers of love to the ' lost sheep of the house of Israel.' It is an honor of which any Church might well be — not proud, but thankful." This mission increased in interest, and on the 12th of Decem- ber, 1850, Rev. Gulion Lansing, of the Presbytery of New York, and Rev. James A. Frazer, of the Presbytery of Mich- igan, sailed with their wives, in the bark Utah, from Boston for the same field. Since that time the mission has been further reinforced by the additions of Miss Sarah B. Dales, who sailed from Philadelphia September 30, 1854, to engage in the work of teaching, with special reference to Jewish females, and by Rev. John Crawford, of the Presbytery of Washington, who em- barked with his wife, at New York, October 1G, 1857. Dr. Alexander Hattie also went out at the same time as a physician of the mission, Dr. Paulding having felt it his duty to return to this country with his family in 1856. In 1853, the attention of the missionary brethren having THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 331 been specially directed to Egypt, the Rev. James Barnel was detached from the mission in Damascus to establish one in Cairo. This city is the capital of Egypt. Including the sub- urbs of Boolak and Old Cairo, it has a population estima i < 250,000, comprising about 125,000 Mohammedans, G0,000 Copts, 3,000 to 4,000 Jews, and numerous foreigners. In this important field, Mr. Barnel was joined by the Rev. Thomas McCague, of the Presbytery of Chillicothe, who together with his wife sailed from Philadelphia Sept. 30, 1854. In the autumn of 1857, Rev. Mr. Lansing, who had been compelled by ill health to leave the Syrian field, entered upon missionary labors under encouraging auspices in Alexandria, Egypt. This city is the great emporium of Egypt, and is one of the most important stations on the overland route to India. It lies on the Mediterranean Sea, 112 miles north- west of Cairo, with which it is now connected by railroad. It contains a population of from 80,000 to 100,000, and from its position must always be a city of wide-spread influence. In these several missions, part of the labor of which is car- ried on in connection with a noble band of men from the Gen- eral Assembly of the Presbyterian Church in Ireland, the Associate Reformed Church has a well organized Church, and an efficient school for boys and one for girls, in Damascus, preaching and schools in Nebk and Deir A'tega, Syrian villages not far distant, and preaching and schools also in Cairo and Alexandria, Egypt. The language chiefly used is the Arabic, and is spoken by upw r ards of 6,000,000 of people. The Bible, the Westminster Assembly's Shorter Catechism, and Brown's Catechism for Children, translated into Arabic, are used in the schools and freely circulated among the people. The annual expense of these missions is nearly $6,000. 332 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. OREGON MISSION. Very soon after the organization of Oregon Territory many families from the different Reformed Churches of the States sought homes in that new and promising land upon the shores of the Pacific. The fertility of the soil, the salubrity of the climate, and the abundance of land at government prices, induced many to emigrate thither. They soon found, however, that there was one thing which they lacked, and for which all possible advan- tages of soil and climate could never compensate, namely, the preaching of the gospel. Petitions, therefore, were sent back to the Associate and the Associate Reformed Churches in the States, from which they had chiefly emigrated, praying for the word of life and the living ministry. In answer to these earnest calls from the shepherdless flock in this distant land, the General Synod of the Associate Re- formed Church, in 1847, appointed Rev. Wilson Blain a mis- sionary to that interesting field. Mr. Blain accepted the appointment, and has ever since been laboring with untiring zeal in the service of his Master. In the year 1850, Rev. Stephen D. Gager was ordained by the Presbytery of Mansfield, and shortly after dismissed by cer- tificate to join Rev. Wilson Blain as a missionary in Oregon. He still continues to labor in that field. The same year the subject of a mission to Oregon was brought before the Associate Synod of North America. Rev. James P. Miller and Rev. Samuel G. Ironie were appointed as missionaries. These brethren sailed from New York in 1851, and having arrived safely, entered upon the work to which they had been called. Previous to this time Rev. T. Simpson Ken- dall had emigrated with a company from Illinois, and after spending some time in California, located permanently in Ore- gon, and engaged with renewed consecration in the great work of the gospel ministry. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 333 In 1852, Rev. David Thompson, of the Associate Church, set out with his family, by the overland route, for the same country. After a long and sad journey, having buried his wife at the Platte River, he arrived with his children, and engaged in the work to which he had consecrated himself. Although Rev. Messrs. Kendall and Thompson were not sent out nor supported by the Synod, yet they reinforced the mission which had been established and proved important auxiliaries in that wide and destitute field. In 1852, Rev. James Worth, of the Associate Reformed Church, removed with a portion of his congregation, to the same country. The mission was farther reinforced the same year by Rev. Jeremiah Dick, of the Associate Reformed Church. These, so far as we can learn, are all the brethren that have gone out from the Reformed Churches to Oregon ; and all these brethren, we believe, still survive and are actively engaged in the service of their Master, with the exception of Rev. James P. Miller, who perished in a steamboat explosion a few years after he entered the Territory. Truly God's way is often in the sea and his paths in the great waters. In accordance with the recommendation of the General Synod, Messrs. Blain, Gager, Worth and Dick organized in 1852, the Presbytery of Oregon. About the same time a correspondence was opened between these brethren from sister Churches in the States with reference to organic union. Far from their former brethren, and surrounded upon all hands by the enemies of truth, they felt that it was impossible to maintain separate or- ganizations. Interest, duty and affection all demanded that they should march forth under one banner. Accordingly, in 1852, these brethren came together under the title of the United Presbyterian Church of Oregon. This act was ratified by the General Synod of the Associate Reformed Church in 1853. With regard to the present condition of the Church in Ore- gon we can say nothing. Doubtless they have both lights and 334 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. shadows, as in the other portions of the Church. Few and far away, they should be remembered in our prayers. We hope ere long to hail them as brethren under our common banner. XV. — Theological Seminaries. THEOLOGICAL SEMINARY AT NEWBURGH. The first step towards the founding of a Theological Seminary, was taken by the Associate Reformed Church in 1796. In this year, the Synod passed an act to establish a Synodical Fund, the object of which was to support a Professor of Theology, and to assist pious youth having the ministry in view. The plan is fully explained in a letter to the members of the Associate Re- formed Church, which, though published anonymously, was written by Mr. (afterwards Dr.) J. M. Mason of New York. To show the vast importance of the scheme, the author of the letter observes : "1. As teaching is not the talent of every man, so, directing the studies and forming the minds of youth for the duties of the pulpit, is not the talent of every minister. This requires a pe- culiar turn. Many excellent preachers want the qualification of a theological professor. " 2. To natural aptitude to teach, must be added a spirit of inquiry more accurate and various than belongs to the ordinary habits of ministerial life. u Whoever expects to fulfill, in all its parts, the duty of a teacher of divinity, must be devoted to it. " 4. Most ministers do not possess the literary means indis- pensable to the office. A selection of books competent to the usual course of sermons, will not suffice a professor of theology. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 335 Without access to others, rare and costly, he will be poorly fur- nished for the duties of his chair." No further Synodical action was had upon this subject until 1801. The delay, however, is not surprising, in view of the novelty as well as the importance of the enterprise, and the limited resources of the Church at that time. In 1801, the question of erecting a Seminary was taken up by the Synod, in connection with the inquiry, How shall we supply the numerous and increasing vacancies with a qualified ministry? During the colonial times, the Churches under the care of Synod ob- tained their pastors from Britain ; but it had long been manifest that if the Church expected to grow, she must have a ministry of American birth and education. Accordingly, at the session of Synod in 1801, the whole subject was referred to a committee consisting of Messrs. Dobbin, Kerr and Young. In their re- port, which was adopted, they recommended that a minister be sent to Britain, as the agent of Synod, to solicit funds and books for a Theological Seminary. After solemn prayer for Divine guidance, the Rev. John M. Mason was chosen for this mission. He sailed from New York, 29 th July, 1801, and was absent nearly a year, during which he visited the principal cities of England and Scotland, and succeeded in raising about $5,000. His efforts were warmly seconded by those eminent philanthro- pists, William Wilberforce, John Thornton, Joseph Hardcastle, Charles Grant, by the venerable Dr. John Erskine, one of the ministers of old Grey Friars Church, Edinburgh, by Drs. Hall and Peddie of the same city, by Dr. Henry Hunter and Dr. Waugh of London, by Lady Maxwell, Lady Glenorchy, Wil- liam Murray of Polmaise, Ewing McLae, Esq., and many oth- ers, whose names deserve honorable notice in a full history of the Seminary. The report of Dr. Mason will be found, with the accompanying documents, in the printed minutes of the Synod, 1802, though it should be mentioned that his mission to Britain continued to yield valuable fruits for many years after 336 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. his return home. Most of the funds thus collected were ex- pended by Dr. Mason in the purchase of a very valuable library. The final steps towards the establishment of a Theological Seminary, were taken by the General Synod of the Associate Reformed Church, met at Greencastle, Pennsylvania, in 1804. New York was fixed upon as the place, and Dr. Mason was elected Professor of Theology. The Constitution of the Semi- nary, which had been drawn up by Dr. Mason, at the request of Synod, was not actually adopted until the succeeding year. It provided that : " 1. The Scriptures themselves shall be the great subject of study. 2. The period of study shall be four years, and the session shall continue for seven months." The first Board of Superintendents consisted of the Rev. Robert Annan, J. McJimpsey, Drs. A. Proudfit, J. Grey and J. Lawrie, and they formally opened the first session of the Semi- nary on the first Monday of November, 1805. Eight students were in attendance during this session. Application was made to the Legislature of New York in 180G, for a charter of incor- poration, but it was refused, mainly on account of the obnoxious political opinions of Dr. Mason. If he had deferred to the ad- vice of some of his friends, and had left the affair in other hands, or if the application had been made to the Legislature of Pennsylvania, as many members of Synod wished, the result would probably have been very different, not only to the Semi- nary, but to the Church herself. In 1809, the Rev. James M. Mathews, subsequently D.D., and Chancellor of the New York University, was chosen As- sistant Professor of Biblical Literature and Church History. He discharged the duties of the office until 1817, when he re- signed. Dr. Mason labored as principal Professor from 1805 till 1820, when the loss of health compelled him to resign. The Rev. Dr. Alexander Proudfit was chosen in 1820, but he held THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 837 the office only during a single session. In 1821, the Synod finding it impossible to fill the chair, or to obtain funds for the support of the Professors, resolved that it was "expedient to suspend the operations of the Seminary, until the Head of the Church open the way for more efficient effort ;" and the stu- dents were "permitted to prosecute their studies under the direction of any minister of the Associate Reformed Church." For eight years the institution remained in this suspended state, but at length, in 1829, the Synod of New York determined to make a vigorous effort for its revival. Newburgh was fixed upon as the place, and the Rev. Joseph McCarroll, D.D., was chosen as the Professor of Theology. In the following year, measures were taken for the recovery of the library and funds removed to Princeton in 1822, which were ultimately success- ful. In 1835, the Synod resolved to render the Seminary at once more permanent and useful, by the erection of a suitable edifice. The undertaking was a great one, to many it seemed an impossible one, but it was effected, and for years past the Seminary edifice, capable of accommodating a large number of students, has been one of the ornaments of Newburgh. At the same time a successful application was made to the Legislature of New York for a charter of incorporation. The Seminary edifice above mentioned was begun in 1837, and was finished in May, 1839. It is surrounded by ample grounds, and occupies one of the most commanding positions on the banks of the Hudson. In 1838, the Rev. J. Forsyth, Jr., was appointed Assistant Professor of Biblical Literature, and held the office until 1845. From that time until 1853, Dr. McCarroll was sole Professor. In the last named year, the Constitution of the Seminary was revised, and the duties of instruction were divided between the Rev. Dr. McCarroll, Professor of Systematic and Pastoral The- ology, and Rev. Dr. Forsyth, who had been chosen Professor of Biblical Literature, Church History, etc. 838 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. *Jolm Lind. James M. Mathews, D.D. *George Stewart. *George Buchanan. *William M. Murray, D.D. ♦James M. Chord. *John X. Clarke. *Samuel Crothers, D.D. ♦Robert Reid, D.D. *James Galloway. *Ebenezer K. Maxwell. *Teunis A. VanVechten. * Thomas White. *John M Duncan, D.D. *Robert B. McLeod Arthur J. Atansbury. *John Campbell. ■{■♦William Logan. ♦John M. Farland. *Charles McLe.n. Samuel Findlay, D.D. Joseph Lowrie. f James Pringle. William Taggart. *Joseph Wallace.' t*William Wallace. Thomas Warner. Jacob VanVechten, D.D. Allan I). Campbell, D.D. George Duffield, D.D. f John W. Grier. Eleazar Harris. ♦Nicolas Jones. *John Knox, D.D. *Charles .Strong. *Paschal N. Strong. Joseph McElroy, D.D. John T. Pressly, D.D. ■j-* James Veech. Albert Amaman. *Mathias Buren. LIST OP STUDENTS. f. James Christie, D.D. ♦John E. Miller. |* Benjamin Allen. Hugh M. Boyd fGeorge Junkins, D.D. Robert McCartee, D.D. David McDill, D.D. ♦Samuel P. Magaw. f ♦Samuel Kissan. William W. Phillips, D.D. ■{•♦Thomas Gifford, Jr. William Boyse. fPeter J. Dunlop. Chester Long. James Lowry. ♦Abram 0. Stansbury. ♦Dillon C. Beebee. Robert Steele, D.D. f Loring D. Dewey. John Graham, D.D. Donald C. McLaren, D D. fllattuck Shaw. fWilliam R. Dewitt D.D. *James C. Crane. •{■Bernard Gallagher. ♦William Nesbit. James Otterson. *Alden D. Piper. Henry S. Wilkin. -j-Aratus Kent. James J. Murray. | Thomas M. Strong, D.D. John H. Leggett. Isaac A. Van Hook. -(■♦Walter Monteith. ♦James Arbuckle. *James Dinwiddle, D.D. ♦James Baber. Isaac Ferris, D.D. William S. Heyer. Joseph McCarroll, D.D. f John B. Steele. -{•John W. Sweeny. •{-Thomas Vernon. f*i)avid Carson. f*James Johnson. I* Thomas McAulay. fWilliam McJimsey. fWilliam Curry, f Garret Conrey. f ♦M. L. Fullerton. f George Mairs. f*John W. McJirapsey. fSamuel Centre, f * Alexander Sharpe, D.D. f*James Beverid-e. ♦Thomas C. McLawry. Alexander Proudfit. fjohn Forsyth, Jr , D.D. ♦David L. Proudfit. Robert B. VanKluck, D.D. William McLaren. Andrew Johnston. ♦ William A. McKinney. John D. Gibson. ♦Joshua P. Spalding. ♦Samuel Topping. t*James H Mairs. John Skellie John B Dales, D D. f Lewis C. Lock wood. James Campbell. Clark Irving, f John Donaldson. Herman Douglass. fWilliam Walsh Thomas T. Framington. Joseph Kimball. f John J. Walsh. Peter C. Robertson. tAdam Craig. Stephen D. Gager. * This list includes the names of those who attended, and those who did not, the whole course. The latter are indicated by a f , those deceased by a *. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 339 tLucius Gibbs. Joseph McNulty. fTbomas F. Boyd. f Francis Beveridge. fJoshua S. Kimball. fjoseph Boyd. ■f Calvin McKinney. William R. Short. fS. C. Boyce. fWilliam C McLaren. George M. McEachron. ■(-Joseph Walker. Donald C. McVean. John Crawford. fj. H. Beyson. •(■John Gilmore. t-John McNulty. J. L. Clark. Peter D. M. Nab. t*Asa Ramsay. John Edgar. f George Walsh. *Jonathan Gillespie. fSamuel Johnson. James S. Cowper Alexander McWilliams. Alexander Adar. Archibald II. Sloat. George Patton. fl). C. McLaren. Wil iam Christy. James McLaughlen. fW J. Robert- on. Gulian C. Lansing. John Anderson. t Alexander Jack. William C. Somers. j*Alexander T. Niven. Thornton M. Niven. Jr. Whole number — 162. ASSOCIATE REFORMED THEOLOGICAL SEMINARY AT ALLE- GHENY CITY. " The priest's lips should keep knowledge, and they should seek the law at his mouth ; for he is the messenger of the Lord of Hosts." The importance of a pious and well educated min- istry cannot be too highly estimated. And experience seems to have demonstrated to the satisfaction of the Christian Church generally, that a Theological Seminary is a most efficient means to secure this desirable result. Accordingly, at a very early period in her history, we find the Associate Reformed Church engaged in active efforts to provide for the thorough education of those who were destined to the holy ministry. At the first meeting of our General Synod, at Greencastle, in the year 1804, it was resolved to establish a Theological Seminary in the city of New York ; and the Rev. John M. Mason, D. D., was chosen Professor. For the want of adequate support, the operations of this institution were suspended in the year 1821. In consequence of dissatisfaction with the proceedings of our General Synod, the Churches in the west, which at that time constituted the subordinate Synod of Sciota, resolved to with- draw from the jurisdiction of that body in the year 1820, and form themselves into a separate independent Synod, under the 340 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. title of the "Associate Reformed Synod of the West." The attention of this Synod was early directed to the subject of making provision for the theological training of her sons who were candidates for the sacred office. And accordingly, in the year 1825, it was resolved to establish a Theological Seminary under the care of this Synod in the city of Pittsburgh; and the Rev. Joseph Kerr was chosen Professor. The term of study, at the original establishment of the Seminary, comprehended three sessions, each session including four months in the year, and commencing on the first Monday of December in each year. During the remainder of the year, while not attending upon the exercises of the Seminary, the student is expected to prosecute his studies under the direction of his Presbytery. In accordance with the resolution of Synud, the Seminary was opened in the month of December, 1825, under the direction of Dr. Kerr. This valuable mac continued to discharge the duties of his new station with great acceptance and advantage to the Church for four years. But, in his mysterious providence, the Head of the Church was pleased to remove by death, this able minister of the New Testament, on the 15th of October, 1829. The Seminary being thus suddenly and unexpectedly de- prived of the services of her efficient Professor, a meeting of the Presbytery of Monongahela, in whose bounds the institution is located, was called to provide for the emergency. The Pres- bytery directed her own students to prosecute their studies under the superintendence of the Rev. Mungo Dick. Accord- ingly, these students, together with those of other Presbyteries who thought proper to do so, repaired to the residence of Mr. Dick, under whose instructions they prosecuted their studies during the following session. At the subsequent meeting in October, 1830, the Synod not being prepared to elect a permanent Professor in the Theologi- cal Seminary, the Rev. Mungo Dick was appointed to this office pro tempore. And in the meantime the Rev. Alexander Por- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 341 ter, the Rev. William Wallace, and Mr. William Templeton, were appointed a committee " to correspond on the subject of a stated Professor for the Theological Seminary, in order to ascer- tain the most suitable character or characters for appointment ; the probability of acceptance, and the means that may be relied on for the permanent support of the institution and its Professor; and that they report to Synod at their next meeting the informa- tion they may have obtained, with their opinions of the meas- ures to be adopted in relation to the subject." At the meeting of Synod in Pittsburgh, October 10, 1831, this committee presented their report, of which the following is an extract : The committee appointed by a resolution of Synod, at its meeting in Chillicothe, on the 3d day of November, 1830, to correspond on the subject of a stated Professor for the Theological Seminary, in order to ascertain the most suitable person or persons for appointment, the probability of acceptance, and the means that may be relied on for the permanent sup- port, of the institution and its Professor, now beg leave to submit the fol- lowing report : The (irst branch of the resolution directs the committee to inquire re- specting the most suitable person to be appointed Professor of Theology. And here the committee will remark, that when we take into view the dis- repute into which the doctrines of the Reformation are now rapidly falling; the popular nature of the errors which are spreading their de- structive influence through the Church of Christ in an extensive degree; and the readiness with which the human mind embraces and endeavors to propagate those sentiments, which are most likely to receive the favor and applause of the multitude; we deem it of the utmost importance that a Professor should be chosen whose mind is well established in the doctrines of the Reformation, and who would sedulously guard the minds of the students under your care from falling into the current of those errors. Popular talents as a preacher are also desirable in a Professor of Theol- ogy, so that the students may have the benefit of a correct model to copy after in their public exercises. Aptness to teach, or ease in communicating the knowledge he possesses to others, is also requisite in a Professor; and if he has had experience in teaching, it will be a particular advantage to him. Your committee believe that the Rev. John T. Pressly, of South Carolina, does possess the foregoing qualifications in a good degree ; and although 342 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. there may be other ministers belonging to tlie Associate Reformed Church quite as wed qualified as Mr. Prcssly, yet as the committee believe that the appointment of Mr. Pressly would give the most general satisfaction to the different sections of the Church ; and as much of the usefulness of a Pro- fessor will depend upon his being thus acceptable, your committee have thought proper to recommend him to Synod as a suitable person to rill the Professors chair. But what probability is there that Mr. Pressly will accept the offer should it be tendered to him by Synod? The answer to this question will form our report on the second branch of the resolution. Mr. Pressly was written to by the committee, strongly urging him to at- tend your meeting this fall. He has, though not without expressing strong reluctance, complied with the invitation, and is here. The commit- tee have, at their own instance, had an interview with Mr. Pressly on the subject, and they feel warranted in saying that they believe he will accept if appointed. It may be proper here to remark that the individual named in this extract had been some time before appointed Professor of Theology in the Synod of the South, and had under his pas- toral care one of the largest and most valuable congregations in that Synod. Between him and his pastoral charge, there ex- isted a mutual and tender attachment, which had been uninter- rupted during a period of fourteen years. It was, therefore, with extreme difficulty that his mind was brought to the conclu- sion that he could consistently with duty change the field of labor. It was, consequently, very distinctly made known to his friends with whom he corresponded on the subject, that some- thing like a unanimous election would be indispensably requisite to relieve his mind from perplexity, and satisfy him that it was the will of his Master that he should enter upon this new service. In the afternoon of the day on which the report of the com- mittee was presented, their resolution with regard to the ap- pointment of a Professor was taken up. The resolution is in these words: Resolved, That the Rev. John T. Pressly be and he hereby is appointed Professor of Theology in the Theological Seminary in Pittsburgh, under the superintendence of this Synod. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 343 The resolution was adopted without a dissenting voice. The venerable father, Rev. Matthew Henderson, who was seated by the clerk's table, and who manifested a deep interest in the re- sult, arose, and addressing the Moderator, desired that the clerk should make a record of the unanimity of the vote, in accordance with the fact ; which was accordingly ordered. The condition of his acceptance having been thus unexpectedly to himself complied with, the Professor elect was compelled to accept the appointment, because he could not consistently with a sense of duty decline. After signifying his acceptance of the office, the Professor returned to South Carolina, dimitted his pastoral charge, pre- pared for removal with his family to his new field of labor, and arrived in Pittsburgh on the 5th of January, 1832. Immedi- ately after his arrival, he entered upon the discharge of his duty, and found thirteen young brethren ready to engage in their studies under his direction. Shortly after the close of the first session in the Seminary, the Professor received a call from a small congregation in the city of Allegheny, which had been recently organized. This call was accepted, and a pastoral charge has ever since been connected with the professorship. Since the formation of this pastoral relation, the operations of the Seminary have been con- ducted in the city of Allegheny. During the first four sessions subsequent to the election of the senior Professor, the superin- tendence of the Seminary devolved upon him exclusively. At a meeting of Synod, in 1835, the Rev. Moses Kerr was appointed Professor of Ecclesiastical History and Church Gov- ernment, the duties of which office he performed for one session. But at the meeting of Synod the following year, Mr. Kerr be- ing appointed to an important missionary station in Cincinnati, the senior Professor was again left alone in the charge of the Seminary. In this situation the Seminary remained until the year 1843, when the Synod established three Professorships in 344 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. the institution : A professorship of Theology — Didactic, Polemic and Pastoral ; a Professorship of Biblical Literature and Criti- cism; a Professorship of Ecclesiastical History and Church Government. At the same time, theRev. James L. Dinwiddie, D.D., was appointed Professor of Biblical Literature and Criti- cism ; and the Professorship of Theology was assigned to the senior Professor. It being inconvenient for the Synod at that time to fill the chair of Ecclesiastical History and Church Gov- ernment, the Professor of Theology, at the request of Synod, attended to the duties connected with that department. Dr. Dinwiddie engaged most assiduously in the discharge of the duties of his new station, and the Church was rejoicing in anticipation of the happy consequences of her judicious selec- tion of a Professor. But it pleased God, in his mysterious Prov- idence, to lay his afflicting hand upon his servant, and about the middle of the third session after he entered upon the dis- charge of the duties of his Professorship, Dr. Dinwiddie was wholly disqualified for rendering any further service to the Church. By this dispensation, the senior Professor was once more left alone in the charge of the Seminary, and on him were devolved the duties connected with the three Professorships in the insti- tution. In this situation he remained until the meeting of Synod in 1847. At this time the Rev. Alexander D. Clark, President of Franklin College in New Athens, Ohio, was elected Professor of Ecclesiastical History and Church Government, upon the dis- charge of the duties of which office he entered at the commence- ment of the session in 1848. At the meeting of Synod in 1851, Rev. D. R. Kerr was elected Professor of Ecclesiastical History and Church Government. Until recently, the Seminary had no buildings of its own, and was indebted to the liberality of the senior Professor's congrega- tion for the use of rooms in the basement of their Church. But through the kindness of Mr. Thomas Hanna, a ruling elder of THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 345 the First Associate Reformed Church, Allegheny, who during his life was a most efficient friend of the Seminary, the institution now possesses a building of its own. In his last will, this most excellent man left an important legacy to be appropriated by a specified committee, "to any or different objects of benevolence, that they, or a majority of them, in their judgment may think calculated to do the most good, not overlooking the wants of the Theological Seminary in Allegheny." A portion of this legacy has been appropriated by the committee, to the purchase of a desirable lot, on which a commodious and substantial building has been erected for the accommodation of the Seminary. The building is 65 feet front and 55 feet deep. On the first floor are two spacious lecture rooms, with a wide hall running through the building. On the second floor, there is a very convenient chapel sufficiently large to contain three hundred and fifty per- sons, and a spacious, well lighted room for the library. Thus, in the kind Providence of God, the Seminary which hitherto had not a place on which to rest the sole of her foot, now enjoys the use of a building as well suited to our purpose as could be desired. And for this necessary accommodation we are indebted to the benevolence of one whose name deserves to be held in everlasting remembrance. The library, though not large, numbering only about two thousand volumes, is yet select and valuable. And in conse- quence of various bequests left by friends of the institution, the means are now in our possession which will enable us to enlarge the library to an extent which will meet all necessary demands. The term of study in the Seminary at present is four years ; there being one session of five months in each year, commencing on the first Monday in November. During the whole course the Bible is our text-book. The grand design of every exercise in the Seminary is to lead the student to a correct understanding of the lively Oracles, and to enable him to acquire the faculty of unfolding the truths of the Bible plainly and intelligibly to 23 346 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. others. It is not the object of the instructors to communicate a large amount of knowledge, but to aid the student in the inves- tigation of truth for himself; that thus knowledge ma)' be ac- quired as the fruit of his own labor. The following outline of the course of study and the laws for the government of the in- stitution, adopted by the Synod, will give a general view of the manner in which the course of instruction is conducted in the Seminary : COURSE OF STUDY. 1. The reading and critical investigation of the Sacred Scriptures, in the Hebrew and Greek languages, shall occupy a prominent place in the whole course. Every thing included under the head of Biblical Antiquities, Na- tural History, Chronology and Sacred Geography, shall here be introduced. The great design of this branch of theological study shall be to qualify the student for the correct and perspicuous interpretation of the Sacred Text. 2. The study of the doctrines of the Bible in systematic order. In this department the attention of the student shall be occupied with every thing included under the heads of Didactic and Polemic Theology. Here the first subject of inquiry shall be, what are the doctrines of the Holy Scrip- tures as exhibited in our ecclesiastical standards, and what their connec- tion and dependence? The great object in this branch of study shall be to qualify the student for holding forth the faithful word, and to enable him by sound doctrine both to exhort and to convince the gainsayers. 3. The careful examination of the history of the Church of Christ from its first establishment till the present time. Here the attention of the student shall be directed to the origin and progress of the Church, the ordinances of religious worship, and the corruptions, whether of doctrine, worship or government, which have been at different times introduced into the Church. The principal design in this department shall be to enable the student to know how he ought to behave himself in the house of God, which is the Church of the living God, the pillar and ground of the truth. LAWS FOR THE GOVERNMENT OF THE INSTITUTION. 1. Particular attention shall be paid to the cultivation of practical godli- ness. For this purpose, not only shall the student attend to the devotional exercises of the closet and of the family with whom he may reside, but shall likewise attend punctually the meetings of his fellow students for social worship, and also some place of public worship on the Lord's Day. 2. Regular and punctual attendance shall be given to all the exercises for improvement connected with the Seminary ; nor shall any student be THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 347 absent on any occasion without being able to assign to his instructor a satisfactory reason. 3. No student shall, while connected with the Seminary, defend, or en- deavor to propagate any doctrine inconsistent with the received standards of the Associate Reformed Church. PRESENT FACULTY. John T. Presslt, D D., Professor of Theology— Didactic, Polemic and Pastoral. Rev. A. D. Clarke, D.D., Professor of Biblical Literature and Criticism. Rev. D. R Kerr, D.D., Professor of Ecclesiastical History and Church Government. CATALOGUE OF STUDENTS Who have entered the Seminary since its Organization, in 1825. 18-25. •Samuel F. Smith, Cochranton, Pa. John Stark, Middletown, Pa. *\Vm. Wallace, D.D., Canonsburg, Pa. 1826. Samuel C. Baldridgf , Princeton, la. •John Dickey, Allegheny Co., Pa. •James Reynolds, Preble Co., Pa. Benjamin Waddle, New Concord, 0. James Worth, SpriDg Hill, la. 1827. Henry Connelly, Newburg, N. Y. *Joseph R Kerr, Pittsburgh, Pa. Hugh Parks, St. Clairsville, 0. Robert Stuart, Eckmansville, 0. 1828. •Moses Kerr, Pittsburgh, Pa. •A. S. Fulton, Pittsburgh, Pa. 1829. John E. Heanon, Cumberland Co., Pa. •James N. Gamble, Logan Co., 0. James Shields, Mexico. Pa. 1830. William Boyce Richmond, Ind. N. C. Weed, Northampton, 111. 1831. ♦Andrew Bower, Philadelphia, Pa. William Findley, Prospect, Pa. *John L. Dinwiddie, Pa. •Johnston Welsh, New Athens, 0. *J. G. Witherspoon. York Co., S. C. ♦Stephen L Haft, Sharon, 0. •Jereminh Morrow, Warren Co., 0. James C Porter, Little Rock, 111. Sam'l Taggart, West Middletown, Pa. 1832. ♦William Burnett, Pa. *James Caskey, Ripley, 0. J. N. Gamble, Logan Co., 0. Robt. Gracy, 4th Church, Pittsburgh, Pa. *M. B. Johnston, Cumberland Co , Pa. Robert M'Elroy, Darlington, Pa. Matthew M'Kinstry, Juniata Co., Pa. •Joseph Osborn, Turtle Creek, Pa. 1833. James R. Bonner, Dayton, 0. John H. Bonner, Wilkinsburg, Pa. J. G. Fulton, Freeport, Pa. W. R. Hemphill, Due West, S. C. James Prestley, New York City. John Neill, Mt. Jackson, Pa. •James F. Sawyer, Warren Co., 0. Thomas Turner Georgia. William Turner, Bloomington, la. J. D. Young, Lawrenceville, S. C. John Wilson, Tipton Co., Tenn. 1834. Joseph Caldwell, Missionary to India. William Lorimer, Richmond, 0. 348 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. *Joseph M'Creary, Abbeville Dist. , S. C. Robert M J C y, Chester District, S. C. John C. Steele, Manchester, Pa. 1835. Jos. S. Buchanan West Alexandria, Pa. Wil-on Blain, Missionary to Oregon. John Ekin. D D. , 1st Church, Pittsb'g, Pa. John Freetly, Oquawaka, 111. James Greer, Noblestown, Pa. ♦Thorn* 8 Menard, New Castle, Pa. Alexander Miller, Ohio. *Wm. Laughridge, Mansfield, 0. John M. Galloway, Steubenville, 0. John N. Pressly, Lafayette, la. Richard Gailey, Hastings, ♦Thomas L Speer, Washington, Pa. Joseph Thompson Lockport, la. ♦James Walker, Canonsburg, Pa. 1836. J. H. Buchanan, Cedarville, 0. W. G. Canders, Westmoreland Co., Pa. ♦J. M'Clure, Allegheny Co., Pa. W. P. Breaden, Coultersville, Pa E. B Calderhead, Gratiot, 0. J. M. Dick, Missionary to Oregon. J. J. Findley, Waterford, Pa. W. T. Findley. J. M. Gordon, Illinois. D. R Kerr, D.D., Prof. A. R. Seminary, Allegheny City, Pa. C. T. M'Caughan, Sidney, 0. J. M'Gregor, Allegheny Co., Pa. 1838. ♦J. J. Buchanan, Allegheny City, Ta. ♦ William Caskey, Adams Co., Pa. H. L Forsythe, Fairview, Ohio. J. Gilmore, Ohio. J. M. Graham, New York. W. M Graham, Virginia Grove, Iowa. ♦J F. Kerr, Oswego. la. J. S. McCracken, Kenton, 0. J. II. Pressly, Erie, Pa. D. F. Reid Keene, 0. G. Wilson, Ohio. A. C. Wright, New York. 1839. David Carnahan. Samuel Findley, Jr. D. B. Jones, Springfield, Mass. N. B. Nelson, Pittsburgh, Pa. R. W. Oliver J. H. Peacock, Mt. Vernon, 0. J. B. Scouller, Cuylersville, N. Y. Samuel Wallace, Bel efontaine, 0. A. Young, D.D., Prof. A. R. Seminary, Oxford, 0. 1840. R. A Brown, New Castle, Pa. A. D. Clark, D.D., Prof. A. R. Seminary, Allegheny City, Pa. Joseph Buchanan, Steubenville, 0. Thomas Calahan, Hancock Co., 0. ♦J. W. Duff, Blairsvi le, 0. John Dick, Kittanning, Pa. H. H. Johnson, Dayton, 0. John S. Pressly. AbbevLle Dist., S. C. ♦Ebenezer Palmer, Carrolton, 0. J. K. Riddle. R. G. Thompson, Plymouth, 0. ♦John Walker, WashiLgton, 1841. ♦James Buchanan, Lancaster, 0. William Carlisle, Chanceford, Pa. R. D. Harter, Xenia, 0. ♦Jonathan Herron, Allegheny City, Pa. Alex. Pattison, New London, Iowa. David Pre.-sly,Starkville, Miss. J. Y. Scouller, Fairhaven, 0. 1842. John G. Brown, 2d Church, Pittsburg, Pa. D. S. Cochran, Elli>ville, 111. W. H. Jamieson, Highlandtown, 0. W T. M'Adam. Isaac N. M'Laughlin, Virginia. ♦J. P. I inkerton, Fairhaven, 0. Joseph D. Steele, Bourbon Co., Ky. ♦Walter Steele. H. H. Thompson, Sugar Creek, Pa. M. H. Wilson, Jacksonville, Pa. 1843. R. Armstrong, 2d Church, Phila., Pa. S. W. Clarke, Calcutta, 0. John M'Clean, New Brighton, Pa. D. H. Pollock, Connell ville, Pa. A. G. Shater, Bakerstown, Pa. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 349 1844. *3. P. Berry, Monroe. 0. J. C. Campbell Paris, Pa. J. H. Fife, Mount Pleasant. Pa. *James Greer, Jr., Allegheny City, Pa. Samuel Jameson, Elizabeth, Pa. Leander H. Long. *Thomas M'Cague, Ripley, 0. W. S. M'Laren, Caledonia, N. Y. Randall Ross, Sharon, 0. Robert W. Brice, Fairfield Dist., S. C. 1845. William Palzell, Davenport, Iowa. W. C. Jackson. Washington Co., Pa. W. A. Mehard, New Wilmington, Pa. S. Patterson, Darlington, Pa Joseph White. Prof. Richmond College, 0. 1846. G. D. Archibald, Cincinnati, 0. J. K. Andrews, Antrim, 0. Matthew Bigger, New Concord, 0. *\V. J. Brown, Augusta Co., Va. John Bryson, Sewickly, Pa. *John Chambers, Pittsburgh, Pa. *Vincent Cockins, Pittsburgh, Pa. John D. Glenn, Murray, Ind. James Golden, Carrollton, 0. Robert Henry. James Kelso, Antrim, Pa. Samuel Kerr, Allegheny City, Pa. J. T M'Clure, Wheeling, Ya. W. G. Reed Edinburg, Pa. J. S. Robertson, Monroe, 0. W. M. Sharpe, Abbeville Dist., S. C. J. R. Sturgeon. Noblestown, 1'a. J. R. Warner, Chambersville. 1S47. James Bottoms, New Concord, 0. John Coman, Claysville, 0. John L. Craig, Princeton, Ind. W. R. Erskine. Oquawka, 111. *A G. Fergus, Elizabeth, Pa. Win. M'Millan, Remington, Pa. '.'a ul B. Shenard, New Concord, 0. J. R. Walker, Spring Hill, Ind. 1848. Matthew Clarke, Indiana, Pa. T. M. Cunningham, :^t. Louis, Mo. *Samuel Dougan, Pittsburgh, l'a. T. Drennen, Whitestown, Pa. S. M. Hutchison, Barlow, 0. James Forsythe, Mt. Vernon, 0. H H. Hervey, Tarentum, 0. * William Hixon, Mt. Pleasant, 0. E. M'Cnughey. H. C. M'Farland, Finleyville, Pa. George Ormond, Birmingham, Pa. 1849. George C. Arnold, 3d Church, Phila., Pa. *John B. Clarke, Washington, 0. J. R M'Calister, York Co., Pa Thos. H M'Ewen, West Middlesex, Pa. James K. M'Knight, Bloomerston, la. A. G. Wallace, M'Keesport, Pa. James Duncan, Cambridge, 0. 1850. D. D. Christy, Butler, Pa. *R. N Dick, Brush Valley, Pa. P. H Drennen, Elizabeth, Pa. James Given, Bakerst»wn. Pa. Samuel Glover, Peoria, 111. *James M. Gorsuch, Hookstown, Pa. John Janvson, Middletown, Pa. Thomas Love, Waterford, Pa. Robert M' Watty, Mercer, Pa. C. K. Potter, Fayette, Pa. Samuel F. Thompson. Samuel F. Vanata, Washington, Iowa. *W. W. Waddle, Wheeling, Va. D. A. Wallace, Bo- ton, Mass. R H. Young, Allegheny City, Pa. 1851. Oliver Catz, Antrim, Pa. Wm. G. M'Creary. W. C. M'Cune, 2d Church, Cincinnati, 0. J. R. Brown, Preble Co., 0. I). L. M'Dill, Preble Co., 0. 1852. J.Armstrong Leesburg, Pa. D. C Bradford, West Alexander, Pa. R. S. Campbell Claysville, 0. J. C. Greer, Murraysville, Pa. William Johnston, Washington Co., 0. Benjamin K. Ormond, Birmingham, Pa. Joseph Walker, Antrim, 0. David Paul, I'ibaua, 0. 350 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 1853. A. B. Beamer, Monroe Co., Va. R. K. Campbell. Cherry Valley, Pa. *A. J. Elliott, Allegheny Co., Pa. W. Lan lis M'Connell, Canonsburg, Pa. S. E. M'Kee, Allegheny Co., Pa. 1854. A. P. Bell. Antrim, O. Thomas F. Boyd, New Concord, 0. Joseph Boyd, Chancefort, Pa. J. C. Boyd, Latrobe, Pa. Al^-x. CalhouD, Savannah, 0. William Cook, Wheeling, Va. J. W. Findley. Auburn, Mo. James Hagerty, Allegheny City, Pa. Add. Henry, Allegheny Co. , Pa. A. Lowman, Kent, Indiana Co., Pa. R. A. M'Ayeal, Madison, Pa. J. Scouller M'Culloch, Big Spring, Pa. F. M. Proctor, Lexington, 0. J. E. Taylor, Courtney, Pa. J. D. Walkinshaw, Saltsburg, Pa. J. H. Young, Pittsburgh, Pa. 1855. J. D. Chisolm, Black's Locks, S. C. James A. Clark, New Athens, 0. *Deceafed. J. M. Johnson, New Alexandria, Pa. William M'Elwe, Philadelphia, Pa. W. S. Moffatt, Troy, Tenn. J. C. Nevin, New Sheffield, Pa. Marcus Ormond, Birmingham, Pa. J. L. Robert-on, Steubenville, 0. Jonathan Stewart, Xenia, 0. William G. Waddle, New Concord, 0. 1856. Thomas Andrews, Locust Hill, Pa. Thomas F. Baird, Washington, 0. S. C. Ewing, Irwin's Station, Pa. J M. Jamison, Blairsville. Pa. W. A. M'Connell, Mansfield, 0. A. R. Macowbrey, New York. W. J. Robinson, Argyle, N. Y. J. K. Timmons, Triadelphia, Va. 1857. J. H. Adair, Indiana, Pa. W. M. Claybaugh, Oxford, 0. W. R. Hutchinson, Oxford, Pa. David S. Little, Service. Pa. Samuel C. Marshall, New Concord, 0. 1 aFayette Marks, East Liverpool, 0. James McRea, Middle town 0. R. M. Patterson, Kittanning, Pa. Total Deceased while in the M nistry Deceased while Students 273 35 13 ASSOCIATE THEOLOGICAL SEMINARY. Historical Sketch. — We are not, at present, in possession of such materials as would be requisite in giving a minute de- tail of the early history of the Associate Theological Seminary. It is a subject which appears to have engaged the attention of the Church at an early period. In the year 17G4, it was agi- tated in the Associate Presbytery of Pennsylvania, and in No- vember of the same year, the Presbytery agreed to petition the Synod in Scotland to send them some one qualified to teach + he " Languages and Philosophy." In 1778, Rev. John Smith was THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 351 appointed to " direct the studies of such young men as were preparing to pursue their studies with a view to the holy minis- try." The Seminary was discontinued in 1782, in consequence of the union which gave rise to the Associate Reformed Synod, and greatly reduced the number of the Associate Presbytery of Pennsylvania. But in 1794, Rev. John Anderson, D.D., was appointed Professor of Theology, and the location of the Sem- inary selected to suit his convenience. This was Service Creek, Beaver county, Pennsylvania. There a building was erected, a professor appointed, a library collected, quite extensive for those days, comprising about 800 volumes. Theology was made the exclusive study, and an institution was founded possessing every requisite to entitle it to the name of a Theological Sem- inary ; and thus in the woods of western Pennsylvania, was es- tablished the first Protestant Theological Seminary founded on the Western Continent. To show that this assertion is historic- ally correct, we subjoin the following account of the public organization of the seminaries of other Churches, taken from a sermon preached by Dr. Bradford of Albany, before the Superintendent of the Seminary of the Reformed Dutch Church, in 1813. He gives the dates as follows: Seminary of the As- sociate Reformed Church 1804, Reformed Dutch Church 1810, General Assmbly 1812, and Andover 1808. Dr. Anderson continued to fill the chair of Professor of The- ology, till the year 1818, when the gathering infirmities of age induced him to resign. At the next meeting of the Synod, held in Huntington, May, 1819, it was agreed that two Theological Seminaries should be established, to be called the Eastern and Western. Philadelphia was selected as the site of the Eastern, and Rev. John Banks, D.D., was chosen Professor. At the next meeting of Synod, in 1821, Canonsburgh was selected as the location of the Western Seminary, and Rev. James Ramsey, D.D., was appointed Professor. After the death of Dr. Banks, which occurred in 182G, it was agreed to unite the 352 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Seminaries, and Dr. Ramsey was chosen Professor of the united Institution. He continued to have the entire care of directing the instruction of the students till the year 1833, when Synod established a Professorship of Biblical Literature and Ecclesiastical History, and elected Rev. David Carson to fill this chair. It pleased God, however, in his mysterious providence, to remove him by death before he entered upon his office. In 1835, Rev. Thomas Beveridge, D.D., was chosen to fill the vacancy occasioned by the death of Mr. Carson. In 1841, Dr. Ramsey, owing to his advanced age, tendered his res- ignation as Professor of Didactic Theology, and in 1842, Rev. James Martin, D.D., was chosen his successor. This chair was again left vacant by the death of Dr. Martin in 184G. The whole charge of the Seminary then devolved upon Dr. Bever- idge during the ensuing year. At the next meeting of Synod, in 1847, the Rev. Abraham Anderson, D.D., was appointed to fill the chair of Didactic Theology, which he continued to occupy until his death, May 8th, 1855, when the whole charge of the Seminary again devolved upon Dr. Beveridge during the summer session, with the exception of the Hebrew department, which Rev. J. B. Clark filled by appointment of Synod. At the meeting of Synod Rev. Samuel Wilson, D.D., was elected Dr. Anderson's successor. At the same meeting Xenia was selected as the location of the Seminary, and at the commencement of the fall session of 1855, it was removed to this place, at which time Dr. Wilson entered upon the duties of his office. TRESENT FACULTY. Tnos. Beveridge, D.D., Professor of Biblical Literature and Ecclesiastical History. Samuel Wilson, D.D., Professor of Hebrew and Theol- ogy — Didactic, Polemic and Pastoral. The grand design of every exercise in the Seminary is not THE CHUKCH MEMORIAL. 353 only to lead the student into a correct theoretic knowledge of the Oracles of God, but also to cultivate a spirit of practical piety ; thus preparing him for unfolding the mystery of divine truth — animated by a love of truth itself, and by a desire that others should know what God hath done for his soul. Library. — There is a very valuable library belonging to the Institution, comprising between 2,000 and 3,000 volumes, furnished through the liberality of the Church for the use of the students. Many of the most valuable of these books, it is believed, were sent by the mother Church in Scotland, while the Seminary was in its infancy. Mr. J. H. Tedford is now acting as librarian ; and it is confidently expected that the Synod will soon greatly enhance the value of the library by the addition of many rare and standard works. Sessions. — The term of study is four years, one session of five months each year, commencing on the first of November. Location. — The Seminary is pleasantly located in the city of Xenia, Green county, Ohio, a place eminent for its morality — healthful in its situation, and accessible by railroad from all parts of the country. The Seminary building lately erected is commodious and substantial. It is forty-six feet in front and seventy feet deep. The base- ment is occupied by the sexton and his family. On the second floor there are four rooms, Library, Reading and two Lecture rooms. On the third floor is the chapel, suf- ficiently large to accommodate about eight hundred persons. alumni. The following persons were instructed at Service, Pennsylvania, by Rev. John Anderson, D. D., between the years 1794 and 1819. NAMES. RESIDENCES. GRADUATED. Rev. W. Wilson* Clinton, Pa OS " J. Duncan* Poland, Ohio J c " E. Henderson* Philadelphia, Pa 354 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. NAMES. RESIDENCES. GRADUATED. Rev. D. M'Lean, Sr S. Shenango, Pa J C " T. Hamilton* New York City J C " T. Allison* West Middleton, Pa J G " J. Ramsey, D. D Ex-Prof. Ass. Sem., Frankfort, Pa J C " T. M'Clintock* Harmony, Pa ' ; D. Imbrie* Darlington, Pa J C " A Murray* New Castle, Pa J C " D. French Taylorstown, Pa " J.Walker* New Athens, Ohio J C " J. Mushat Virgin Springs, N. C " A. M*Clelland, D. D. . . Prof. Theo. Seminary, New Brunswick U C <: A. Herron, D. D Connersville, Ind J C " F. Pringle* Xenia, Ohio Dn C 41 J Scroggs Ligonier, Pa J C " J. Pringle* Steel Creek, N. C Dn C " W. Craig* Service, Pa J C " D. Blair Indiana, Pa J C " R. Douglas* Poland. Ohio J C " J Kendal Xenia, Ohio JC " E. N. Scroggs* West Point, Ohio JC " T. Beveridge, D. D. ... Prof. Ass. Theo. Seminary, Canonsburg, Pa U C " T. B. Clarkson* Mercersburg, Pa J C " A. Anderson, D. D. . . . Prof. Ass. Theo. Seminary, Canonsburg, Pa J C " J. P Miller Missionary to Oregon J C " J. Adams* Massies Creek, Ohio J C " S. Irvine, D. D Fredericksburg, Ohio J C " T. Ilanna, D. D Washington, la JC " J. Lyle* Smyrna, N. C Dn C The following were instructed at Philadelphia by Rev. J. Banks, D. D. between the years 1820 and 1826. NAMES RESIDENCES. GRADUATED. Rev. J. Irvine* New York City U C " J. Martin, D. D.* Ex-Prof. Ass. Theo. Seminary, Canonsburg, Pa U CJ " T Good willie Barnet, Yt DC " II. Thompson Lexington, Ya UC " J. G. Smart Cambridge, N. Y JC " D. Goodwillie Poland, Ohio DC " W. Easton Christiana, Pa UC " F. W. M'Naughton . ..Mercersburg, Pa U C li D. Carson* Prof, elect Ass. Theo. Seminary, Canonsburg, Pa J C " A. White Steel Creek, N. C U C i: J. Banks Ed. Friend of Missions, Pittsburgh, Pa W U The following Mere instructed at Canonsburg, Pa., by the Rev. James Ramsey, D. D., between the years 1821 and 1835. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 355 NAMES. RESIDENCES. GRADUATED. Rev. D. M'Lean New Concord, Ohio J C " S. M*Lean* Poplar Ridge, Ohio J C ' W. M. M'Elwee, D.D. Frankfort, Pa CC " J. Beggs* Mercer, Pa " M. Snodujrass Custard, Pa « J. Clokey Allegheny, Pa J C " W. Douthit Glade Mills, Pa JO " S. Hindtnan Iberia, Ohio J C " J. Hindman Glade Run, Pa J C " N. Ingles Lockport, Ind J C " J. M"Carrel Kendal, Pa JC " J. Templeton* Bellbrook, Ohio J C " J. Wallace* Allegheny Co., Pa U C " S. Wilson, D. D Xenia, Ohio J C " J. C. Bruce Monmouth, 111 FC " J. Rodgers, D. D Allegheny City, Pa WU " A. T. M"Gill. D. D Prof. Pres. Theo. Seminary, Princeton, N.J JC " J. P. Ramsey New Bedford, Pa J C " W. M'Clelland* Philadelphia, Pa t: J. M. Henderson Claysville, Ohio PC ' : B. Boyd Strabane, Pa J C " D. Lindsey Birmingham, la J C < ; T. Wilson Leavitt, Ohio J C " D. Thompson Oregon J C ' : U C. Pollock Harrisville, Pa " H II. Blair New York City Dq C '• J. P. Dickey Donegal, Ireland Dq C ' : T. Kendal Willamette, Oregon J C " J.Patterson Pres. Westminster Institute, New Wilmington, Pa JC " D. Strang Peoria, New York Ed U " J. S. Easton Kishacoquillas, Pa U C " J. Dickson Portland Mills, la PC " W. Galbraith Freeport, Pa J C <: G. M. Hall Duanesburg, N . Y U C The following have attended the Seminary since the Synod established two Professorships, (in 1835,) and are arranged according to the years in which they received license. NAMES. RESIDENCES. GRADUATED . 1836. Rev. W. Bruce Mercer, Pa F C " J. MGill Cleveland, Ohio Dq C " S. Douthet* Glade Run, Ohio " J. M. Scroggs* Conneautville, Pa F C " J.MKee West Hebron, N. Y FC u C. Webster Philadelphia, Pa 356 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. NAMES RESIDENCES. GRADUATED. 1837. Rev. R. Forrester Reynoldsburg, Ohio " W. Y. Hamilton ... . Philadelphia, Pa J C t; S M'Arthur President Muskingum. College, New Concord, Ohio U C " E. Small Mercer, Pa UC ; ' J. P. Smart Xenia, Ohio JC 1838. Rev. J. T. Cooper, D. D Ed. Evan. Rep., Philadelphia, Pa J C " J. W. Harsha Prof. Westminster Institute, New Wilmington, Pa U C • : J. Law Cambridge, N. Y U C ;: I. N. i aughead New California, Ohio F C " J. L. M'Lean Haysville, Ohio J C ■• W. II Walker* Scottsville, Pa F C 1839. Rev. J. A. Brown Madison, Ind H C ' ; T. Gilkerson Saltshurgh, Pa DC '• D. R. Imbrie New Wilmington, Pa C A • W. Smith Worthington, Pa F C 1840. Rev. J. Bryan New Jefferson, Ohio J C ,c J. M. French* Noblestown, Pa F C ' ; I. Law Putnam, N. Y U C " D. II. A. M*Lean Prof. Westminster Institute. New Wilmington, Pa J C " A. Reid* Cambridge, N. Y U C " C. G. Yincent Prof. Westminster Institute, New Wilmington, Pa F C 1841. Rev. D. G Bullions Cambridge, N. Y UC ; < W. J. Cleland Croton, N. Y ' c J R. Doig Prof Franklin College, New Athens, Ohio U C " J. W. Logue Northfield, Ohio U C '• J.Todd Brooksvilie, Pa. JC c; T.B. Walker New Orleans, La F C 1842. Rev. A. Barcroft* White Hall, 111 AY C T " T. Bassfield New London, Canada F C ' ; R. J. Hammond Burgettstown, Pa F C " A. Murray Economy, Pa '• J.Scott Monmouth, 111 F C " B. F. Sawyer Darlington, Pa 1843, Rev. J. D. Cunningham . . . .Dubuque. la W C " J. Fisher* Peoria, 111 F C " R.W. French De Kalb, 111 F C " J. Marshall Londondery, Ohio F C <: J. M'Clintock Newcastle, Pa F C '« T. R. Simpson Carlisle, Pa WC THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 357 NAMES. RESIDENCES. GRADUATED. 1844. Rev. J. G. Austin Hemmingsford, Conn WU " C Cummins Jamestown, Ohio W C " J. Forsythe* Cedar Rapids, la F C " J. C. Ilerron Napa, Cal .1 C " S. Ilerron New Lisbon, Ohio J C 1845. Rev. M. Arnot South Hanover, Ind J C " J. M'Arthur Ryegate, Vt F C " S. F. Marrow Albany, N. Y S II " R. II. Pollock Ed. Presb. Witness, Cincinnati, Ohio F C " J. R. Slentz Hudson, Ohio F C " Alexander Story Columbus City, la J C 1846, Rev. A. Anderson* Pittsburgh, Pa J C " J. L. Lull Kenton, Ohio M U " S. Collins Yorkville, Wis F C " D.W.French Shushan. N Y W C " II. K. Lusk Coila, N. Y W C " N. M'Dowell Olena. Ill WC " A. M'llatton Laporte, Ind S II " J. M'Karahan E. Greenwich, N. Y F C " G. M'Millan* Hanover, Ind JC " W. Oburn Rock Island, 111 F C " W. Wishart New Athens, Ohio M C ' : J.D Wolf Jacksonville, Pa WC " A.M. Black Prof. Westminster College, New Wilmington, Pa F C 1847. Rev. W. II. Andrews Ecksmansville, Ohio F C " J. G. Ballentine* . . . W. Hebron, N. Y J C " G. D. Henderson Granville, 111 F C " J. G. Rankin Bavington, Pa W C 1848. Rev. P. W. Collins Mansfield, Ohio F C " T.B. Hanna* Clinton, Pa F C " F. A. Hutchinson Noblestown, Pa W C " J.C.Telford Mahoning, Pa ' C " J. A. Yance Albia, la F C " J. D. M'Nay Clarion, Pa J C " T. Brown Cambridge, Ohio X A 1849. Rev. J. T. Brownlee West Middletown, Pa W C " J. Ingles Millersburgh, Ohio F C " H. W. Lee Pittsburgh, Pa FC " D. S. MTIenry Commerce, Mich J C « B. Porter Sparta, 111 W C 358 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. NAMES. RESIDENCES. GRADUATED. Rev. J. Thompson New York. N. Y J C 1850. Rev. S.Anderson West Lebanon, Pa F C ' : A. B. Cassil Mansfield, Ohio F C " D. Donnan Newark, N.J UC " S. G. Irvine Albany, Oregon F C « W. G. M'Elhenny ....Mercer, Pa J C " J. M. Shankland ... Detroit, Mich UC " J M. Snodgrass Buckeye, Ohio J C ' ; J. B. Strain Canonsburg, Pa J C " J. M. Smeallie Birmingham, Mich U C " II. Sturgeon Wooster, Ohio J C " J. T. Tate Missionary to India F C " T. II. Beveridge Philadelphia Pa J C " D. W. Carson Service, Pa J C " A. Irons Bruce, Mich ffC " J. A. M'Gill Beaver, Pa F C ' ; J.C. Murch West Alexander, Pa G C " J. N. Smith , . . Pottereville, Pa F C " W. II. Wilson Washington, la J C 1851. Rev. J. Alexander St. Clairsville, Ohio F C " J. Barcklay Mechanicstown, Ohio F C " J.B.Clark Canonsburg, Pa F C " W. A. Black Clintonville, Pa Dq C " S. Kerr Harmony, Pa F C " J. P. Lytle Ed of Pres. Witness, Cincinnati, Ohio J C " J.S. Maughlin Hopewell, Ind F C " S.G. M'Neal Pittsburgh, Ind J C « A. R. Rankin Flat Rock, 111 W C '' E. II. Stevenson Hudson, Ohio DC " J. R. Thompson Mount Pleasant, Pa J C 1852. Rev. S. Allexander Jonesborough, Tenn F C " A.J. Allen Denny, 111 W C " J. II. Andrew Xenia, Ohio W C " J. C. Brownlee Milnersville, Ohio F C " W. C. Jackson W. Greenville, Pa C C Ky " W. J. Magill M'Alavery's Fort, Pa U C " J. A. M'Kee New Athens, Ohio F C " S. Patton Detroit, Mich F C " J. B. Whitten Thompsonville, Pa W C 1853. Rev. J. A. Leiper Hookstown, Pa J C " J.H. Nash Monmouth, 111 WC " J. L. Purdy Clinton, Pa F C THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 859 NAMES. RESIDENCES. GRADUATED. Rev. J. P. Scott Scottsville, Pa J c " D. II Goodwillie Poland, Ohio J C ' ; W. Bruce Wooster, Ohio F C " D. K. Duff Enon Valley, Pa FC " A. Gordon" Missionary to India F C " A. A. Rodgers Monmouth, 111 W C " J. M'Neil Iberia, Ohio F C " G. Small S. Argyle, N. Y U C " S. C. Reid Independence, Pa J C 1854. Rev. S.F. Farmer Noblestown, Pa " W. Grimes. Tayloi-stown, Pa F C " J. B. Wilson Queenstown, U. C F C 1855. Rev. W. M'C. Gibson Washington, Pa W C " J. B. Lee Cadiz, Ohio F C " F. M'Burney. Canonsburg, Pa BU " J. W. M'Farland New Athens, Ohio F C " II. MacIIattan Clark's Run, Ohio S II " J. Patterson* Mercer. Pa F C « J. Price Pittsburgh, Pa F C " J Sawhill Taylorstown, Pa F C " J. G. Carson Canonsburg, Pa J C " J. A. Edie Allegheny City, Pa F C 1856. Rev. James Bruce New Brighton, Pa S II " J. A. Collins* Xenia, Ohio FC " W. P. Currie Xenia, Ohio EC fi J. A. Duff J C £; Robert Gilmore "West Alexander, Pa W C •» A. F. Houston* New Wilmington, Pa FC ' : J. S. M*Cready* Lawrence Co., Pa EC " G. H. Robertson. « James Shearer Canonsburg, Pa F C " J. C. Truesdale* Fredericksburgh, Ohio EC " E. A. Brownlee Claysville, Pa F C " W. II. French Taylorstown, Pa J C " John Harper Jackson, N. Y U C " Thomas Mercer Allegheny City, Pa F C '• J. II. M'Caskey* New Athens, Ohio F C " S Ramsey* Morrow Co., Ohio FC « S. B. Reed Huntingdon, Pa F C ' ; W. W. Templeton Roundhead, Ohio F C 1857. Rev. J. B. Dunn Andes, N. Y J c '« G. W. Torrence Xenia, Ohio F c 360 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. NAMES. Rev. J. T. Torrence.. " T. B. Van Eman " W. M Coleman RESIDENCES. GRADUATED. Xenia, Ohio - • F C Canonsburg. Pa J C Pittsburgh, Pa F C " S. M. L. Kier West Lebanon, Pa J C " James P. M 1 Arthur. ..Jackson, N. Y U C ' ; A. M'Cartney Londondery, Ohio F C " W. M'Farland New Athens, Ohio F C " R. D. Williamson Xenia, Ohio F C 1858. Rev. James J. Frazer Hookstown, Pa J C " Robert G. Wallace .... Huntsville, Ohio F C " A. R. Anderson Canonsburg, Pa J C " John P. Robb New Athens, Ohio F C " Josiah Stevenson Scroggsfield, Ohio F C " William L . Wilson Canonsburg, Pa W C " John M. Adair Indiana, Pa J C " W. W. Barr Clokey, Pa J C " David Forsythe Rix Mills, Ohio MC " Thomas P. Kennedy. .Hookstown, Pa F C SUMMARY. Alumni, whole number 263 ABBREVIATIONS. G. S. Glasgow, Scotland. J. C. Jefferson College, Pa. U. C. Union College, N. Y. Dn. C. Dickenson College, Pa. D. C. Dartmouth College, N. H. C. C. Columbia College, S. C. F. C. Franklin College, Ohio. Ed. U. Edinburgh Uuiversity, Scotland. Dq. C. Duquesne College, Pa. X. A. Xenia Academy, Ohio. W. C. Washington College, Pa. M. U. Miami University, Ohio. S. H. South Hanover. Ind. W. 0. T. Washington College, Tenn. C. C. Ky. Central College, Ky. M. C. Madison College, Ohio. Dl. C. Delaware College, Delaware. G. C. Granville College, Ohio. B. U. Belfast University, Ireland. 1). A. Darlington Academy, Pa. W. U. Western University, Pa. * Deceased. Note. — Th^ record embraces only the names of those who have received licensure in our ( hurch, omitting the names of many who have died or left the Seminary before the completion of their theological course. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 861 THEOLOGICAL SEMINARY AT OXFORD, OHIO. Historical Sketch. — At the meeting of the Associate Re- formed Synod of the West, held at Chillieothc, October, 1837, it was resolved to remove the Theological Seminary from Pitts- burgh, and locate it permanently at Oxford. At the same meet- ing, Trustees were appointed, and likewise a committee to pro- cure a charter for the Seminary thus located ; and it was made the duty of each Presbytery to see that a subscription be opened in every congregation, settled and vacant, for the pur- pose of raising funds for the erection of a Seminary building. The operations of the Seminary were to continue for the session immediately following at Allegheny. The charter was obtained, bearing date January 1G, 1838. The style of the Seminary, as designated in the charter, is "The Theological Seminary of the Associate Reformed Synod of the West." The Trustees, of whom the Hon. Jeremiah Morrow was chairman, acting under this charter, proceeded to provide for the accommodation of the Seminary in its new location ; and at the meeting of Synod in the fall of 1838, reported a lot procured, a building erected, and a lecture room to be in readiness for the Seminary at its ensuing session. This had been done by funds raised, with a trifling exception, by the western Presbyteries. But it was found that the location did not meet with general favor in the eastern end of the Synod, though several eastern brethren had voted in its favor, and that the prevalent desire there, was to retain the Seminary at Allegheny. In this state of things, it was finally agreed, at the Synod in October, 1839, to divide the Synod into two particular Synods, called the First and Second Synods of the West, to be under one General Synod ; each particular Synod to have its own Seminary under its exclusive control; the Seminary of the First Synod continu- ing as already organized at Allegheny, and that of the Second 24 362 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. to be at Oxford. A professor for the latter — Rev. Joseph Clay- baugh, D.D. — was chosen by a vote of the undivided Synod. The Seminary went into operation the same fall, 1839. It has been exclusively the child of the Second Synod, including the Synod of Illinois, which was stricken off in 1851, still hold- ins, however, an interest in the institution, and pledged to its support. In the division of property between the First and Second Synods, the Seminary building at Oxford was offsetted against the library of the old Seminary. So that there was no dividend of books for the new institution. The Seminary has now been in operation nineteen years. The Synod ta which it belongs was, at the time it commenced, and still is comparatively weak, its congregations widely scat- tered, and many of them young and feeble, in newly settled dis- tricts of country, and educational facilities limited. Still the Synod has succeeded, in connection with the congregation of Oxford, which, at the commencement of the enterprize was in its infancy, itself needing aid to erect and finish a building, which furnishes a commodious lecture room, library room and chapel, besides several comfortable rooms for students. It has also acquired a library of nearly 2,000 volumes, well selected, and many of them valuable and costly. The whole number of students from the beginning is 104, chiefly, though not exclusively, of the Associate Reformed Church. Though the institution has not been able to boast of numbers, yet it is hoped that it has not been without its fruit. Its men are laboring throughout the different States of the great west, and some of them in the east, not without tokens of the Master's favor. Three of them are missionaries to a foreign land. While the plan of instruction contemplates an acquaintance with the doctrines of the gospel in their systematic connection, and a knowledge of the history of the Church, along with facility and skill in the preparation and delivery of discourses, it is THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 363 made a principal object to train the student to be a sound and independent interpreter of the word of God ; and to this end special attention is given to the exegetical study of the Scrip- tures in their original tongues. The course embraces three sessions of six months each, be- ginning the first Monday of September and ending the last Wednesday of March. As the Churches belonging to the two Synods are growing in number and strength, and as the facilities for education are mul- tiplying, and the number of students in the preparatory institu- tions increasing, the Seminary has a fair prospect of future use- fulness. The author of the preceding sketch, Rev. Joseph Claybaugh, D.D., was Professor of Theology in the Seminary from its es- tablishment in 1839 until his decease, September 9, 1855. Du- ring this period of sixteen years, the labors of the whole insti- tution, with the exception of a single session, devolved upon him, and were performed with rare ability. Rev. S. W. McCracken was appointed assistant Professor, but resigned at the end of the first session. The Church has been blessed with few men like Dr. Clay- baugh. As a gentleman, a scholar, and an exemplary Christian, he had no superior. Though feeble in body, he labored with untiring assiduity for the welfare of the Seminary and congre- gation entrusted to his care. He rests from his labors and his works do follow him. He died at Oxford, Ohio, September 9, 1855. No marble slab as yet marks the spot where the dust of this faithful servant of God slumbers in peace. After the death of Dr. Claybaugh, the Board of Superinten- dents made the following appointments for carrying on the ex- ercises of the Seminary until the next meeting of Synod : Rev. Adrian Aten, Professor of Theology ; Rev. William Davidson, Professor of Ecclesiastical History ; Rev. John Y. Scouller, Pro- fessor of Greek ; Rev. J. H. Buchanan, Professor of Hebrew. 364 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. At the next meeting of the Second Synod of the West, Rev. Alexander Young, of St. Clairsville, Ohio, was elected Professor of Hebrew and Greek. The Synod finding it inconvenient to fill the remaining professorships permanently, Rev. William Davidson was appointed by the Board of Superintendents Pro- fessor of Ecclesiastical History. The remaining departments of the institution were, for the time being, committed to Mr. Young. These brethren entered upon the duties assigned them and served the Church with great acceptance. In view of the rapid increase of the Church in the west, and also in anticipation of a union with the Associate Church, and in accordance with the wishes of the brethren in the Synod of Illi- nois, it was deemed advisable by the Second Synod, at its meet- ing October, 1857, to remove the Seminary from Oxford, Ohio, to Monmouth, Illinois. It is now located at Monmouth. Its next session will open about the first of September, 1858. FACULTY. Rev. Alexander Young, Professor of Hebrew and Greek. « John Scott, Professor of Ecclesiastical History. u . - , Professor of Theology. CATALOGUE OF ALL THE STT7DENTS OF THE SEMINARY SINCE ITS COMMENCEMENT. Names. Chdrch Connection. J. M. Gordon Assoc. Reformed C. T. M'Caughan ' '" John F. Kerr* " " William Caskey* ' J.S. M'Cracken ' " Wm. M. Graham " John M. Graham ' " Jas. H. Anderson Presbyterian, 0. S . . . . J. S. Pressly Assoc. Reformed James Barnett ' ' M.C.Bennett* " " J. H. Bonner ' ' R. R. Coon ' " 1840 Berlin, Illinois. " Urbana, Ohio. . . Oswego, la. ..Died St. Augustine, E. F. . . Cedarville, Ohio. . Morning Sun, Iowa. ..Elmira, Illinois. . .Teacher, Defiance, Ohio " Iowa. 1842 .... Cairo, Egypt, Missionary. Oxford, Ohio. 1839.... Mount Joy, Ohio. -, Illinois. 1SH 1840. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 365 Names. Church Connection. Licensure. Location. Andrew Foster* Assoc. Reformed 1843 Fairhaven, Ohio — Itinerant. " ....Perrysburgh, Ohio. " Locust Hill, Pa. 1844.... Sparta, Illinois. " .... Kansas. 1843 S. Salem, 0., Pres. Academy. 1842 .... Bellefontaine, Ohio. " 1843.... Greenfield, Ohio. " " . . . .Bloomingburg, Ohio. Assoc. Reformed ] 845 Monmouth, Illinois. " ' ; " ....Cedarville, Ohio. " " 1846.... Columbus, Ohio. Jackson Duff Joseph Andrews " " M.M.Brown " " J.D.Steele " " J.A.J. Lowes Presbyterian. 0. S . G.A.Gregg* " A.R.Naylor " Robert W. Wilson " Samuel Millen . . James P. Wright G. W. Gowdy . . . Henry Allen ' ; u " . J. M. Wampler Presbyterian, 0. S 1845 R. N. Fee Assoc. Reformed 1847 John Milligan* " " " Alex. M'Lanahan " " " James Williamson Christian Church " J. Van Eaton Assoc. Reformed 1846 John M. Heron " " 1846 B. L. Baldridge " " 1848 Robert Ross " " 1847 J. A. Frazier " " 1848 Clark Kendall.. . J. A. Campbell . . David Hanes*. . . . Iowa City. .Cincinnati, Ohio. . Wapello, Iowa. .Pres. Muskingum College. . Decatur, Ohio. . Ed. Gosp. Her., Springfield, 0. .York, N. Y. .Mass. .Leavenworth, Kansas. .Monmouth, Illinois. .Damascus, Syria, Missionary. . . . . Buffalo, New York. ....Baldwin, Pa. . .. .Xenia, Ohio. 1849. ..Presbyterian, 0. S. Marion Morrison R. E. Stewart . . . B. C Swan W. M. Stryker u Isaiah Fades Assoc. Reformed R.B.Campbell* " " .... J.D.Glenn « " J.N.Buchanan " " .... N. C. Macdill " " .... 0. A. Towne Baptist J. R. Brown Assoc. Reformed . II. Q. Graham " " " . David Macdill '• " " G. L. Kalb Presbyterian, 0. S 1851. J. N. Swan " '" ■ Robert Morrison " D. A. Wallace Assoc. Reformed 1849.. . .Monmouth, Illinois. Silas Hazlett Presbyterian, 0. S....... 1851 .... Lake City, Minnesota. A. H. Ramsay* Assoc. Reformed 1852 .... Died January 11, 1853. N. R. Kirkpatrick Assoc. Reformed 1852. . . .Teacher, Eckmansville, Ohio. 1848. 1849. 1851. 1*:,2 .Monmouth, Illinois. . Sugar Creek, Ohio. . Carthage, Illinois. .Fort Des Moines, Iowa. .Beulah, Mumford, New York. , Bloomington, Indiana. Elizaville, Indiana. Hebron, la. ....Richland, la. ....Napoleon, Iowa. Monmouth, Illinois. , . . . New Florence, Pa. Eckmansville, Ohio. . ..Circleville, Ohio. . . .Columbia City, Indiana. . . . Cedar Creek, Kentucky. 366 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Names. Church Connection. Licensure. Location. David Paul Assoc. Reformed 1852 Mansfield, Ohio. William Wallace* " " 1853 Itinerant, Oxford, Ohio. J. M. M. Wilson Reformed Presb Teacher Morning Sun, Ohio. S. F. Thompson Assoc. Reformed 1852 Ross' Grove, Illinois. S.Glover " " .... TV. Christie " " .... J R. Findley " " .... J. F. Hutcheson " " .... William Wright.. " " Thomas McCague " " . . . . Andrew Ritchie " " .... "William Henry* " " James Holmes* " " A. C. Junkin " i: ... Joseph M'Hatton " " W. C. M'Cune " " ... David Morrow l{ " W. II. Prestley " " Jacob Cooper Presbyterian, 0. J.A.Hughes* " J. H. Brooks " David Swing " Robert Gray Assoc. Reformed. ' : ... .Chenoa, Illinois. " .... Teaching, Edgefield, S. C. 1853.... Mercer, Pa. " ... .Ogden, la. " Quincey, Ohio. " ... .Alexandria, Egypt. " .... Greenfield, Ohio. 1854 Bloomington, Indiana. " Allegheny City, Pa. " New York, N. Y. " Bellefontaine, Ohio. ,; ...Cincinnati, Ohio. " ... .Murray, Indiana. " . . . . Chillicothe, Ohio. Prof. Greek, Danville, Ky. Died August, 1853. 1853 . . St. Louis, Missouri. " Prof, in Miami University. 1855 Summerville, Indiana. J F. Stewart . . . Assoc. Reformed 1855.. ..UlCCUIillC] "'""■ . . Sparta, Illinois. It. K. Campbell u cc a . . . Sycamore, Ohio. J. W. Glenn u cc cc T. E. Hughes ..*.... . . Presbyterian, 0. S , . .Springdale, Ohio. W. II. Reid — Reformed Presbyterian . , Jonathan Stewart . . . . . Assoc. Reformed , , 1856.. . . Andrew, Iowa. J. L. Aten cc a . 1857.. J. W. Pinkerton. .. . (C cc . . Smithfield, III.— Itinerant. J. A. P. Magaw (( CC cc . .Biggsville, Illinois. J . II. Harris . . . Presbyterian, 0. S « .. ..Mc Arthur, Ohio. W. A Pollock cc , 1858.. cc cc J K Black ... « . .Rushville, Ohio — Itinerant. W. Wright cc cc cc ..Burlington, Iowa, ;> cc cc cc T.D.Davis cc tC . .Tipton, Tennessee. J. T. Killen . . . Presbyterian, 0. S « .. ..Prof. Miami University. W. J. McSurely J. C. Hutchison cc cc ..Wheat Ridge, 0. — Itinerant. u J. B. Foster it James Welch . ... u . . Oxford, Ohio. Whole number . . . 104 * Deceased. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 367 XVI. — Synods and Presbyteries. ASSOCIATE REFORMKD I. SYNOD OF NEW YORK. Ministers, Etc. Post Offices. Congregations. Presbytery of New York. Joseph M'Carroll. D 1) Newburgh, N. Y 1st Church. Robert 11. Wallace Little Britain, " .... Little Britain. R Howard Wallace Blooming Grove, " .... James Prestley ••••••••••••• New York, Do u 4th Church, •lane street. Joliu Brash " .... Alexander Clements. ....••• Do Walden, u ■^8th street. Graham's Church. Alexander W Williams u Alex, .lack New burgh, u 2d Ch.. Newburgh. John Forsyth, D.D Newburgh, " .... Prof. Theol. Sem. Gulian Lansing Alexandria, E gypt Foreign Missionary. Without Charge. Henry Connelly ...... ...... Nc wbur ,r h N Y. Vacancies. Brooklyn, Hamptonburgh, Henry S. Wilkin Brooklyn, Licentiates. Adam M'Clelland, Aiongaup Valley. John Edgar. Student. T. M. Niven, Jr. Presbytery of Washington. Thomas T. Farrington Oxbow, NY Oxbow. James B Seouller Argyie, " .... Argyie. William B Stiort Cambridge, u Cambridge. Without Chaige. George M airs ....... ........ Argyie, West Aurora u Vacancies. William H o \vd e n n Salem, James Macau ley Ogdensburgh, « Hebron, Missionary. Lisbon. John Crawford Damascus, Sy ria. Licentiate. Student. William J. Robinson. Presbytery of Saratoga. T '1 111 f*C 1 • t 1 ffl If Andes, South Kortrig X. Y Andes, Cabin Hill. John L) Gibson ht, '" '.... Si a in lord. Clark Irving Kormglic, Kortright. John E.skme North Kortrig lit," .... North lvortright. J oil n Rippey Kortnglit, " .... West Kortnglit. Without Charge. Vacancies. Robert Proudtit, D L> Schenectady, " Broadalbm, Joseph M'Nulty Clarkson, tc liobart, John M Heron. Burlington, Licentiates, \\ est Charlton, Joseph L Clark, iVliddletown, Alexander Adair. East spring held. 368 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. SYNOD OF NEW YORK— Continued. Ministers, Etc Presbytery of Caledonia. John Van Eaton D. C M'Veati W. S. M'Laren Isaiah Faries George Patton T.F. Boyd Without Charge. D. C. M'Laren, D.D David Currie W. C Somers. P. C.Robertson Licentiates. P.D.M'Nab Wm. Currie Presbytery of Philadelphia. J. B. Dales, DD George C. Arnold Robert Armstrong Presbytery of Boston. William M'Laren Alexander Blaikie H. H. Johnson Post Of FICES. Congregations. York, N. Y York. Franklinville, " .... Franklinville. Caledonia, " .... Caledonia. Mum ford, " .... Beulah. Geneva, (i Seneca. Kochester, u Kochester. Vacancies. Geneva, " Geneva, Sterling, (( Sterling, Cu\ lerville, Buena Vista, t Church. East Boston, East Boston. Vacancies. Thompsonville, Lawrence. II. FIRST SYNOD OF THE WEST. Ministers, Etc. Post Offices. Congregations. Presbytery of Monongahela. James Gner Noblestown, Pa Robinson Run. John G. Brown Pittsburgh, " 2d Ch.. Pittsburgh. Pittsburgh *' 4th Ch. " W. H Andrew Canons burgh, " Canonsburgh. J.C.Boyd Alt. Lebanon, " St. Clair. Unsettled. Ministers. Vacancies. D. R. Kerr, D D Pittsburgh, " 1st Ch., Pittsburgh, H. C. M'Farland. Union, (( cc Probationers. Venice, S. R. Kerr, Temperanceville, B. K Ormond, Mansfield, J Haggerty, Mifflin, J H Young, Jefferson, M. K. Ormond. East Liberty, Students. Hebron, Lafayette Marks, Alt. Vernon. J. S. Wilson. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 369 FIRST SYNOD OF THE WEST— Continued. Ministers, Etc Second Presbytery of Ohio. B, Waddle J. Com in Wm. Johnston II. Forsythe J. H. Peacock ■ Jas. Duncan E. B. Calderhead ■ Randall Ross Jas. M'Neal Without Charge. S. Findlev, DD., J. Wallace. Licentiates. Joseph Walker, A. P. Bell, W. G. Wad. He. Students. T. F. Baird Jas. M'Rea, S. C. Marshall. Presbytery of the Lakes. Joseph H.Pressly II. II. Thompson Clark Kendall H. H. Hervey Thomas Love James Burrows Without Charge. John J. Findley Presbytery of Big Spring. James Shields Without Charge. D. B. Jones William Carlile Joseph Boyd Post Offices. Congregations. New Concord, Ohio. Antrim, ' Mix's Mills, Washington, ' Fairview, ' Mt. Vernon, ' Mt. Vernon, ' Mantau, ' Rushville, Sharon, ' Barlow, Erie, Pa Cochranton, Pa Buffalo, N.Y Hartstown, Pa Waterford, " .... Shakeleyville, " I Wayne Corners. Pa Mexico, Pa \ Concord, Pa York Furnace. Pa j Crooked Creek. Antrim. Salt Creek, East Union. Washington, New Salem. Fairview, Clear Ridge. Mt. Vernon. Martinsburgh, Utica. Lebanon, Mt Hermon. Rush Creek, Thornville. Sharon. Barlow, Bethel. Vacancies. Jonathan's Creek, Cumberland, Wolf Creek, Sunday Creek, Mt. Perry. Krie. ( lochranton, Meadville. Buffalo. Hartstown, X Sh en an go, Jamestown. Waterford, MeKean. Georgetown, N. Vernon, Sandy Creek. Beaver Dam. Tuscarora, Mexico. Concord. I [opewell, Chanceford. Big Spring. 370 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. FIRST SYNOD OF THE WEST— Continued. Ministers, Etc. Post Offices. Congregations. Licentiate. J S M'Culloii»h •i T Chambersburg, Gettysburg, Hill. Pottsville. W. Middletown. Richmond, Presbytery of SteubenviUe. S.Taggart W. Middletown, Pa.. Richmond, Piney Fork. J C Campbell Paris, Pa Locust Hill Pa Paris Chartiers. Yellow Creek, Dungannon, ( / .j I S W Clark . Lebanon. Calcutta, E. Liverp'l Vacancies. Wellsville, King's Creek, Carrollton, Connotton. Mechaniestown, Knoxville. Plymouth, Licentiates. W. C Jackson Joseph Buchanan J. L. Robertson Student. Thomas Andrews. Presbytery of Mansfield. Wcllsville, 0. Carrollton, 0. Knoxville. DcKalb Hastings, Upper Sandusky. Bakersville. DeKalb. Troy, Licentiates. Alex. Calhoun, S. M. Proctor. Student. Mr. M'Connell. Presbytery of Lawrence. .Monroe. Vacancies. Mansfield, Ontario. Alum Creek, Cliesterville, Sulphur Spring, Savannah, Upper Sandusky, Eden, Wooster, Millersburgh, Mill Creek, White Eyes. DeKalb — Auburn. Robert Audley Browne Win. A. Mehard New Castle, Pa New Wilmington, Pa 1 A l A New Castle, Shenango. New Wilmington, Robert Mc Watty Eastbrook. Mercer, John Armstrong Worth, Pa Edenburgh, Pa. Centreville. Bethel, Beulah, Vacancies. Mahoning, Eden burgh, Pa. W.K. Harbor, THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 371 FIRST SYNOD OF THE WEST— Continued. Ministers, Etc. Without Charge. William Findley William G. Reed Presbytery of Butler. Isaiah Nibloek, D.D..... J. N. Dick W. P. Breaden John Jamison John A. Campbell W. H. Jamison Without Charge. W. C. Pollock Students. R. M. Harrison W. M. Claybaugh Post Offices. Princeton, Pa. (Jlarkxville. Pa. Delaware Grove, Pa. Bazetta, Ohio. New Wilmington, Pa. Springdale, Pa. Rutler. Pa Kittanning, Pa... Uoultersville, Pa. Congregations. Freeport, Pa. Baldwin, Pa. Prospect, Pa. Putneyville, Pa. rlarrisville, Pa. Allegheny, Pa. Presbytery of Alhgheny. John T. Pressly, DD D. G. Bradford John C. Steele [West Manchester, Pa. A. G. Shafer Rural Ridge, Pa J C. Bnson Moon Pa J. L Fa'irley Courtneys, Pa Samuel Patterson Darlington, Pa W . L. M'Connell Allegheny, Pa. Without Charge. James Given. Licentiates. A. R. Macoubrey. Students. J. M. Jamison, S. C. Ewing. Presbytery of Wheeling. D. F. Reid Uniontown, 0.... H. Parks. Jr St. Clairsville, O.. Centre, Clarksville, Delaware Grove, Bazetta. Butler. Kirtanning. Sunbury, Unity. Union, Freeport, VVortliington. Fairview, Mt. Varnum. W. O. Springs, Evansburg. Vacancies. Prospect, Putneyville, Scotch Hill. 1st Church. 2d Church. Manchester. Deer Creek. Mt. Gilead. Mt. Nebo. Re hobo th. v Rocky Spring. Hanover. Vacancies Tarentum, Harmersville, East Union, West Union, Raccoon, Centre. Brighton, Hookstown, Fast Palestine. J.T. McClure Wheeling, Va.. Without Charge. Wm.Ta^gart Uniontown, O. Alex. Wilson Cadiz, O. A.D.Clarke, D.D New Athens, 0. Uniontown, Egypt Buchanan Dill. Wheeling. Vacancies. West Alexander, Moorclirld, Centreville, 372 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. FIRST SYNOD OF THE WEST— Continued. Ministers, Etc. Post Offices. Congregations. Alex. Young... J. C. Forsythe Licentiate. Wm. Cooke. Student. J. II. Timmons. St. Clairsville, 0. Salem, N. Y. Presbytery of Westmoreland. M. M'Kinstry ■ J. G. Fulton ■ Samuel Jamison D. H. Pollock. M'Keesport. Pa.. Turtle Creek, Pa. Elizabeth, Pa.... West Newton.... James Kelso A. G. Wallace James H. Fife Unsettled Minister. Wm. Conner Licentiates. Oliver Katz Sample Rums New Texas.. Tinker Run.. Mt. Pleasant. Student. J. D. Walkinshaw. Blairsville, Pa. New Alexandria. Pa. Greensburgh, Pa. Logan'* Ferry. Pa. East Liberty, Pa. Presbytery of Blairsville. Wm. Cornier Blairsville, Pa. M. II. Wilson Rent, 11. Q Graham New Florence, " . Do " J. C. Greer Homer. " . Do Brush Valley, " . Do Samuel Brown Willet, " . Do Plumville, " ■ Without Charge. Olivet, " . A.Miller Brookville, " ■ Licentiate. A. Lowman Saltsburgh, Student. J. M'Cartney. St. Clairsville, Tent & Short Cr. Franklin, Tippecanoe, New Athens, Warren ton, Martinsville, New Matamoras, Brownsville, New Castle, Caledonia, Pleasant Hill, Cameron, Cadiz, Lebanon. M'Keesport. Turtle Creek. Bethesda. Sewickley, West Newton. Unity, Bethel, Alle. Co. Bethel, West'd Co. Alt. Pleasant, Laurel Hill. Vacancies. Puckety, Beulah, New Alexandria, Greensburgh, Logan's Ferry, Laurel Run. Stations. Union, Redstone. Blairsville. Jacksonville. Bethel. Fairheld. Centre Meclianicsburgh. Union. Plum Creek. Smyrna. Olivet. Brookville. Beech Woods. Saltsburgh. Mission Stations. Greenside, Scotch Settlement. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 373 III. SECOND SYNOD OF THE WEST. Ministers, Etc. Post Offices. Congregations. First Presbytery of Ohio. Peter Monfort S. W. M'Cracken J. Y. Seouller Wm. Davidson Adrian At^n J. S. Robertson G. D. Archibald W. C M'Cune .... R K. Ciimpbcll James Barnett Unsettled. J. H. Bnolianan J. S. M'Crackeh Probationers. J. L. Aten. J. A. P. Magaw, Wm. A. Pollock, J. K. Black. Students. James Welsh, James Foster. Presbytery of Indiana. William Turner Joseph R. Walker N. C. Macdill j J. L. Craig R Grav ... J. F. Hutchison. Presbytery of Chilhcoihe. D. Macdill J. Arbuthnot College Corner, Unitv. Morning Sun, Fail haven, Ha mil ton, New Paris, Monroe. Cincinnati, 16 Mile Stand, Cairo, Egypt. Oxford, 0. Cedarville. 0. A. Ritchie W. H. Prestley A. W. M'Clanahan John Gil more Without Charge. J. H. Bonner Rariden, J. S. Buchanan Jackson, N. R. Kirkpatrick JEckmanville, Bloomincrton, Springhill, Richland, Milroy, Princeton, Summerville, O^den, Steele's, Indianapolis, S Hanover, Moortield, Van d alia, Clinton, Boonville, Gcntryville, Elizabeth, Eekmansville, Wheat Ridge, Greenfield, Chillicothe, Decatur, Tranquility, Oh Hopewell. Fairhaven. Hamilton. Enen and Rich. Mr Pleasant. Cincinnati. Mission Church. Sycamore. Vacancies. Oxford. Springdale. Ind Union. New Zion. Richland, Betbesda. Princeton. Kden. Shiloh, Vienna. Vacancies. dndianapolis, 'Bethel, Caledonia. Stations. Vandnlia. Clinton. " Boonville. ' ; Gentryville. Elizabeth. o Cherry Fork. Unitv". Fall Creek, Greenfield. Chillicothe. Decatur. West Union. West Fork. I Vacancies. Mt. Joy, Bethel, Ripley, 374 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. SECOND SYXOD OF THE WEST— Continued. Ministers, Etc. Foreign Missionary. Thos.M'Cague. Licentiates. Thomas Mercer W.J. McSurely Presbytery of Springfield. R D Harper ■ Jos Clokey, D D J. P. Wright R. E. Stewart G. W. Gowdy • Student. J. C. Hutchison Licentiate. Jon Stewart. Presbytery of Michigan. J. N. Buchanan S. C. Baldridge John Anderson J. D Glenn R. Smith J. R Shepherd David Morrow Without Charge. Wm. Lind Alexander M'Cahan .... Missionary to Syria. J. A. Frazer Missionary to Kansas. B. L. Baldridge Post Offices. Cairo, Egypt. Mavbee. Wheat Ridge, Ohio. Xenia, " Springfield, " Cedarville, " Bel brook, " Columbus, " Yellow Springs. Uilliard's Station. Hebron, Ir.d. lefferson, t% . Oswego, " . Ww Paris, " . Klizaville, " . Holland, Mich Presbytery of Sydney J. R Bonner C. T. M'Caughan J Duff Jos. M'Hatton Wm Wright Samuel Wallace Without Charge. Thomas Calahan Kenton, D. Paul Sidney, Warren, Ind Murray Centreville. Mich. Kossville, Ind. Tipton, " Damascus, Syria. •Jalapa, Mich. Lafayette, kk Burnett's Creeek, Ind. Martin. Mich. Leavenworth City, K. T. Canonsburgh, Ohio Urban a, M Perry sburgh, " BellHontaine, " Qumcy, " Piqua, " Congregations. Chicks Hill, Shade River. Stations. Rome, Logan. Xenia. *>prin<:field. 'edaryille. Sugar Creek. Columbus. Vacancies. Yellow Springs, Penuel. Hebron. Providence. >swego, \'t'\v Paris. Salem. Dhrente. South Holland. Warren, Murray. Vacancies. Centreville, Mt Hope, Bethsaida. Bethel, Jalapa, Lafayette, Burnett's Creek Martin. Canonsburgh. • lUrbana. • Scotch Ridge. . JBellefontaine. . Quincy and Con. Piqua. Vacancies. Kenton, Sidney. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 375 IV. SYNOD OF ILLINOIS. Ministers, Etc 1st Presbytery of Illinois James Morrow John M. Gordon John F. Stewart James W. Glen Thomas Turner John M'Lean Without Charge. M. M. Brown 2<7 Presbytery of Illinois. Matthew Bigger D. C. Cochran Post Offices. Congregations. Sparta, III.... Berlin, " ... Sparta, " ... Preston, " ... Carmi, " ... St. Louis, Mo. Sparta. 111. Chester. Jordan's Grove, III. Tavlorville, " Tacusa. Pickneyville, " Grand Cote, " Jacksonville. S- M. Coon P. H. Drennen , W. K Erskine ■ John M. Graham , Samuel Millen , J. C. M'KniKht , J. C. Porter S. F.Thompson N. C Weede D. A Wallace Without Charge. Matthew Clarke Thos. Dickson. John Freetly Samuel Glover David Macdill.D.D J. R. M'Calister M. Morrison Robert Ross. Student. A. Conner Aledo, III. Viola, " . Ill Presbytery of Iowa. Rev. Wm. M. Boyce W. M. Graham. R. A. M'Aveal J. N.Pressly Joseph White J. P. Chambers A Sussex, Wis.. Washburn, Oquawka, Elmira, Monmouth, Spring Grove, Little York, Ross Grove, Sparland. Monmouth, Bloomington. Ross Grove. Chenoa. Monmouth. Rock Island. Monmouth. Monmouth. Keokuk, Iowa. Oskaloosa, " < Indianola, " - Knoxville, " < Patterson Without Charge. James Miller. Washington. Berlin. Union. Springfield. VVest Union. St. Louis. Vacancies. Chester. Hill Prairie, Spring Creek, Tacusa, Hopewell, Bethel, Jacksonville. Pope Creek. Twin Grove, Aledo. Vernon, Lisbon. Low Point. Ellison. Elmira. Smyrna. Spring Grove. Cedar Creek. Ross Grove. Fairfield. \1 on mouth. Vacancies. Bloomington, South Henderson, Berhel, Harmony, < iquawka, Rock Island, Ulavton, Rock ford, Ellisville, Xorth Henderson, Chicago. White Oak Grove, Peoria Keokuk. Morning Sun. Oskaloosa. Indianola. Knoxville. \1 iddletown, West Point. Dodge vi lie. Vacancies. Winter-ei. St. Charles, 876 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. SYNOD OF ILLINOIS— Continued. Presbytery of Le Claire. R. S. Campbell Dewitt, la S. F. Vanatta Washington, Iowa.... Henrv Allen Iowa City, " .... R. N.'Fee Wapello, S. E. M'Kec Le Claire City, Mr. Sterling, New London, DesMoines, Albia. Hewitt, Camanche. Washington, Brighton. Iowa City. Harrison. Le Claire Prairie. Port K\ ron. Vacancies. Bellview and Con. MilUrsburgh, Le Claire City, Davenport. SUMMARY. Presbyteries. Presbytery of New York " Washington " Saratoga " Caledonia Philadelphia " Boston " Monongahela 2d Presbytery of Ohio « Presbytery of Lakes , " Big Spring " Steubenville Mansfield " Lawrence " Purler " Wheeling " Westmoreland " Blairsville Allegheny 1st Presbytery of Ohio Piesbytery of Indiana '• Chill icoihe 11 Springfield Michigan , Sidne\ ■ 1st Presbytery of Illinois 2d " *' , Presbytery of Iowa Le Claire 28 a - .; bC % p- {J - U fc 12 o 1 11 948 7 1 1 6 626 8 2 11 72V 10 2 .. 10 646 3 . . . . 3 420 4 . . . . 5 281 S 5 O 16 1084 11 3 3 24 75* 7 . . 13 538 4 1 10 184 7 3 15 628 2 o 16 331 7 16 448 7 14 597 7 1 22 538 8 2 17 672 6 1 13 400 9 1 18 970 12 4 11 500 6 . . 14 397 10 o 14 351 5 7 309 12 9 •• 17 8 419 349 7 .. 13 428 20 27 79'.' 3 14 212 " 12 227 221 32 2'- 367 14,787 I 1877 1212 1407 1504 1139 529 2184 1H-13 1001 387 12S4 576 1001 1363 1057 1473 899 2351 1225 975 809 727 832 728 946 1739 465 501 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 377 SUMMARY OF GENERAL STNOD OF THE ASSO. REF. CHURCH. Moderator— Rev. D. C. M'Laren, D.D., Geneva, N. Y. Stated Clerk— Rev. James Prestley, G92 Houston street, New York. Treasurer— R. Dunlap, Jr., Pittsburgh. Pa. Assistant Treasurer— Thos. B. Rich, 187 Elizabeth street, New York. Clerk of Committee of 3Iissions—Rev. R. D. Harper, Xenia, O. Board of Agency— Revs. J. T. Pressly, D.D., J. B. Dales, J. G. Brown, R.D. Harper: and Messrs. R. Dunlap. Jr., T. B. Rich, and S. C. Huey. SYNODS. New York— Meets in York, N. Y , 2d Wednesday October. Rev. J. B. Scouller, Argyle, N. Y., Stated Clerk. 1st of the West— Meets in Pittsburgh, Pa., 1st Tuesday October. 2d of the West— Meets in Xenia, 0.,2d Thursday October. Rev. R. D. Harper, Xenia, O . Stated Clerk. Illinois— Meets in Monmouth, 111., 2d Tuesday October. Rev. J. C. Por- ter, Little York, III , Stated Clerk. FOREIGN MISSIONS AND MISSIONARIES. In Damascus, Syria — Rev. J. A. Frazier and wife; Rev. John Crawford and wife; Dr. Alex. Hattie, and Miss Sarah B. Dales. In Cairo, Egypt— Rev. Messrs. James Barnet, Thomas M'Cague and wife. In Alexandria, Egypt— Rev. G. Lansing and wife. 25 378 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. ASSOCIATE SYNOD PRESBYTERY OF PHILADELPHIA. "William Eastern . . J. D. Cooper, D.D. Joseph M'Kee. .. . Francis Church . . T. H. Beveridge . . J. II. Andrew "William Bruce . . . James Price F. M : Burney James Bruce Vacancies . CONGREGATIONS. Octorara Muddy Run Second Cong., Phila Petersburgh Carlisle Middle Ridge First Cong , Phila. . Third Cong., Phila.. Oxford Baltimore Fourth Cong., Phila Guinston Lower Chanceford . . Mercersburg Cove Stone Valley Reedsville Huntingdon Boalsburg POST OFFICE. Smyrna Kensington Bloomfield . ... do do Philadelphia . . . do Oxford Baltimore Frankford Chanceford do Mercersburg . . . M'Connelsburg. M'Alavy's Fort. Kishacoquillas . Huntingdon . . . Boalsburg Lancaster. ... do Philadelphia Perry do do Philadelphia do Chester Baltimore .. , Philadelphia York. do Franklin Fulton Huntingdon Mifflin Huntingdon Centre Pa. Md. Pa. Financial Agent— Thomas H. Beveridge, No. 126 North 21st street, Philadelphia. Ministers without Charge— John Adams, J. G. Austin. PRESBYTERY OF STAMFORD. MINISTERS. CONGREGATIONS. POST OFFICE. COUNTY. STATE. John Gillespie Robert M'Allister .... Esquesing Port Robinson Stamford . . Halton C. W. Port Robinson . . Stamford Telfer Welland jo u D. H. Goodwillie .... J. B. Wilson Middlesex Waterloo u Gait a Komoka Merrittsville Merrittsville Financial Agent— John Gillespie, Milton. Halton county, Canada West. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 379 PRESBYTERY OF IOWA. James It. Doig . William Wilson N. IVr Dowell . . . J. T. Tate J. D. Cunningham. S. M'Artkur . James Brown Alexander Story. .. . Samuel Ilindtnan . . . Hugh Sturgeon A. J. Allen Joseph S. Maughlin. CONGREGATIONS. Washington . . . Crawfordsville. . Pleasant Valley Otter Creek. ... Cedar Creek . . . Birmingham . . . Sugar Creek . . . Keokuk City ... Keokuk Columbus City. Grandview Pleasant Divide. Kingston Scotch Grove. .. Amity Winterset. Summerset . . . Mount Hope ... Vinton Boonesborough . Service Fairfield Corydon Lacona Eldora Berea POST OFFICE. Washington ... Crawfordsville . Dutch Creek ... La Motte Andrew Birmingham . . . Clay Grove Keokuk do .. Columbus City . Grandview Albia Cedar Rapids . . College Springs . M interset Summerset Vinton Boonesborough Albia Fairfield Cor.N don Lacona Eldora Berea .... Washington do .... do .... Jackson do .... Van Buren . . Lee do do Louisa do Monroe Linn Page Madison Warren . Benton . . Boone . . . Monroe.. Jefferson Wayne .. Hardin . . Johnston Iowa. Kans. Licentiates — G. Torrence, A. B. Cassill, John P. Robb, J. Shearer, J. Sawhill. Without Charge— John Graham, Daniel M'Lean, D. Lindsay, A. C. Tris, J. A. Vance, W. Douthet, R. J. Hammond. J. M*Clintock, James N. Smith, J. R. Slentz. Financial Agent— Samuel M'Arthur, Birmingham, Van Buren county, Iowa. PRESBYTERY OF CAMBRIDGE. MINISTERS. CONGREGATIONS. POST OFFICE. COUNTY. STATE. C. Webster Queensbury Glenn's Falls . .. Putnam North Argyle . . . ] Moore's P. 0. . Shushan Coila Warren Washington do do do do do do do do do do NY. " W. B. Henning William Hawthorne J North Argyle Hinchinbrook Hemmingsford « Henry Gordon James A. Duff J. B. Dunn " South Argyle E Greenwich South Argyle . . East Greenwich . West Hebron . . . do Coila « ( " Vacancies \ Second Hebron Cambridge « Licentiates— Gilbert H. Robertson, James P. M'Arthur. Financial Agent— James A. Duff. South Argyle. Washington county, New York. Without Charge— P. Campbell, John G. Smart, James Law, John Harsha. 380 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. PRESBYTERY OF RICHLAND. MINISTERS. CONGREGATI W8. POST OFFICE. COUNTY. STATE. Sanvl Irvine, D.D .... J. Y. Ashenhuat... -J D. W. Collins | J. P. Scott { W. II French Jas. W. M'Farland . . Fredericksburgh . . . Haysville Wayne Ashland Do .... Richland. ... Do .... Holmes Do .... Morrow Wayne Do .... Coshocton. .. Morrow . . Ohio. Haysville Savannah a cc cc Millersburgh Nashville North Washington . Millersburgh Nashville <- cc u Dalton u Yacancies j cc South Washington . . a Financial Agent— J. Y. Ashenhust, Haysville, Ashland county, Ohio. PRESBYTERY OF ALLEGHENY. David Blair Jos. Scroggs, D.D. Wm. Galbraith... J. Rodger?, D.D. Saml. Anderson Thos. Gilkerson Byron Porter S. B. Reed . . . CONGREGATIONS. Yacancies . Indiana Fairfield Donegal Freeport Buffalo Allegheny Union Warren Shelocta Elderton l rete Pittsburgh Turtle ' reek... oneniaugh . . . Glade Run Meehanicsburg. [ i Valley Church POST OFFICE. Indiana Ligonier Mansfield .... Freeport Do Allegheny West Lebanon Apollo Shelocta Do Do Pittsburgh Freeport Saltsburgh . . . Glade Mills . . . Brush Valley . . Hulton Indiana Westmoreland. Do Armstrong Do Allegheny Indiana Armstrong Indiana Do Do Allegheny Armstrong Indiana Butler Indiana Allegheny. ... Pa. Financial Agent— S. B. Reed. Pittsburgh, Allegheny county, Pa. Licentiates — J. M. Adair, Josias Stevenson. Without Charge— D. H. A. M'Lean, D.D., H. K. Lusk. PRESBYTERY OF NORTHERN INDIANA. MINISTERS. CONGREGATIONS. POST OFFICE. COUNTr. STATE. Burnet's Creek , Pleasant Run Carroll Do Putnam Laporte Selma Ind. S. G. M'Neil Portland Mills Laporte Delaware cc T ( u \acancies J Sharon " Financial Agent — S. G. M'Neil, Pittsburgh, (arroll county, Ind. Without Charge — John L. M'Lean. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 381 PRESBYTERY OF SIIENANGO. M. Snodgrass E. Small Vacancies . D. 11. Imbrie Samuel M. Kerr W. C. Jackson G. 0. Vincent D. \V. French A. M. Black Wm. Bruce A. It. Rankin Alex. Murray < Joseph A. Collins CONGREGATIONS. Fairfield Spriugneld Rocky Spring . . Mineral Ridge . W ilmington Harmony Greenville Lebanon Mercer Harlansburgh . . Adamsvllle Slippery Rock.. Kerr's Ridge . . . Oakland Sheuango New Castle Portersville Mount.ville Prospect Princeton < ross Roads Conneautville .. French Creek . < onneaut Lake. Allegheny Cherry Run Jamestown Kinsman Clintonville Unity POST OFFICE. Custards Mercer do do New Wilmington . . Ilarrisville West Greenville . . . Worth Mercer Harlansburgh Adamsville Slippery Rock Titusville Oherry Tree Turnersville . New ' astle Portersville do Harlansburgh Princeton < larksville ' onneautville Cochrauton Evansville Perry Plummer .Jamestown Kinsman lintonville Anderson's Mills . . . Trawford . . . Mercer do .... do Lawrence . , Butler Mercer do do Lawrence . Crawford . Butler Crawford. . . Venango . . , Crawford.. . Lawrence . Butler do .. .. Lawrence . do Mercer C rawford . . do do .. Venango . . do Mercer.. . . Trumbull . Venango . . Butler Financial Agent— Wm. C. Jackson. West Greenville, Mercer county, Pa. Without Charge— Jus. Patterson, D.D., James P. Ramsey, Joseph Banks, J. M'Cliutock, W. A. Black. PRESBYTERY OF OHIO. CONGREGATIONS. D. Goodwillie James M'Gill. J. W. Logue . B. F. Sawyer. ( Da Poland Liberty » leveland Northfield Darlington. .. . "Jew Brighton. , New Lisbon . . . S.T.IIerron jj West Beaver . . John A. Magill ; Beaver . S. Alexander I Bethel J. Alexander Deer ' reek. . . . ( Four Mile j West Union. . . ,- . J ! Stow fancies ] \ Springfield.... I Bundvsburgh . { I Palestine POST OFFICE. Poland Centre . . ( hurchill Cleveland Northfield Darlington New Brighton. . New Lisbon West Beaver Beaver ' .11 Mr. Jackson New Bedford. . . Beaver C. II. ... • alcutta Hudson Springfield Bundysburgh . ., Palestine Mahoning . . Trumbull . .. Cuyahoga . . . Summit Beaver do Columbiana . do Beaver Lawrence . . . do Beaver Columbiana . Summit do <; ranger Columbiana . Licentiate — J. Torrence. Financial Agent— Bev. D. Goodwillie. Without Charge— J. M'llfatrick, iitus Bassfield. Ohio. (i Pa. Ohio. Pa. it Ohio. 382 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. PRESBYTERY OF DETROIT. MINISTERS. CONGREGATIONS. PCST OFFICE. COUNTY. STATE •{ Birmingham do Oakland do Macomb Mich Jas. M. Smealie . Cl T " -( Detroit Wayne Oakland Allegan Wayne " " Yacancies (( Nankin Dearborn " Licentiates— W. Coleman, W. II. M'Farland. Financial Agent— Andrew Irons, Romeo, Macomb county, Michigan. Without Charge— James A. Shankland. PRESBYTERY OF NORTHERN ILLINOIS. MINISTERS. CONGREGATIONS. POST OFFICE. COUNTY. STATE. R. W. French G. D. Henderson . . \ S. Collins DeKalb Putnam do Racine Will 111. Granville do i; Yorkville . J Wheatland Wis. Plainfield 111. Robert Acheson .... W. P. Currie Jo Daviess do Stephenson do I Apple River Hanover a K Wis. Midland Marquette Waupacca Lacrosse Winnebago do Ogle " Yacancies - Neshanoc Oshkosh " Oshkosh » " Lane Depot 111. M*IIenry Carroll <■■ I i Camp i reek Savannah " Financial Agen'— Samuel Collins, Yorkville, Racine county, Wisconsin, in' /tout Charge— Wm. Oburn, J. Skellie, A. McUatten. Licentiate— Thomas Winter. PRESBYTERY OF ALBANY. MINISTERS. P. Bullions, D.D S. F. Morrow. .. (i. M. Hall Wm. J. ( leland D. S. McIIenry CONGREGATIONS. POST f Synod— Rev. J. T. Cooper, D.D., Kensington, Pa , Moderator ; Rev. Thomas Hanna, D.D., « ashington, Pa., Clerk ; Daniel Houston, Canonsburg. Pa., Treasurer ; Rev. James Rodgers, D.D., Allegheny City, Pa , Chairman of Boaad of Home Missions. 388 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. XVII. — Colleges. FRANKLIX COLLEGE. This Institution, located at New Athens, Harrison county, Ohio, was incorporated in the year 1825, and is the oldest sem- inary of learning in the eastern part of the State. It owes its origin, properly, to the Christian enterprise of the late Rev. John Walker, of the Associate Church, — who estab- lished in the village a classical school, chiefly for the education of young men for the ministry, under the successful management and tuition of the Rev. Thomas Beveridge, D.D., (then a young man,) now Professor in the Theological Seminary at Xenia, Ohio — which suggested the establishment of the College. Franklin College is not endowed, and is not in debt. Its pro- fessors are supported by the tuition fees. It owes its commodi- ous buildings, and its literary societies, their spacious and taste- fully furnished rooms and excellent and well selected libraries, to the liberality of the friends of Christian education and human rights ; of which Franklin College has proved itself an exponent and advocate. This Institution is not denominational ; but yet has been, mainly, under the controlling influence and patronage of the Associate and Associate Reformed Churches. And it is a strik- ing fact, that no one College in existence has educated so many of the present ministry of " The United Presbyterian Church " as this Institution. By an inspection of its catalogue, it appears three-fourths of its Alumni have entered the ministry of the various Presbyterian Churches. It has its graduates in the missionary fields of India and Oregon, and in the professorships of various Colleges. It was the first Institution in the west to introduce the study of Hebrew Literature ; so that the greater part of those preparing for the ministry, in this Institution, give it as large a share of attention as Latin or Greek. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 889 The location of Franklin College is in the midst of a very healthy and fertile section of country, whose inhabitants are characterized by intelligence, morality and religion. It is within six miles of the Steubenville and Indiana Railroad, at Cadiz, — nine miles of the national road, at St. Clairsville — and eighteen miles of the Ohio River, and the different railroads meeting at Wheeling, Virginia ; from which points it is easy of access. It is sufficiently near these thoroughfares to enjoy their advantages — sufficiently remote to be free from their vices. Number of students, 90 Number of Alumni, near 250 Sessions and Vacations. — The Collegiate year is divided in two terms : The first commencing on the first Monday of November, and ending on the last Wednesday of March. The second commencing on the first Monday of May, and ending on the last Wednesday of September, commencement day. Vaca- tions, April and October. PRESENT FACULTY. Rev. A. D. Clark, D.D., President, and Prof, of Hebrew Literature and Mental and Moral Philosophy. Rev. William Wishart, A.M., Prof, of Languages, Logic, etc., and Adjunct Prof, of Hebrew Literature. Rev. David Craig, A.M., Prof, of Mathematics, Natural Science, and German and French Languages. Mr. Robert Campbell, Tutor of Languages. MUSKINGUM COLLEGE. In the fall of 1836, the citizens of New Concord and vicinity assembled on the call of Rev. B. Waddle, of the Associate Re- formed Church. He addressed them on the subject of educa- tion, and they resolved to aid him in establishing a literary in- stitution in that village. 390 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Accordingly, a petition was sent to the Legislature of Ohio, asking for a College charter. The charter was granted in March, 1837, and in October following, classes were formed and regular operations commenced. Muskingum is not a denomina- tional College. Still, the trustees, fifteen in number, have been chosen from four branches of the Presbyterian family. Four trustees from the Associate Church, four from the Associate Re- formed Church, four from the Presbyterian, (0. S.,) and three from the Reformed Church, (0. S.) At present the U. P. Church has eight of the trustees of Muskingum College. The regular College studies require the student to be in attendance four years. During the whole course, attention is given to the moral as well as the mental culture of the students. The last catalogue shows that one hundred and six pupils had been in attendance within the year. rilESENT FACULTY. Rev. B. Waddle, President. James White, A.B., Prof, of Mathematics. Thomas Stevenson, A.B., Prof, of Languages. H. D. Munson, M.B., Prof, of Music. John G. F. Holston, A.M., M.D., Lecturer on Chemistry and Geology. G. W. Pringle, M.D., Lecturer on Anatomy and Physi- ology. WESTMINSTER COLLEGE Is located at New Wilmington, Lawrence county, Pennsylva- nia. This Institution, already important, is destined to wield a wide influence on the coming generations in this region and else- where. It commands the country designated between the Ohio River and Lake Erie, without a rival except "Allegheny Col- lege," (Meadville, Crawford county,) under the care of the M. E. Church. The Presbyterian Churches of this region are nu- THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 391 merous, populous and powerful. Presbyterianism here took early and deep root under the planting and fostering hands of Revs. Tait, Woods and Satterfield, of the Presbyterian ; Mur- ray, McLean and Imbrie, of the Associate ; Galloway, Reed, Dinwiddie, Smith and Niblock, of the Associate Reformed Churches, with their co-workers. The latter two bodies, now the United Presbyterian, are the controlling Presbyterian Church of this region. An intelligent and numerous membership in this Church, true to their primitive Presbyterian principles and forms, possessed of ample means, and prizing the education of their children, are destined to sustain Westminster College, under the blessing of God, in their fostering hands to future times. Rev. G. C. Vincent was the projector of the Institution. The germ of its organization was the Classical Academy at Mercer, under his care. The transfer of the Academy to New Wil- mington, its establishment immediately as a Collegiate Institute by joint resolution of the Presbyteries of Shenango and Ohio, of the Associate Church, January 21st, 1852, and incorporation by the Legislature of Pennsylvania the following March, gave it its present legal character. Among those early and active friends to whom the College is indebted for much of its subse- quent prosperity, it is proper to mention in a special manner, on the part of the Presbytery of Ohio, Revs. Ramsey and Good- willie, and Messrs. David Houston and I. P. Cowden, elders ; and on the part of the Presbytery of Shenango, Messrs. Win. Dickey, Andrew J. Burgess, and Edward McElree, and Revs. Wolfe and Imbrie ; the latter pastor in New Wilmington. It was proposed in the establishment of the Institute to raise an endowment fund, to which New Wilmington, including a cir- cle of five or six miles around it, was to contribute $10,000, as a condition of fixing the location of the proposed Institution at that place. This was promptly done ; and under the efficient agency of Rev. J. D. Wolfe, the sum was increased the same season to $50,000. The amount thus and since obtained insures 392 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. the perpetual existence of the College ; and this endowment fund is still increasing. The favor with which the Institution was received surpassed expectation, and the Academy suddenly rose to the rank of a prosperous College. Regarding the e?idpivment of this Institution, notwithstanding the objections of some candid minds, the trustees of Westmin- ster College are satisfied there are large advantages resulting from it. By creating a constant annual revenue, the operations of the Institution are not liable to be affected by irregularity in the attendance of students. Tuition is afforded at lower rates, and thus the advantages of education are not confined to the favored few, but placed within the reach of all who prize it. It is substantially the same system as that which makes the com- mon schools of our land such efficient institutions for educating and Americanizing the masses, rich and poor. If the State en- dows her common schools, why should not the Church with equal munificence endow her Colleges ? A more serious objection is liable to be presented against such Institutions as Westminster, namely, the charge of sectarianism — a charge no doubt sometimes urged by candid and liberal men. Singularly enough, however, it is more generally presented by members of denominations, evangelical or unevangelical, whose very labors to found and sustain their own denominational Col- leges, years ago, have at length induced the Associate and Asso- ciate Reformed Churches to engage in the work of educating their own children. What more bitter foe of so-called Protest- ant Sectarianism than the Church of Rome, that builds her proselyting schools everywhere throughout the land? As for Protestant denominations, which of them has not as many Col- leges as it can found — Episcopalian, Methodist, Presbyterian, Old or New School, or any of the rest? Our limits forbid de- bate on this point, and we only add, for the consideration of honest minds, that it is now too late to debate this question. We must either in general surrender our children to be educated THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 393 under influences already existing of an adverse denominational cast, or sustain those institutions whose sound religious and moral character we can approve. As will be seen elsewhere in this article, the trustees and faculty of Westminster College do not agree to hide their principles while filling the post of educators; at the same time, proselyting is repugnant to their moral sense, and is neither their policy or practice. The Institution was put into immediate operation April, 1852, under the care of Revs. G. C. Vincent, and D. II. A. McLean. They were assisted for some time by Rev. J. W. Hersha and Mr. D. H. Goodwillie. The faculty was more formally organ- ized in the second year by the election of James Patterson, D. D., President ; Rev. A. M. Black, Professor of Hebrew Lite- rature ; and Miss L. J. Lowrie, Principal of the French De- partment. She, with Messrs. Hersha and Goodwillie, has since resigned ; and now, at the formation of the United Church, the faculty stands as follows : Jas. Patterson, D.D., President, and Prof, of Mental and Moral Philosophy, and Political Economy. Rev. Andrew M. Black, A.M., Prof, of Hebrew Litera- ture and Logic, and Adjunct Prof, of Greek. Rev. G. C. Vincent, A.M., Prof, of Greek Literature and History. Rev. William Findley, A.M., Prof, of Latin Literature. , Prof, of Mathematics. Vacant. Duties temporarily filled by other professors. J. B. Cummings, Esq., Principal of Scientific Department. Joseph McKee, Esq., Tutor. The trustees are twelve in number, six chosen by each Pres- bytery. Their officers are: President, Rev. Samuel Alexander, Mt. Jackson, Pa.; Vice President, Rev. S. Herron, New Lisbon, O.; Secretary and Financial Agent, Rev. A. J. Burgess, Green- field, Pa.; General Agent, Wm. Dickey, Esq., New Wilming- ton, Pa., to whom all business letters are to be addressed. 26 394 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. The catalogue of the present year, 1857-8, shows an at- tendance of two hundred and forty-eight students. The gradu- ating class consists of twenty -one young gentlemen and ladies ; most of whom are young men having the ministry in view, as their professional business, with talents and moral worth to com- mend them in that most important of all spheres of labor. In closing this sketch of Westminster College, attention is appropriately invited to two important characteristics. The mo- nastic feature of most of the higher institutions of learning is avoided : the sons and daughters of the Church are educated in the same institution, and find incentives to study by reciting in the same classes. The success of this arrangement proves the design to be as wise as it is liberal : it tends to improve both the manners and the morals of the students. The Bible, in the original and vernacular, stands foremost as a text-book. The design is not merely to conserve the morality of the student, but to communicate that sound theological instruction upon which all true morality is based. As there is no theology without sys- tem, the "Westminster Standards are recognized as the exponent of the religious principles the professors are required to impart. While the rights of conscience on the part of the faculty are thus maintained, they are also secured to the students, who, while required by the rules to attend the Sabbath lecture and Bible class in the College, and prayer meeting every Thursday after- noon, attend such other religious services as they or their parents may select. But such attendance is imperative ; nor may any student propagate infidel principles, or violate the Sabbath by recreations or otherwise. The cause of Christ in the United Presbyterian and sister Churches will find in Westminster College, its efficient faculty, and its increasing list of students and Alumni, many sources, under God, of future usefulness and prosperity. Newcastle, Pa., July 8, 1858. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 395 MONMOUTH COLLEGE. Monmouth College was projected and put in operation by the Second Associate Reformed Presbytery of Illinois. It opened under favorable auspices on the first Monday of September, A. D. 185G. At the meeting of the Synod of Illinois, held in Keokuk, Iowa, October, A. D. 1855, the Synod, in answer to the proposal and petition of the Presbytery, resolved as fol- lows : 1. Resolved, That with the view of providing for the education of our youth, under influences most favorable to their moral and religious well- being, the College located at Monmouth, and hitherto under the care of the Second Presbytery of Illinois, be taken under the care of the Synod, as proposed and requested by that Presbytery. 2. That the government of the College be intrusted to a Board subordi- nate to this Synod, consisting of twenty-four members, eighteen of whom shall be appointed by this Synod, and the other six by the Board itself. It shall be the duty of this Board to report annually to the Synod the pro- gress, condition and prospects of the College. 3. That the first eight on the list of members of this Board, alphabet- ically arranged, shall serve one year; the second eight, two years ; and the third eight, three years; so that annually eight members shall go out of office, and eight new members be elected— six by the Synod, and two by the Board. 4. That the members of the Board now in office, under the appointment of the Second Presbytery of Illinois, be continued, and that Synod now proceed to appoint so many additional members as will make up the num- ber to eighteen. 5. That the Board be instructed, while it is careful to prevent interfer- ence with the denominational preference of any, to take order that such instruction in the Word of God may be given the students as may be ne- cessary to secure the ends of a thorough education, and in general, to use all diligence to establish the College on a solid basis, and render it most extensively useful. 6. That it be the duty of the members of Synod, to cooperate actively with the Board, in all proper efforts to promote the prosperity of the Col- lege. Since that time the Board has been acting under the author- ity of the Synod. At the late meeting of the Legislature of Illinois, an act of 396 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. incorporation, conferring ample power on the Board of Trust, was secured. The following is an extract from sec. 3 : Said Trustees shall be so arranged in three classes, that one-third of their number shall go out of office in each successive year, at the time of the regular annual meeting of the Synod of Illinois, of the Associate Re- formed Presbyterian Church of North America; and as such vacancies occur, they shall be filled, three fourths of the number by the said Synod, and the remaining one-fourth by the Board of Trustees themselves. The College building contains a chapel large enough to seat 300 persons, and eight other rooms adapted to various College purposes. It will afford adequate accommodations for some time to come. All the students are required to attend the worship of God, daily in the College chapel, and to recite a Bible lesson once a week. All are likewise required to attend public worship, and Bible class, in some Church on the Sabbath. Those who take a full course will read exegetieally the greater part of the New Testament in Greek, and select portions of the Old Testament in Hebrew. In addition to studying the usual text books on Natural Theology, Evidences of Christianity, and Moral Philos- ophy, they will take a brief course in the principles of the gos- pel. This course of religious instruction will be especially valuable to those whose professional studies will not lead them to a careful examination of the facts and principles of the Word of God. Students' prayer meetings have been organized ; they are well attended. The faculty regard it as an important part of their work to labor for the moral and spiritual welfare of the students. It is the aim of the faculty to secure good order and diligence in study, by the force of moral and religious principles, rather than by the direct exercise of authority. Those who persist in neglecting their studies, or in pursuing disorderly courses, or in exerting an evil influence, are not permitted to remain in con- nection with the College. An extensive Philosophical and Chemical Apparatus has THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 397 been procured, and is now in successful use. It affords the means for a satisfactory illustration of the most important doc- trines in the various departments of Astronomy, Natural Phi- losophy and Chemistry. There are three Literary Societies in the College — the Phil- adelphian, Eccritean, and Amantes Des Belles Lettres — on a good footing, which afford their members respectively the op- portunity of improvement in the branches of learning for the promotion of which they are established. Tuition is from $20 to $30 per annum, payable in advance, at the commencement of each session. There is also a charge of 50 cents per session for incidental expenses. This docs not include tuition for the French and German Languages and Mu- sic. Boarding in private families, including lodging and fuel, may be had for $2.00 per week. Some students board them- selves at a cost of less than one dollar per week. Male and female pupils are admitted on the same terms. PRESENT FACULTY. Rev. David A. Wallace, A.M., President and Professor of Moral Philosophy. Rev. Marion Morrison, A.M., Professor of Mathematics and the Natural Sciences. Rev. Alexander Young, A.M., Professor of Greek and Hebrew. Rev. R. Ross, A.M., Professor of Latin. G. W. Leidigii, A.B., Professor of the French and Ger- man Languages. Two courses of instruction have been established, a classical and a scientific. Those completing the first are admitted to the degree of A.B.; and those completing the second, to the de- gree of B.S. At the late commencement, July 1st, two gradu- ated in the classical and two in the scientific course. During the year just closed, 151 students were in attendance. All the departments are thoroughly organized. 6\)S THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Monmouth is a young and rapidly growing city of about 3,000 inhabitants, situated on a fine rolling prairie, on the line of the Chicago, Burlington and Quincy Railroad. It is easy of access from every direction. It contains flourishing Churches of various evangelical denominations. WASHINGTON COLLEGE Is situated one half mile south of the center of Washington city, Washington Co., la. The building now occupied is a three story brick, costing some $15,000, tastefully built and surrounded by a campus of nine acres, ornamented by a beautiful grove of na- ture's own planting. It commands a full view of the adjacent city and all the surrounding country. This institution was founded by the Associate Presbytery of Iowa, and is still under the care of that Presbytery in connec- tion with the United Presbyterian Church, but will be placed under the care of Synod as soon as may be convenient. The school commenced September 1st, 1855, and at the end of two years its catalogue showed 193 students for the year. Being now near the close of the third year only, it has but few students in advance of the preparatory department ; five ready to enter the Junior class, at the commencement of next year, and other classes in proportion. PRESENT FACULTY. Rev. Jas. R. Doig, A.M., President and Professor of Mor- al Science and Greek and Latin Literature. Rev. W. II. Wilson, A.M., Professor of Mathematics and Natural Science. Miss M. S. Walsh, Principal of Female Department and adjunct Professor of Mathematics and Natural Science. John K. Sweeney, A.B., L. F. Sherman, Tutors. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 399 MADISON COLLEGE Is situated eighty miles west of Pittsburgh, and forty miles east of Zanesville, on nearly a direct line between these two places. Its location is quite elevated, on the center of the ridge land be- tween Stillwater and Hill's Creek, sufficiently distant from each of these streams to be entirely free from the malaria of either of them. It is located in the village of Antrim, on the summit of a ridge, and commands a very extended and delightful pros- pect, and for the healthfulness of its atmosphere it is not, per- haps, surpassed by any spot in the United States. It commands a large district of country unsupplied by any distinctive College or Literary Institution, a district from 100 to 150 miles in diameter. This Institution originated in a grammar school as early as the year 1824, and continued to operate in that charac- ter for fourteen years. The trustees, in the year 1837, petition- ed and obtained a charter from the State Legislature for a Literary Institution, bearing the name of the Philomath ean Lit- erary Institute. At the expiration of two years from the date of this charter the name was changed by legislative enactment to Madison College, and invested with all the rights and privi- leges of the most respectable Colleges of our land. Care had been taken from the first to have a large majority of the Trustees members of, or friends to, the Associate Reformed Church. In the year 1856, measures were taken to have it placed under the control of the Church as her own property, and employed in the education of her youth. The proposal made to the First Associate Reformed Synod of the West, was acceded to, and a plan is now in progress which must terminate in her entire interest in and control over this Institution, as a place of education of her youth under her own proper inspection. There have been from 100 to 150 students in annual attendance. Male and female students are taught sometimes in the same, and sometimes in different classes, as their stage of advancement or circumstances may require. 400 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. PRESENT FACULTY. Rev. James Duncan, A.M., President. Rev. Samuel Findley, D.D., Professor of Moral Science and Hebrew Literature. Rev. Jos. Walker, A.M., Professor of Mathematics. Wm. Bogle, A.M., Professor of Greek and Latin Lan- guages. XVIII. — Periodicals. THE EVANGELICAL REPOSITORY. The Religious Monitor, or Evangelical Repository, was first established by Rev. Chancy Webster, in the city of Albany, N. Y., in the year 1824. For several years it was ably conducted by Rev. Peter Bullion, D.D. Subsequently, for a number of years, it was edited with ability by Rev. James Martin, D.D., deceased. In 1839, it was again placed in the hands of Rev. C. Webster. In 1842, having dropped the first part of the title, it was called "The Evangelical Repository," and transferred to Rev. Joseph T. Cooper, D.D. Under his prudent and skillful management for the past sixteen years, it has been an important auxiliary to the Church in the dissemination of religious intelli- gence. The editorial department has recently been transferred to Rev. Thomas H. Beveridge, with a fair prospect of future usefulness and success. Published by William S. Young, Phil- adelphia, Pa. THE UNITED PRESBYTERIAN Was first established under the title of " The Preacher," in the city of Allegheny, Oct. 2Gth, 1842, by Rev. John T. Pressly, D.D., editor and proprietor. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 401 It was commenced as a semi-monthly. At the close of the third volume, it was transferred to Rev. David R. Kerr, D.D., who continued its publication as a semi-monthly to the close of the sixth volume. Since that time it has been published weekly, and has been, from time to time, enlarged and variously improv- ed to its present size and appearance. In 1854, in its twelfth volume, it was strengthened by a union with " The United Presbyterian and Evangelical Guardian," a monthly periodical, published in Cincinnati, by Rev. James Prestley, and edited by himself and Drs. Claybaugh and Macdill. By this arrangement, Drs. Claybaugh and Macdill became cor- responding editors of the united paper ; which the former con- tinued to be until his death, and the latter until the establishment of " The United Presbyterian of the West," of which he was invited to take charge. At the beginning of the current volume (lGth) Rev. D. II. A. McLean and James M. Ferguson were admitted to an inter- est in the paper ; the former as a co-editor, and the latter as superintendent of printing. It is now a large and well sustained paper, with home and foreign correspondents, and an extended circulation. Published at No. 74, Third street, Pittsburgh, Pa. Rev. D. R. Kerr, D.D., Rev. D. H. A. McLean, D.D., editors. THE CHRISTIAN INSTRUCTOR. The first number of this periodical was issued in September, 1844. It was a monthly of thirty-two pages, under the propri- etorship of Rev. D. L. Proudfit, and the editorial assistance of Rev. Jno. Forsyth, D.D. It was published in Newburgh, N. Y., under the patronage of the Associate Reformed Synod of New York, and did good service to the interests of religion and truth. In consequence, however, of the ill health of Mr. Proudfit, and for other causes, its publication was given up at the close of 402 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. the second volume. On the first of the following November, (1846,) it was revived in a new series in Philadelphia, under the editorial care and proprietorship of Rev. J. B. Dales, D.D. It declared itself devoted to the interests of the Associate Re- formed Church, and aimed more especially at imparting as large an amount as possible of missionary intelligence, both from the home and foreign field. It was shortly afterwards enlarged to forty-eight pages, and offered then, as it does still, an in- viting vehicle of presenting valuable articles to the public, in a form that admits of binding and of being preserved. It is pub- lished on the first of each month, at one dollar per annum, and is well sustained. It has between 2,000 and 3,000 subscribers. THE UNITED PRESBYTERIAN OF THE WEST. A weekly paper, established at Monmouth, Illinois, January 7th, 1857. Edited by Rev. David Macdill, D.D. Published by Morrison & Patterson. THE PRESBYTERIAN WITNESS. A paper established at Cincinnati, Ohio, January 1st, 1852. Edited by Rev. R, H. Pollock. THE WESTMINSTER HERALD. Published at New Wilmington, Lawrence county, Pennsyl- vania, was established in January, 1855, and is the continuation of the " Friend of Missions," formerly conducted by Rev. Jos. Banks. It has been gradually increasing its subscription list, and is now carried on with spirit and acceptance. Owned and edited by Rev. G. C. Vincent, assisted by Revs. Jas. Patterson, D.D., Win Findley, and A. M. Black, of New Wilmington, and Revs. G. R. McMillan and R. A. Brown, of Newcastle, Penn- sylvania. Terms, $1.50 per annum, in advance. H. J. Mur- doch, publisher. THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 403 XIX. — General Summary of the United Presbyterian Church. 1. Synods, - - - _ . - 4 2. Presbyteries, ----- 49 3. Ministers, - - - - - -419 4. Licentiates, - - - - _ GG 5. Foreign Missionaries, - - - - 14 6. Foreign Mission Stations, - G 7. Congregations, - - - - -660 8. Communicants, ----- 54,789 9. Theological Seminaries, - - - 4 10. Colleges, ----- g 11. Periodicals, - - - - - G 12. Officers: Moderator, Rev. J. T. Pressly, D.D.; Clerk P. T., Rev. Samuel Wilson, D.D. XX. — Conclusion. In the preceding pages we have endeavored to collect together the antecedents of the United Presbyterian Church, extending back as far as 1733. From what has thus been compiled, from different sources, we learn what the United Presbyterian Church has been, and what she now is. What her future shall be, re- mains to be determined by those to whom her interests have been entrusted. That a body comprising so many ministers and members, ex- tending over such a vast area of territory, posseting such an amount of wealth, in a land of civil liberty, and in an age re- markable for its facilities of doing good — is capable <>t' exerting an incalculable moral influence upon the destinies of the world. 404 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. no one could doubt. The improvements in arts, the discoveries of science, the increase of commerce, the application of steam and electricity to purposes of practical utility, the opening up of new countries, the unprecedented spread of the English lan- guage, and above all, the free access to all countries for mission- ary enterprises — all these increase immensurably the responsi- bilities of the Church of God. These are not the chance on- drivings of a restless world, all aimless and uncontrolled. They are the great machinery of God's providence, designed for the extension of knowledge, the diffusion of light, and the salvation of the world. Through these feverish agitations of men, there is an invisible hand, that is weaving out the web of a world's destiny, and inscribing thereon God's eternal decree : " The kingdoms of this world are become the kingdoms of our Lord and of his Christ, and He shall reign forever and ever." What a solemn responsibility, therefore, gathers around every minister and member of a Church that has been brought into the kingdom at such a time as this ! Does it not seem impera- tive that we should all mark well the leadings of God's providence, and inquire prayerfully — " Lord what wilt thou have me to do ?" Should we not engage with fresh zeal in the great work of educating the youth of the Church for the gospel min- istry, in establishing new missions, both home and foreign, in Church extension, in the Bible cause, in book and Sabbath school publications, and in all Scriptural enterprises for the ex- tension of the Redeemer's Kingdom ? Has not God bestowed upon us wealth and talent, and influence, which are as yet un- developed, and for which, as a Church, we must be held respon- sible ? These, and similar inquiries we think, should engage the prompt and prayerful attention of every member of the United Presbyterian Church. If we honor God, He will honor us ; but if we bury our talents in the earth, if we come not to the help of the Lord against the mighty, if we dwell in a house of cedar while the ark of God rests in curtains, it will require THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. 405 no prophet's inspiration to predict our destiny. The devil will be sure to find work for the Church if she is not busied in the service of her Master. " Remember, therefore, how thou hast received and heard, and hold fast and repent. If, therefore, thou shalt not watch, I will come on thee as a thief, and thou shalt not know what hour I will come upon thee." Perhaps it might be well, before we close these pages, to an- swer the inquiry which is so frequently proposed, Wherein does the United Presbyterian Church differ from other Presbyterian Churches in this country? Why does she maintain a distinct and separate organization ? The great majority of Presbyterian Churches in this country have had a common origin in the Church of Scotland, and ad- here to the Westminster Confession of Faith, and Catechisms, Larger and Shorter, as the symbols of their faith. Thus far they are all agreed. But there are certain points of faith and practice which have not been distinctly introduced into the Con- fession of Faith, or have not been exhibited with that fullness and explicitness which the circumstances of the Church, the times in which we live, and the views and practices of those around us, demand of us as witnesses for the truth. They may be reduced to five: Psalmody, Communion, Secret Societies, Slavery and Covenanting. These, therefore, may be denomi- nated the distinctive principles of the United Presbyterian Church, which constitute the chief ground of separation from other Presbyterian Churches of this country. We adhere to the exclusive use of the Scripture Psalms in the praise of God. We practice what is technically called close or restricted com- munion. We exclude from the fellowship of the Church, mem- bers of oath-bound secret societies. We condemn slavery as a moral evil, in which the Church should have no participation whatever. And we maintain that public social covenanting is a moral duty incumbent upon the Church, when God in his prov- idence calls to its performance. 406 THE CHURCH MEMORIAL. Believing these principles to be founded upon the word of God, the United Presbyterian Church has made them a part of her terms of ecclesiastical fellowship. For a more extended notice of these points, and the arguments by which they are sus- tained, we would refer the reader to the Testimony contained in this book. But while, in faithfulness to our Divine Master, we feel constrained to maintain a separate organization, for reasons already assigned, we desire at the same time to cultivate the most extended Christian charity toward every other branch of the Church of God ; and our hearts' desire and prayer ever shall be, that God would heal all the divisions of Zion — that the body of the Redeemer may be one — and that the Church may soon look forth as the morning, fair as the moon, clear as the sun, and terrible as an army with banners. F O II M U L A Questions to be used at the Admission of Members to Communion in the United Church. 1st. Do you believe the Scriptures of the Old and New Testaments to be the word of God, and the only rule of faith and practice ? 2d. Do you receive (as far as you are able to judge) the Westminster Standards, namely, the Confession of Faith, Cate- chisms, (Larger and Shorter,) Form of Prebyterial Church Government, and Directory for the Public Worship of God, as these are received and set forth in a Testimony for the present truth emitted by this Church in the year 1858 ? 3d. Do you promise to show the sincerity of your Christian profession by a conversation becoming the gospel ? 4th. Do you promise to attend upon the ordinances of God, public, private, and each in their appropriate seasons ? 5th. Do you promise to contribute of your substance, and use your influence for the advancement of the cause of Christ ? 6th. Do you promise subjection to the courts of Christ's house, which are over you in the Lord ? 7th. Do you promise not to propagate any opinion inconsist- ent with the principles which you profess, so long as you remain in connexion with this Church ? 8th. All this you promise and engage in the strength of divine srrace. > ! ' ':■:.';»;•;>:>;>{> illlll Ill 1 II nn 1 ' > ' > ' > ■ > j ' ) ;' > ' >>> >;>!>v Hi ;,v:;'>' Xv/?v,^:';':'v!;^; ■ >J>V>Vi ) . > ' ) » ' t ' ) ' '; ' J •' , * j. ' > . > > ' J '. ; .1 ' j ' > ? s K * . ■ ' ,' ' ' -